|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
A TALE OF TWO CITIES |
|
|
|
A STORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION |
|
|
|
By Charles Dickens |
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS |
|
|
|
|
|
Book the First--Recalled to Life |
|
|
|
CHAPTER I The Period |
|
CHAPTER II The Mail |
|
CHAPTER III The Night Shadows |
|
CHAPTER IV The Preparation |
|
CHAPTER V The Wine-shop |
|
CHAPTER VI The Shoemaker |
|
|
|
|
|
Book the Second--the Golden Thread |
|
|
|
CHAPTER I Five Years Later |
|
CHAPTER II A Sight |
|
CHAPTER III A Disappointment |
|
CHAPTER IV Congratulatory |
|
CHAPTER V The Jackal |
|
CHAPTER VI Hundreds of People |
|
CHAPTER VII Monseigneur in Town |
|
CHAPTER VIII Monseigneur in the Country |
|
CHAPTER IX The Gorgon’s Head |
|
CHAPTER X Two Promises |
|
CHAPTER XI A Companion Picture |
|
CHAPTER XII The Fellow of Delicacy |
|
CHAPTER XIII The Fellow of no Delicacy |
|
CHAPTER XIV The Honest Tradesman |
|
CHAPTER XV Knitting |
|
CHAPTER XVI Still Knitting |
|
CHAPTER XVII One Night |
|
CHAPTER XVIII Nine Days |
|
CHAPTER XIX An Opinion |
|
CHAPTER XX A Plea |
|
CHAPTER XXI Echoing Footsteps |
|
CHAPTER XXII The Sea Still Rises |
|
CHAPTER XXIII Fire Rises |
|
CHAPTER XXIV Drawn to the Loadstone Rock |
|
|
|
|
|
Book the Third--the Track of a Storm |
|
|
|
CHAPTER I In Secret |
|
CHAPTER II The Grindstone |
|
CHAPTER III The Shadow |
|
CHAPTER IV Calm in Storm |
|
CHAPTER V The Wood-sawyer |
|
CHAPTER VI Triumph |
|
CHAPTER VII A Knock at the Door |
|
CHAPTER VIII A Hand at Cards |
|
CHAPTER IX The Game Made |
|
CHAPTER X The Substance of the Shadow |
|
CHAPTER XI Dusk |
|
CHAPTER XII Darkness |
|
CHAPTER XIII Fifty-two |
|
CHAPTER XIV The Knitting Done |
|
CHAPTER XV The Footsteps Die Out For Ever |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Book the First--Recalled to Life |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. |
|
The Period |
|
|
|
|
|
It was the best of times, it was the worst of times, it was the age of |
|
wisdom, it was the age of foolishness, it was the epoch of belief, it |
|
was the epoch of incredulity, it was the season of Light, it was the |
|
season of Darkness, it was the spring of hope, it was the winter of |
|
despair, we had everything before us, we had nothing before us, we were |
|
all going direct to Heaven, we were all going direct the other way--in |
|
short, the period was so far like the present period, that some of its |
|
noisiest authorities insisted on its being received, for good or for |
|
evil, in the superlative degree of comparison only. |
|
|
|
There were a king with a large jaw and a queen with a plain face, on the |
|
throne of England; there were a king with a large jaw and a queen with |
|
a fair face, on the throne of France. In both countries it was clearer |
|
than crystal to the lords of the State preserves of loaves and fishes, |
|
that things in general were settled for ever. |
|
|
|
It was the year of Our Lord one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five. |
|
Spiritual revelations were conceded to England at that favoured period, |
|
as at this. Mrs. Southcott had recently attained her five-and-twentieth |
|
blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic private in the Life Guards had |
|
heralded the sublime appearance by announcing that arrangements were |
|
made for the swallowing up of London and Westminster. Even the Cock-lane |
|
ghost had been laid only a round dozen of years, after rapping out its |
|
messages, as the spirits of this very year last past (supernaturally |
|
deficient in originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the |
|
earthly order of events had lately come to the English Crown and People, |
|
from a congress of British subjects in America: which, strange |
|
to relate, have proved more important to the human race than any |
|
communications yet received through any of the chickens of the Cock-lane |
|
brood. |
|
|
|
France, less favoured on the whole as to matters spiritual than her |
|
sister of the shield and trident, rolled with exceeding smoothness down |
|
hill, making paper money and spending it. Under the guidance of her |
|
Christian pastors, she entertained herself, besides, with such humane |
|
achievements as sentencing a youth to have his hands cut off, his tongue |
|
torn out with pincers, and his body burned alive, because he had not |
|
kneeled down in the rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks |
|
which passed within his view, at a distance of some fifty or sixty |
|
yards. It is likely enough that, rooted in the woods of France and |
|
Norway, there were growing trees, when that sufferer was put to death, |
|
already marked by the Woodman, Fate, to come down and be sawn into |
|
boards, to make a certain movable framework with a sack and a knife in |
|
it, terrible in history. It is likely enough that in the rough outhouses |
|
of some tillers of the heavy lands adjacent to Paris, there were |
|
sheltered from the weather that very day, rude carts, bespattered with |
|
rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by poultry, which |
|
the Farmer, Death, had already set apart to be his tumbrils of |
|
the Revolution. But that Woodman and that Farmer, though they work |
|
unceasingly, work silently, and no one heard them as they went about |
|
with muffled tread: the rather, forasmuch as to entertain any suspicion |
|
that they were awake, was to be atheistical and traitorous. |
|
|
|
In England, there was scarcely an amount of order and protection to |
|
justify much national boasting. Daring burglaries by armed men, and |
|
highway robberies, took place in the capital itself every night; |
|
families were publicly cautioned not to go out of town without removing |
|
their furniture to upholsterers’ warehouses for security; the highwayman |
|
in the dark was a City tradesman in the light, and, being recognised and |
|
challenged by his fellow-tradesman whom he stopped in his character of |
|
“the Captain,” gallantly shot him through the head and rode away; the |
|
mail was waylaid by seven robbers, and the guard shot three dead, and |
|
then got shot dead himself by the other four, “in consequence of the |
|
failure of his ammunition:” after which the mail was robbed in peace; |
|
that magnificent potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was made to stand |
|
and deliver on Turnham Green, by one highwayman, who despoiled the |
|
illustrious creature in sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London |
|
gaols fought battles with their turnkeys, and the majesty of the law |
|
fired blunderbusses in among them, loaded with rounds of shot and ball; |
|
thieves snipped off diamond crosses from the necks of noble lords at |
|
Court drawing-rooms; musketeers went into St. Giles’s, to search |
|
for contraband goods, and the mob fired on the musketeers, and the |
|
musketeers fired on the mob, and nobody thought any of these occurrences |
|
much out of the common way. In the midst of them, the hangman, ever busy |
|
and ever worse than useless, was in constant requisition; now, stringing |
|
up long rows of miscellaneous criminals; now, hanging a housebreaker on |
|
Saturday who had been taken on Tuesday; now, burning people in the |
|
hand at Newgate by the dozen, and now burning pamphlets at the door of |
|
Westminster Hall; to-day, taking the life of an atrocious murderer, |
|
and to-morrow of a wretched pilferer who had robbed a farmer’s boy of |
|
sixpence. |
|
|
|
All these things, and a thousand like them, came to pass in and close |
|
upon the dear old year one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five. |
|
Environed by them, while the Woodman and the Farmer worked unheeded, |
|
those two of the large jaws, and those other two of the plain and the |
|
fair faces, trod with stir enough, and carried their divine rights |
|
with a high hand. Thus did the year one thousand seven hundred |
|
and seventy-five conduct their Greatnesses, and myriads of small |
|
creatures--the creatures of this chronicle among the rest--along the |
|
roads that lay before them. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. |
|
The Mail |
|
|
|
|
|
It was the Dover road that lay, on a Friday night late in November, |
|
before the first of the persons with whom this history has business. |
|
The Dover road lay, as to him, beyond the Dover mail, as it lumbered up |
|
Shooter’s Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by the side of the mail, |
|
as the rest of the passengers did; not because they had the least relish |
|
for walking exercise, under the circumstances, but because the hill, |
|
and the harness, and the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the |
|
horses had three times already come to a stop, besides once drawing the |
|
coach across the road, with the mutinous intent of taking it back |
|
to Blackheath. Reins and whip and coachman and guard, however, in |
|
combination, had read that article of war which forbade a purpose |
|
otherwise strongly in favour of the argument, that some brute animals |
|
are endued with Reason; and the team had capitulated and returned to |
|
their duty. |
|
|
|
With drooping heads and tremulous tails, they mashed their way through |
|
the thick mud, floundering and stumbling between whiles, as if they were |
|
falling to pieces at the larger joints. As often as the driver rested |
|
them and brought them to a stand, with a wary “Wo-ho! so-ho-then!” the |
|
near leader violently shook his head and everything upon it--like an |
|
unusually emphatic horse, denying that the coach could be got up the |
|
hill. Whenever the leader made this rattle, the passenger started, as a |
|
nervous passenger might, and was disturbed in mind. |
|
|
|
There was a steaming mist in all the hollows, and it had roamed in its |
|
forlornness up the hill, like an evil spirit, seeking rest and finding |
|
none. A clammy and intensely cold mist, it made its slow way through the |
|
air in ripples that visibly followed and overspread one another, as the |
|
waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It was dense enough to shut out |
|
everything from the light of the coach-lamps but these its own workings, |
|
and a few yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses steamed |
|
into it, as if they had made it all. |
|
|
|
Two other passengers, besides the one, were plodding up the hill by the |
|
side of the mail. All three were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the |
|
ears, and wore jack-boots. Not one of the three could have said, from |
|
anything he saw, what either of the other two was like; and each was |
|
hidden under almost as many wrappers from the eyes of the mind, as from |
|
the eyes of the body, of his two companions. In those days, travellers |
|
were very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for anybody on |
|
the road might be a robber or in league with robbers. As to the latter, |
|
when every posting-house and ale-house could produce somebody in |
|
“the Captain’s” pay, ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable |
|
non-descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards. So the guard |
|
of the Dover mail thought to himself, that Friday night in November, one |
|
thousand seven hundred and seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter’s Hill, as |
|
he stood on his own particular perch behind the mail, beating his feet, |
|
and keeping an eye and a hand on the arm-chest before him, where a |
|
loaded blunderbuss lay at the top of six or eight loaded horse-pistols, |
|
deposited on a substratum of cutlass. |
|
|
|
The Dover mail was in its usual genial position that the guard suspected |
|
the passengers, the passengers suspected one another and the guard, they |
|
all suspected everybody else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but |
|
the horses; as to which cattle he could with a clear conscience have |
|
taken his oath on the two Testaments that they were not fit for the |
|
journey. |
|
|
|
“Wo-ho!” said the coachman. “So, then! One more pull and you’re at the |
|
top and be damned to you, for I have had trouble enough to get you to |
|
it!--Joe!” |
|
|
|
“Halloa!” the guard replied. |
|
|
|
“What o’clock do you make it, Joe?” |
|
|
|
“Ten minutes, good, past eleven.” |
|
|
|
“My blood!” ejaculated the vexed coachman, “and not atop of Shooter’s |
|
yet! Tst! Yah! Get on with you!” |
|
|
|
The emphatic horse, cut short by the whip in a most decided negative, |
|
made a decided scramble for it, and the three other horses followed |
|
suit. Once more, the Dover mail struggled on, with the jack-boots of its |
|
passengers squashing along by its side. They had stopped when the coach |
|
stopped, and they kept close company with it. If any one of the three |
|
had had the hardihood to propose to another to walk on a little ahead |
|
into the mist and darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of |
|
getting shot instantly as a highwayman. |
|
|
|
The last burst carried the mail to the summit of the hill. The horses |
|
stopped to breathe again, and the guard got down to skid the wheel for |
|
the descent, and open the coach-door to let the passengers in. |
|
|
|
“Tst! Joe!” cried the coachman in a warning voice, looking down from his |
|
box. |
|
|
|
“What do you say, Tom?” |
|
|
|
They both listened. |
|
|
|
“I say a horse at a canter coming up, Joe.” |
|
|
|
“_I_ say a horse at a gallop, Tom,” returned the guard, leaving his hold |
|
of the door, and mounting nimbly to his place. “Gentlemen! In the king’s |
|
name, all of you!” |
|
|
|
With this hurried adjuration, he cocked his blunderbuss, and stood on |
|
the offensive. |
|
|
|
The passenger booked by this history, was on the coach-step, getting in; |
|
the two other passengers were close behind him, and about to follow. He |
|
remained on the step, half in the coach and half out of; they remained |
|
in the road below him. They all looked from the coachman to the guard, |
|
and from the guard to the coachman, and listened. The coachman looked |
|
back and the guard looked back, and even the emphatic leader pricked up |
|
his ears and looked back, without contradicting. |
|
|
|
The stillness consequent on the cessation of the rumbling and labouring |
|
of the coach, added to the stillness of the night, made it very quiet |
|
indeed. The panting of the horses communicated a tremulous motion to |
|
the coach, as if it were in a state of agitation. The hearts of the |
|
passengers beat loud enough perhaps to be heard; but at any rate, the |
|
quiet pause was audibly expressive of people out of breath, and holding |
|
the breath, and having the pulses quickened by expectation. |
|
|
|
The sound of a horse at a gallop came fast and furiously up the hill. |
|
|
|
“So-ho!” the guard sang out, as loud as he could roar. “Yo there! Stand! |
|
I shall fire!” |
|
|
|
The pace was suddenly checked, and, with much splashing and floundering, |
|
a man’s voice called from the mist, “Is that the Dover mail?” |
|
|
|
“Never you mind what it is!” the guard retorted. “What are you?” |
|
|
|
“_Is_ that the Dover mail?” |
|
|
|
“Why do you want to know?” |
|
|
|
“I want a passenger, if it is.” |
|
|
|
“What passenger?” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Jarvis Lorry.” |
|
|
|
Our booked passenger showed in a moment that it was his name. The guard, |
|
the coachman, and the two other passengers eyed him distrustfully. |
|
|
|
“Keep where you are,” the guard called to the voice in the mist, |
|
“because, if I should make a mistake, it could never be set right in |
|
your lifetime. Gentleman of the name of Lorry answer straight.” |
|
|
|
“What is the matter?” asked the passenger, then, with mildly quavering |
|
speech. “Who wants me? Is it Jerry?” |
|
|
|
(“I don’t like Jerry’s voice, if it is Jerry,” growled the guard to |
|
himself. “He’s hoarser than suits me, is Jerry.”) |
|
|
|
“Yes, Mr. Lorry.” |
|
|
|
“What is the matter?” |
|
|
|
“A despatch sent after you from over yonder. T. and Co.” |
|
|
|
“I know this messenger, guard,” said Mr. Lorry, getting down into the |
|
road--assisted from behind more swiftly than politely by the other two |
|
passengers, who immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and |
|
pulled up the window. “He may come close; there’s nothing wrong.” |
|
|
|
“I hope there ain’t, but I can’t make so ‘Nation sure of that,” said the |
|
guard, in gruff soliloquy. “Hallo you!” |
|
|
|
“Well! And hallo you!” said Jerry, more hoarsely than before. |
|
|
|
“Come on at a footpace! d’ye mind me? And if you’ve got holsters to that |
|
saddle o’ yourn, don’t let me see your hand go nigh ’em. For I’m a devil |
|
at a quick mistake, and when I make one it takes the form of Lead. So |
|
now let’s look at you.” |
|
|
|
The figures of a horse and rider came slowly through the eddying mist, |
|
and came to the side of the mail, where the passenger stood. The rider |
|
stooped, and, casting up his eyes at the guard, handed the passenger |
|
a small folded paper. The rider’s horse was blown, and both horse and |
|
rider were covered with mud, from the hoofs of the horse to the hat of |
|
the man. |
|
|
|
“Guard!” said the passenger, in a tone of quiet business confidence. |
|
|
|
The watchful guard, with his right hand at the stock of his raised |
|
blunderbuss, his left at the barrel, and his eye on the horseman, |
|
answered curtly, “Sir.” |
|
|
|
“There is nothing to apprehend. I belong to Tellson’s Bank. You must |
|
know Tellson’s Bank in London. I am going to Paris on business. A crown |
|
to drink. I may read this?” |
|
|
|
“If so be as you’re quick, sir.” |
|
|
|
He opened it in the light of the coach-lamp on that side, and |
|
read--first to himself and then aloud: “‘Wait at Dover for Mam’selle.’ |
|
It’s not long, you see, guard. Jerry, say that my answer was, RECALLED |
|
TO LIFE.” |
|
|
|
Jerry started in his saddle. “That’s a Blazing strange answer, too,” |
|
said he, at his hoarsest. |
|
|
|
“Take that message back, and they will know that I received this, as |
|
well as if I wrote. Make the best of your way. Good night.” |
|
|
|
With those words the passenger opened the coach-door and got in; not at |
|
all assisted by his fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted |
|
their watches and purses in their boots, and were now making a general |
|
pretence of being asleep. With no more definite purpose than to escape |
|
the hazard of originating any other kind of action. |
|
|
|
The coach lumbered on again, with heavier wreaths of mist closing round |
|
it as it began the descent. The guard soon replaced his blunderbuss |
|
in his arm-chest, and, having looked to the rest of its contents, and |
|
having looked to the supplementary pistols that he wore in his belt, |
|
looked to a smaller chest beneath his seat, in which there were a |
|
few smith’s tools, a couple of torches, and a tinder-box. For he was |
|
furnished with that completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown |
|
and stormed out, which did occasionally happen, he had only to shut |
|
himself up inside, keep the flint and steel sparks well off the straw, |
|
and get a light with tolerable safety and ease (if he were lucky) in |
|
five minutes. |
|
|
|
“Tom!” softly over the coach roof. |
|
|
|
“Hallo, Joe.” |
|
|
|
“Did you hear the message?” |
|
|
|
“I did, Joe.” |
|
|
|
“What did you make of it, Tom?” |
|
|
|
“Nothing at all, Joe.” |
|
|
|
“That’s a coincidence, too,” the guard mused, “for I made the same of it |
|
myself.” |
|
|
|
Jerry, left alone in the mist and darkness, dismounted meanwhile, not |
|
only to ease his spent horse, but to wipe the mud from his face, and |
|
shake the wet out of his hat-brim, which might be capable of |
|
holding about half a gallon. After standing with the bridle over his |
|
heavily-splashed arm, until the wheels of the mail were no longer within |
|
hearing and the night was quite still again, he turned to walk down the |
|
hill. |
|
|
|
“After that there gallop from Temple Bar, old lady, I won’t trust your |
|
fore-legs till I get you on the level,” said this hoarse messenger, |
|
glancing at his mare. “‘Recalled to life.’ That’s a Blazing strange |
|
message. Much of that wouldn’t do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry! You’d |
|
be in a Blazing bad way, if recalling to life was to come into fashion, |
|
Jerry!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. |
|
The Night Shadows |
|
|
|
|
|
A wonderful fact to reflect upon, that every human creature is |
|
constituted to be that profound secret and mystery to every other. A |
|
solemn consideration, when I enter a great city by night, that every |
|
one of those darkly clustered houses encloses its own secret; that every |
|
room in every one of them encloses its own secret; that every beating |
|
heart in the hundreds of thousands of breasts there, is, in some of |
|
its imaginings, a secret to the heart nearest it! Something of the |
|
awfulness, even of Death itself, is referable to this. No more can I |
|
turn the leaves of this dear book that I loved, and vainly hope in time |
|
to read it all. No more can I look into the depths of this unfathomable |
|
water, wherein, as momentary lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses |
|
of buried treasure and other things submerged. It was appointed that the |
|
book should shut with a spring, for ever and for ever, when I had read |
|
but a page. It was appointed that the water should be locked in an |
|
eternal frost, when the light was playing on its surface, and I stood |
|
in ignorance on the shore. My friend is dead, my neighbour is dead, |
|
my love, the darling of my soul, is dead; it is the inexorable |
|
consolidation and perpetuation of the secret that was always in that |
|
individuality, and which I shall carry in mine to my life’s end. In |
|
any of the burial-places of this city through which I pass, is there |
|
a sleeper more inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are, in their |
|
innermost personality, to me, or than I am to them? |
|
|
|
As to this, his natural and not to be alienated inheritance, the |
|
messenger on horseback had exactly the same possessions as the King, the |
|
first Minister of State, or the richest merchant in London. So with the |
|
three passengers shut up in the narrow compass of one lumbering old mail |
|
coach; they were mysteries to one another, as complete as if each had |
|
been in his own coach and six, or his own coach and sixty, with the |
|
breadth of a county between him and the next. |
|
|
|
The messenger rode back at an easy trot, stopping pretty often at |
|
ale-houses by the way to drink, but evincing a tendency to keep his |
|
own counsel, and to keep his hat cocked over his eyes. He had eyes that |
|
assorted very well with that decoration, being of a surface black, with |
|
no depth in the colour or form, and much too near together--as if they |
|
were afraid of being found out in something, singly, if they kept too |
|
far apart. They had a sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like |
|
a three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the chin and |
|
throat, which descended nearly to the wearer’s knees. When he stopped |
|
for drink, he moved this muffler with his left hand, only while he |
|
poured his liquor in with his right; as soon as that was done, he |
|
muffled again. |
|
|
|
“No, Jerry, no!” said the messenger, harping on one theme as he rode. |
|
“It wouldn’t do for you, Jerry. Jerry, you honest tradesman, it wouldn’t |
|
suit _your_ line of business! Recalled--! Bust me if I don’t think he’d |
|
been a drinking!” |
|
|
|
His message perplexed his mind to that degree that he was fain, several |
|
times, to take off his hat to scratch his head. Except on the crown, |
|
which was raggedly bald, he had stiff, black hair, standing jaggedly all |
|
over it, and growing down hill almost to his broad, blunt nose. It was |
|
so like Smith’s work, so much more like the top of a strongly spiked |
|
wall than a head of hair, that the best of players at leap-frog might |
|
have declined him, as the most dangerous man in the world to go over. |
|
|
|
While he trotted back with the message he was to deliver to the night |
|
watchman in his box at the door of Tellson’s Bank, by Temple Bar, who |
|
was to deliver it to greater authorities within, the shadows of the |
|
night took such shapes to him as arose out of the message, and took such |
|
shapes to the mare as arose out of _her_ private topics of uneasiness. |
|
They seemed to be numerous, for she shied at every shadow on the road. |
|
|
|
What time, the mail-coach lumbered, jolted, rattled, and bumped upon |
|
its tedious way, with its three fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom, |
|
likewise, the shadows of the night revealed themselves, in the forms |
|
their dozing eyes and wandering thoughts suggested. |
|
|
|
Tellson’s Bank had a run upon it in the mail. As the bank |
|
passenger--with an arm drawn through the leathern strap, which did what |
|
lay in it to keep him from pounding against the next passenger, |
|
and driving him into his corner, whenever the coach got a special |
|
jolt--nodded in his place, with half-shut eyes, the little |
|
coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly gleaming through them, and the |
|
bulky bundle of opposite passenger, became the bank, and did a great |
|
stroke of business. The rattle of the harness was the chink of money, |
|
and more drafts were honoured in five minutes than even Tellson’s, with |
|
all its foreign and home connection, ever paid in thrice the time. Then |
|
the strong-rooms underground, at Tellson’s, with such of their valuable |
|
stores and secrets as were known to the passenger (and it was not a |
|
little that he knew about them), opened before him, and he went in among |
|
them with the great keys and the feebly-burning candle, and found them |
|
safe, and strong, and sound, and still, just as he had last seen them. |
|
|
|
But, though the bank was almost always with him, and though the coach |
|
(in a confused way, like the presence of pain under an opiate) was |
|
always with him, there was another current of impression that never |
|
ceased to run, all through the night. He was on his way to dig some one |
|
out of a grave. |
|
|
|
Now, which of the multitude of faces that showed themselves before him |
|
was the true face of the buried person, the shadows of the night did |
|
not indicate; but they were all the faces of a man of five-and-forty by |
|
years, and they differed principally in the passions they expressed, |
|
and in the ghastliness of their worn and wasted state. Pride, contempt, |
|
defiance, stubbornness, submission, lamentation, succeeded one another; |
|
so did varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated hands |
|
and figures. But the face was in the main one face, and every head was |
|
prematurely white. A hundred times the dozing passenger inquired of this |
|
spectre: |
|
|
|
“Buried how long?” |
|
|
|
The answer was always the same: “Almost eighteen years.” |
|
|
|
“You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?” |
|
|
|
“Long ago.” |
|
|
|
“You know that you are recalled to life?” |
|
|
|
“They tell me so.” |
|
|
|
“I hope you care to live?” |
|
|
|
“I can’t say.” |
|
|
|
“Shall I show her to you? Will you come and see her?” |
|
|
|
The answers to this question were various and contradictory. Sometimes |
|
the broken reply was, “Wait! It would kill me if I saw her too soon.” |
|
Sometimes, it was given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was, |
|
“Take me to her.” Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and then it |
|
was, “I don’t know her. I don’t understand.” |
|
|
|
After such imaginary discourse, the passenger in his fancy would dig, |
|
and dig, dig--now with a spade, now with a great key, now with his |
|
hands--to dig this wretched creature out. Got out at last, with earth |
|
hanging about his face and hair, he would suddenly fan away to dust. The |
|
passenger would then start to himself, and lower the window, to get the |
|
reality of mist and rain on his cheek. |
|
|
|
Yet even when his eyes were opened on the mist and rain, on the moving |
|
patch of light from the lamps, and the hedge at the roadside retreating |
|
by jerks, the night shadows outside the coach would fall into the train |
|
of the night shadows within. The real Banking-house by Temple Bar, the |
|
real business of the past day, the real strong rooms, the real express |
|
sent after him, and the real message returned, would all be there. Out |
|
of the midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he would accost |
|
it again. |
|
|
|
“Buried how long?” |
|
|
|
“Almost eighteen years.” |
|
|
|
“I hope you care to live?” |
|
|
|
“I can’t say.” |
|
|
|
Dig--dig--dig--until an impatient movement from one of the two |
|
passengers would admonish him to pull up the window, draw his arm |
|
securely through the leathern strap, and speculate upon the two |
|
slumbering forms, until his mind lost its hold of them, and they again |
|
slid away into the bank and the grave. |
|
|
|
“Buried how long?” |
|
|
|
“Almost eighteen years.” |
|
|
|
“You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?” |
|
|
|
“Long ago.” |
|
|
|
The words were still in his hearing as just spoken--distinctly in |
|
his hearing as ever spoken words had been in his life--when the weary |
|
passenger started to the consciousness of daylight, and found that the |
|
shadows of the night were gone. |
|
|
|
He lowered the window, and looked out at the rising sun. There was a |
|
ridge of ploughed land, with a plough upon it where it had been left |
|
last night when the horses were unyoked; beyond, a quiet coppice-wood, |
|
in which many leaves of burning red and golden yellow still remained |
|
upon the trees. Though the earth was cold and wet, the sky was clear, |
|
and the sun rose bright, placid, and beautiful. |
|
|
|
“Eighteen years!” said the passenger, looking at the sun. “Gracious |
|
Creator of day! To be buried alive for eighteen years!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. |
|
The Preparation |
|
|
|
|
|
When the mail got successfully to Dover, in the course of the forenoon, |
|
the head drawer at the Royal George Hotel opened the coach-door as his |
|
custom was. He did it with some flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey |
|
from London in winter was an achievement to congratulate an adventurous |
|
traveller upon. |
|
|
|
By that time, there was only one adventurous traveller left be |
|
congratulated: for the two others had been set down at their respective |
|
roadside destinations. The mildewy inside of the coach, with its damp |
|
and dirty straw, its disagreeable smell, and its obscurity, was rather |
|
like a larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the passenger, shaking himself out |
|
of it in chains of straw, a tangle of shaggy wrapper, flapping hat, and |
|
muddy legs, was rather like a larger sort of dog. |
|
|
|
“There will be a packet to Calais, tomorrow, drawer?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir, if the weather holds and the wind sets tolerable fair. The |
|
tide will serve pretty nicely at about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed, |
|
sir?” |
|
|
|
“I shall not go to bed till night; but I want a bedroom, and a barber.” |
|
|
|
“And then breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir, if you please. |
|
Show Concord! Gentleman’s valise and hot water to Concord. Pull off |
|
gentleman’s boots in Concord. (You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.) |
|
Fetch barber to Concord. Stir about there, now, for Concord!” |
|
|
|
The Concord bed-chamber being always assigned to a passenger by the |
|
mail, and passengers by the mail being always heavily wrapped up from |
|
head to foot, the room had the odd interest for the establishment of the |
|
Royal George, that although but one kind of man was seen to go into it, |
|
all kinds and varieties of men came out of it. Consequently, another |
|
drawer, and two porters, and several maids and the landlady, were all |
|
loitering by accident at various points of the road between the Concord |
|
and the coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty, formally dressed in a |
|
brown suit of clothes, pretty well worn, but very well kept, with large |
|
square cuffs and large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to |
|
his breakfast. |
|
|
|
The coffee-room had no other occupant, that forenoon, than the gentleman |
|
in brown. His breakfast-table was drawn before the fire, and as he sat, |
|
with its light shining on him, waiting for the meal, he sat so still, |
|
that he might have been sitting for his portrait. |
|
|
|
Very orderly and methodical he looked, with a hand on each knee, and a |
|
loud watch ticking a sonorous sermon under his flapped waist-coat, |
|
as though it pitted its gravity and longevity against the levity and |
|
evanescence of the brisk fire. He had a good leg, and was a little vain |
|
of it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and close, and were of a |
|
fine texture; his shoes and buckles, too, though plain, were trim. He |
|
wore an odd little sleek crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to his |
|
head: which wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which |
|
looked far more as though it were spun from filaments of silk or glass. |
|
His linen, though not of a fineness in accordance with his stockings, |
|
was as white as the tops of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring |
|
beach, or the specks of sail that glinted in the sunlight far at sea. A |
|
face habitually suppressed and quieted, was still lighted up under the |
|
quaint wig by a pair of moist bright eyes that it must have cost |
|
their owner, in years gone by, some pains to drill to the composed and |
|
reserved expression of Tellson’s Bank. He had a healthy colour in his |
|
cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore few traces of anxiety. |
|
But, perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks in Tellson’s Bank were |
|
principally occupied with the cares of other people; and perhaps |
|
second-hand cares, like second-hand clothes, come easily off and on. |
|
|
|
Completing his resemblance to a man who was sitting for his portrait, |
|
Mr. Lorry dropped off to sleep. The arrival of his breakfast roused him, |
|
and he said to the drawer, as he moved his chair to it: |
|
|
|
“I wish accommodation prepared for a young lady who may come here at any |
|
time to-day. She may ask for Mr. Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a |
|
gentleman from Tellson’s Bank. Please to let me know.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir. Tellson’s Bank in London, sir?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir. We have oftentimes the honour to entertain your gentlemen in |
|
their travelling backwards and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A |
|
vast deal of travelling, sir, in Tellson and Company’s House.” |
|
|
|
“Yes. We are quite a French House, as well as an English one.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir. Not much in the habit of such travelling yourself, I think, |
|
sir?” |
|
|
|
“Not of late years. It is fifteen years since we--since I--came last |
|
from France.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed, sir? That was before my time here, sir. Before our people’s |
|
time here, sir. The George was in other hands at that time, sir.” |
|
|
|
“I believe so.” |
|
|
|
“But I would hold a pretty wager, sir, that a House like Tellson and |
|
Company was flourishing, a matter of fifty, not to speak of fifteen |
|
years ago?” |
|
|
|
“You might treble that, and say a hundred and fifty, yet not be far from |
|
the truth.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed, sir!” |
|
|
|
Rounding his mouth and both his eyes, as he stepped backward from the |
|
table, the waiter shifted his napkin from his right arm to his left, |
|
dropped into a comfortable attitude, and stood surveying the guest while |
|
he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower. According to the |
|
immemorial usage of waiters in all ages. |
|
|
|
When Mr. Lorry had finished his breakfast, he went out for a stroll on |
|
the beach. The little narrow, crooked town of Dover hid itself away |
|
from the beach, and ran its head into the chalk cliffs, like a marine |
|
ostrich. The beach was a desert of heaps of sea and stones tumbling |
|
wildly about, and the sea did what it liked, and what it liked was |
|
destruction. It thundered at the town, and thundered at the cliffs, and |
|
brought the coast down, madly. The air among the houses was of so strong |
|
a piscatory flavour that one might have supposed sick fish went up to be |
|
dipped in it, as sick people went down to be dipped in the sea. A little |
|
fishing was done in the port, and a quantity of strolling about by |
|
night, and looking seaward: particularly at those times when the tide |
|
made, and was near flood. Small tradesmen, who did no business whatever, |
|
sometimes unaccountably realised large fortunes, and it was remarkable |
|
that nobody in the neighbourhood could endure a lamplighter. |
|
|
|
As the day declined into the afternoon, and the air, which had been |
|
at intervals clear enough to allow the French coast to be seen, became |
|
again charged with mist and vapour, Mr. Lorry’s thoughts seemed to cloud |
|
too. When it was dark, and he sat before the coffee-room fire, awaiting |
|
his dinner as he had awaited his breakfast, his mind was busily digging, |
|
digging, digging, in the live red coals. |
|
|
|
A bottle of good claret after dinner does a digger in the red coals no |
|
harm, otherwise than as it has a tendency to throw him out of work. |
|
Mr. Lorry had been idle a long time, and had just poured out his last |
|
glassful of wine with as complete an appearance of satisfaction as is |
|
ever to be found in an elderly gentleman of a fresh complexion who has |
|
got to the end of a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the narrow |
|
street, and rumbled into the inn-yard. |
|
|
|
He set down his glass untouched. “This is Mam’selle!” said he. |
|
|
|
In a very few minutes the waiter came in to announce that Miss Manette |
|
had arrived from London, and would be happy to see the gentleman from |
|
Tellson’s. |
|
|
|
“So soon?” |
|
|
|
Miss Manette had taken some refreshment on the road, and required none |
|
then, and was extremely anxious to see the gentleman from Tellson’s |
|
immediately, if it suited his pleasure and convenience. |
|
|
|
The gentleman from Tellson’s had nothing left for it but to empty his |
|
glass with an air of stolid desperation, settle his odd little flaxen |
|
wig at the ears, and follow the waiter to Miss Manette’s apartment. |
|
It was a large, dark room, furnished in a funereal manner with black |
|
horsehair, and loaded with heavy dark tables. These had been oiled and |
|
oiled, until the two tall candles on the table in the middle of the room |
|
were gloomily reflected on every leaf; as if _they_ were buried, in deep |
|
graves of black mahogany, and no light to speak of could be expected |
|
from them until they were dug out. |
|
|
|
The obscurity was so difficult to penetrate that Mr. Lorry, picking his |
|
way over the well-worn Turkey carpet, supposed Miss Manette to be, for |
|
the moment, in some adjacent room, until, having got past the two tall |
|
candles, he saw standing to receive him by the table between them and |
|
the fire, a young lady of not more than seventeen, in a riding-cloak, |
|
and still holding her straw travelling-hat by its ribbon in her hand. As |
|
his eyes rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a quantity of golden |
|
hair, a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an inquiring look, and |
|
a forehead with a singular capacity (remembering how young and smooth |
|
it was), of rifting and knitting itself into an expression that was |
|
not quite one of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright |
|
fixed attention, though it included all the four expressions--as his |
|
eyes rested on these things, a sudden vivid likeness passed before him, |
|
of a child whom he had held in his arms on the passage across that very |
|
Channel, one cold time, when the hail drifted heavily and the sea ran |
|
high. The likeness passed away, like a breath along the surface of |
|
the gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the frame of which, a hospital |
|
procession of negro cupids, several headless and all cripples, were |
|
offering black baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of the |
|
feminine gender--and he made his formal bow to Miss Manette. |
|
|
|
“Pray take a seat, sir.” In a very clear and pleasant young voice; a |
|
little foreign in its accent, but a very little indeed. |
|
|
|
“I kiss your hand, miss,” said Mr. Lorry, with the manners of an earlier |
|
date, as he made his formal bow again, and took his seat. |
|
|
|
“I received a letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday, informing me that |
|
some intelligence--or discovery--” |
|
|
|
“The word is not material, miss; either word will do.” |
|
|
|
“--respecting the small property of my poor father, whom I never saw--so |
|
long dead--” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry moved in his chair, and cast a troubled look towards the |
|
hospital procession of negro cupids. As if _they_ had any help for |
|
anybody in their absurd baskets! |
|
|
|
“--rendered it necessary that I should go to Paris, there to communicate |
|
with a gentleman of the Bank, so good as to be despatched to Paris for |
|
the purpose.” |
|
|
|
“Myself.” |
|
|
|
“As I was prepared to hear, sir.” |
|
|
|
She curtseyed to him (young ladies made curtseys in those days), with a |
|
pretty desire to convey to him that she felt how much older and wiser he |
|
was than she. He made her another bow. |
|
|
|
“I replied to the Bank, sir, that as it was considered necessary, by |
|
those who know, and who are so kind as to advise me, that I should go to |
|
France, and that as I am an orphan and have no friend who could go with |
|
me, I should esteem it highly if I might be permitted to place myself, |
|
during the journey, under that worthy gentleman’s protection. The |
|
gentleman had left London, but I think a messenger was sent after him to |
|
beg the favour of his waiting for me here.” |
|
|
|
“I was happy,” said Mr. Lorry, “to be entrusted with the charge. I shall |
|
be more happy to execute it.” |
|
|
|
“Sir, I thank you indeed. I thank you very gratefully. It was told me |
|
by the Bank that the gentleman would explain to me the details of the |
|
business, and that I must prepare myself to find them of a surprising |
|
nature. I have done my best to prepare myself, and I naturally have a |
|
strong and eager interest to know what they are.” |
|
|
|
“Naturally,” said Mr. Lorry. “Yes--I--” |
|
|
|
After a pause, he added, again settling the crisp flaxen wig at the |
|
ears, “It is very difficult to begin.” |
|
|
|
He did not begin, but, in his indecision, met her glance. The young |
|
forehead lifted itself into that singular expression--but it was pretty |
|
and characteristic, besides being singular--and she raised her hand, |
|
as if with an involuntary action she caught at, or stayed some passing |
|
shadow. |
|
|
|
“Are you quite a stranger to me, sir?” |
|
|
|
“Am I not?” Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and extended them outwards with |
|
an argumentative smile. |
|
|
|
Between the eyebrows and just over the little feminine nose, the line of |
|
which was as delicate and fine as it was possible to be, the expression |
|
deepened itself as she took her seat thoughtfully in the chair by which |
|
she had hitherto remained standing. He watched her as she mused, and the |
|
moment she raised her eyes again, went on: |
|
|
|
“In your adopted country, I presume, I cannot do better than address you |
|
as a young English lady, Miss Manette?” |
|
|
|
“If you please, sir.” |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, I am a man of business. I have a business charge to |
|
acquit myself of. In your reception of it, don’t heed me any more than |
|
if I was a speaking machine--truly, I am not much else. I will, with |
|
your leave, relate to you, miss, the story of one of our customers.” |
|
|
|
“Story!” |
|
|
|
He seemed wilfully to mistake the word she had repeated, when he added, |
|
in a hurry, “Yes, customers; in the banking business we usually call |
|
our connection our customers. He was a French gentleman; a scientific |
|
gentleman; a man of great acquirements--a Doctor.” |
|
|
|
“Not of Beauvais?” |
|
|
|
“Why, yes, of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the |
|
gentleman was of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the |
|
gentleman was of repute in Paris. I had the honour of knowing him there. |
|
Our relations were business relations, but confidential. I was at that |
|
time in our French House, and had been--oh! twenty years.” |
|
|
|
“At that time--I may ask, at what time, sir?” |
|
|
|
“I speak, miss, of twenty years ago. He married--an English lady--and |
|
I was one of the trustees. His affairs, like the affairs of many other |
|
French gentlemen and French families, were entirely in Tellson’s hands. |
|
In a similar way I am, or I have been, trustee of one kind or other for |
|
scores of our customers. These are mere business relations, miss; |
|
there is no friendship in them, no particular interest, nothing like |
|
sentiment. I have passed from one to another, in the course of my |
|
business life, just as I pass from one of our customers to another in |
|
the course of my business day; in short, I have no feelings; I am a mere |
|
machine. To go on--” |
|
|
|
“But this is my father’s story, sir; and I begin to think”--the |
|
curiously roughened forehead was very intent upon him--“that when I was |
|
left an orphan through my mother’s surviving my father only two years, |
|
it was you who brought me to England. I am almost sure it was you.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry took the hesitating little hand that confidingly advanced |
|
to take his, and he put it with some ceremony to his lips. He then |
|
conducted the young lady straightway to her chair again, and, holding |
|
the chair-back with his left hand, and using his right by turns to rub |
|
his chin, pull his wig at the ears, or point what he said, stood looking |
|
down into her face while she sat looking up into his. |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, it _was_ I. And you will see how truly I spoke of myself |
|
just now, in saying I had no feelings, and that all the relations I hold |
|
with my fellow-creatures are mere business relations, when you reflect |
|
that I have never seen you since. No; you have been the ward of |
|
Tellson’s House since, and I have been busy with the other business of |
|
Tellson’s House since. Feelings! I have no time for them, no chance |
|
of them. I pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary |
|
Mangle.” |
|
|
|
After this odd description of his daily routine of employment, Mr. Lorry |
|
flattened his flaxen wig upon his head with both hands (which was most |
|
unnecessary, for nothing could be flatter than its shining surface was |
|
before), and resumed his former attitude. |
|
|
|
“So far, miss (as you have remarked), this is the story of your |
|
regretted father. Now comes the difference. If your father had not died |
|
when he did--Don’t be frightened! How you start!” |
|
|
|
She did, indeed, start. And she caught his wrist with both her hands. |
|
|
|
“Pray,” said Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone, bringing his left hand from |
|
the back of the chair to lay it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped |
|
him in so violent a tremble: “pray control your agitation--a matter of |
|
business. As I was saying--” |
|
|
|
Her look so discomposed him that he stopped, wandered, and began anew: |
|
|
|
“As I was saying; if Monsieur Manette had not died; if he had suddenly |
|
and silently disappeared; if he had been spirited away; if it had not |
|
been difficult to guess to what dreadful place, though no art could |
|
trace him; if he had an enemy in some compatriot who could exercise a |
|
privilege that I in my own time have known the boldest people afraid |
|
to speak of in a whisper, across the water there; for instance, the |
|
privilege of filling up blank forms for the consignment of any one |
|
to the oblivion of a prison for any length of time; if his wife had |
|
implored the king, the queen, the court, the clergy, for any tidings of |
|
him, and all quite in vain;--then the history of your father would have |
|
been the history of this unfortunate gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais.” |
|
|
|
“I entreat you to tell me more, sir.” |
|
|
|
“I will. I am going to. You can bear it?” |
|
|
|
“I can bear anything but the uncertainty you leave me in at this |
|
moment.” |
|
|
|
“You speak collectedly, and you--_are_ collected. That’s good!” (Though |
|
his manner was less satisfied than his words.) “A matter of business. |
|
Regard it as a matter of business--business that must be done. Now |
|
if this doctor’s wife, though a lady of great courage and spirit, |
|
had suffered so intensely from this cause before her little child was |
|
born--” |
|
|
|
“The little child was a daughter, sir.” |
|
|
|
“A daughter. A-a-matter of business--don’t be distressed. Miss, if the |
|
poor lady had suffered so intensely before her little child was born, |
|
that she came to the determination of sparing the poor child the |
|
inheritance of any part of the agony she had known the pains of, by |
|
rearing her in the belief that her father was dead--No, don’t kneel! In |
|
Heaven’s name why should you kneel to me!” |
|
|
|
“For the truth. O dear, good, compassionate sir, for the truth!” |
|
|
|
“A--a matter of business. You confuse me, and how can I transact |
|
business if I am confused? Let us be clear-headed. If you could kindly |
|
mention now, for instance, what nine times ninepence are, or how many |
|
shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so encouraging. I should be so |
|
much more at my ease about your state of mind.” |
|
|
|
Without directly answering to this appeal, she sat so still when he had |
|
very gently raised her, and the hands that had not ceased to clasp |
|
his wrists were so much more steady than they had been, that she |
|
communicated some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry. |
|
|
|
“That’s right, that’s right. Courage! Business! You have business before |
|
you; useful business. Miss Manette, your mother took this course with |
|
you. And when she died--I believe broken-hearted--having never slackened |
|
her unavailing search for your father, she left you, at two years old, |
|
to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and happy, without the dark cloud |
|
upon you of living in uncertainty whether your father soon wore his |
|
heart out in prison, or wasted there through many lingering years.” |
|
|
|
As he said the words he looked down, with an admiring pity, on the |
|
flowing golden hair; as if he pictured to himself that it might have |
|
been already tinged with grey. |
|
|
|
“You know that your parents had no great possession, and that what |
|
they had was secured to your mother and to you. There has been no new |
|
discovery, of money, or of any other property; but--” |
|
|
|
He felt his wrist held closer, and he stopped. The expression in the |
|
forehead, which had so particularly attracted his notice, and which was |
|
now immovable, had deepened into one of pain and horror. |
|
|
|
“But he has been--been found. He is alive. Greatly changed, it is too |
|
probable; almost a wreck, it is possible; though we will hope the best. |
|
Still, alive. Your father has been taken to the house of an old servant |
|
in Paris, and we are going there: I, to identify him if I can: you, to |
|
restore him to life, love, duty, rest, comfort.” |
|
|
|
A shiver ran through her frame, and from it through his. She said, in a |
|
low, distinct, awe-stricken voice, as if she were saying it in a dream, |
|
|
|
“I am going to see his Ghost! It will be his Ghost--not him!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry quietly chafed the hands that held his arm. “There, there, |
|
there! See now, see now! The best and the worst are known to you, now. |
|
You are well on your way to the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair |
|
sea voyage, and a fair land journey, you will be soon at his dear side.” |
|
|
|
She repeated in the same tone, sunk to a whisper, “I have been free, I |
|
have been happy, yet his Ghost has never haunted me!” |
|
|
|
“Only one thing more,” said Mr. Lorry, laying stress upon it as a |
|
wholesome means of enforcing her attention: “he has been found under |
|
another name; his own, long forgotten or long concealed. It would be |
|
worse than useless now to inquire which; worse than useless to seek to |
|
know whether he has been for years overlooked, or always designedly |
|
held prisoner. It would be worse than useless now to make any inquiries, |
|
because it would be dangerous. Better not to mention the subject, |
|
anywhere or in any way, and to remove him--for a while at all |
|
events--out of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman, and even |
|
Tellson’s, important as they are to French credit, avoid all naming of |
|
the matter. I carry about me, not a scrap of writing openly referring |
|
to it. This is a secret service altogether. My credentials, entries, |
|
and memoranda, are all comprehended in the one line, ‘Recalled to Life;’ |
|
which may mean anything. But what is the matter! She doesn’t notice a |
|
word! Miss Manette!” |
|
|
|
Perfectly still and silent, and not even fallen back in her chair, she |
|
sat under his hand, utterly insensible; with her eyes open and fixed |
|
upon him, and with that last expression looking as if it were carved or |
|
branded into her forehead. So close was her hold upon his arm, that he |
|
feared to detach himself lest he should hurt her; therefore he called |
|
out loudly for assistance without moving. |
|
|
|
A wild-looking woman, whom even in his agitation, Mr. Lorry observed to |
|
be all of a red colour, and to have red hair, and to be dressed in some |
|
extraordinary tight-fitting fashion, and to have on her head a most |
|
wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden measure, and good measure too, |
|
or a great Stilton cheese, came running into the room in advance of the |
|
inn servants, and soon settled the question of his detachment from the |
|
poor young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest, and sending him |
|
flying back against the nearest wall. |
|
|
|
(“I really think this must be a man!” was Mr. Lorry’s breathless |
|
reflection, simultaneously with his coming against the wall.) |
|
|
|
“Why, look at you all!” bawled this figure, addressing the inn servants. |
|
“Why don’t you go and fetch things, instead of standing there staring |
|
at me? I am not so much to look at, am I? Why don’t you go and fetch |
|
things? I’ll let you know, if you don’t bring smelling-salts, cold |
|
water, and vinegar, quick, I will.” |
|
|
|
There was an immediate dispersal for these restoratives, and she |
|
softly laid the patient on a sofa, and tended her with great skill and |
|
gentleness: calling her “my precious!” and “my bird!” and spreading her |
|
golden hair aside over her shoulders with great pride and care. |
|
|
|
“And you in brown!” she said, indignantly turning to Mr. Lorry; |
|
“couldn’t you tell her what you had to tell her, without frightening her |
|
to death? Look at her, with her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do |
|
you call _that_ being a Banker?” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry was so exceedingly disconcerted by a question so hard to |
|
answer, that he could only look on, at a distance, with much feebler |
|
sympathy and humility, while the strong woman, having banished the inn |
|
servants under the mysterious penalty of “letting them know” something |
|
not mentioned if they stayed there, staring, recovered her charge by a |
|
regular series of gradations, and coaxed her to lay her drooping head |
|
upon her shoulder. |
|
|
|
“I hope she will do well now,” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“No thanks to you in brown, if she does. My darling pretty!” |
|
|
|
“I hope,” said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of feeble sympathy and |
|
humility, “that you accompany Miss Manette to France?” |
|
|
|
“A likely thing, too!” replied the strong woman. “If it was ever |
|
intended that I should go across salt water, do you suppose Providence |
|
would have cast my lot in an island?” |
|
|
|
This being another question hard to answer, Mr. Jarvis Lorry withdrew to |
|
consider it. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V. |
|
The Wine-shop |
|
|
|
|
|
A large cask of wine had been dropped and broken, in the street. The |
|
accident had happened in getting it out of a cart; the cask had tumbled |
|
out with a run, the hoops had burst, and it lay on the stones just |
|
outside the door of the wine-shop, shattered like a walnut-shell. |
|
|
|
All the people within reach had suspended their business, or their |
|
idleness, to run to the spot and drink the wine. The rough, irregular |
|
stones of the street, pointing every way, and designed, one might have |
|
thought, expressly to lame all living creatures that approached them, |
|
had dammed it into little pools; these were surrounded, each by its own |
|
jostling group or crowd, according to its size. Some men kneeled down, |
|
made scoops of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to help |
|
women, who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the wine had all |
|
run out between their fingers. Others, men and women, dipped in |
|
the puddles with little mugs of mutilated earthenware, or even with |
|
handkerchiefs from women’s heads, which were squeezed dry into infants’ |
|
mouths; others made small mud-embankments, to stem the wine as it ran; |
|
others, directed by lookers-on up at high windows, darted here and |
|
there, to cut off little streams of wine that started away in new |
|
directions; others devoted themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed |
|
pieces of the cask, licking, and even champing the moister wine-rotted |
|
fragments with eager relish. There was no drainage to carry off the |
|
wine, and not only did it all get taken up, but so much mud got taken up |
|
along with it, that there might have been a scavenger in the street, |
|
if anybody acquainted with it could have believed in such a miraculous |
|
presence. |
|
|
|
A shrill sound of laughter and of amused voices--voices of men, women, |
|
and children--resounded in the street while this wine game lasted. There |
|
was little roughness in the sport, and much playfulness. There was a |
|
special companionship in it, an observable inclination on the part |
|
of every one to join some other one, which led, especially among the |
|
luckier or lighter-hearted, to frolicsome embraces, drinking of healths, |
|
shaking of hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a dozen |
|
together. When the wine was gone, and the places where it had been |
|
most abundant were raked into a gridiron-pattern by fingers, these |
|
demonstrations ceased, as suddenly as they had broken out. The man who |
|
had left his saw sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in |
|
motion again; the women who had left on a door-step the little pot of |
|
hot ashes, at which she had been trying to soften the pain in her own |
|
starved fingers and toes, or in those of her child, returned to it; men |
|
with bare arms, matted locks, and cadaverous faces, who had emerged into |
|
the winter light from cellars, moved away, to descend again; and a gloom |
|
gathered on the scene that appeared more natural to it than sunshine. |
|
|
|
The wine was red wine, and had stained the ground of the narrow street |
|
in the suburb of Saint Antoine, in Paris, where it was spilled. It had |
|
stained many hands, too, and many faces, and many naked feet, and many |
|
wooden shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the wood, left red marks |
|
on the billets; and the forehead of the woman who nursed her baby, was |
|
stained with the stain of the old rag she wound about her head again. |
|
Those who had been greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a |
|
tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so besmirched, his |
|
head more out of a long squalid bag of a nightcap than in it, scrawled |
|
upon a wall with his finger dipped in muddy wine-lees--BLOOD. |
|
|
|
The time was to come, when that wine too would be spilled on the |
|
street-stones, and when the stain of it would be red upon many there. |
|
|
|
And now that the cloud settled on Saint Antoine, which a momentary |
|
gleam had driven from his sacred countenance, the darkness of it was |
|
heavy--cold, dirt, sickness, ignorance, and want, were the lords in |
|
waiting on the saintly presence--nobles of great power all of them; |
|
but, most especially the last. Samples of a people that had undergone a |
|
terrible grinding and regrinding in the mill, and certainly not in the |
|
fabulous mill which ground old people young, shivered at every corner, |
|
passed in and out at every doorway, looked from every window, fluttered |
|
in every vestige of a garment that the wind shook. The mill which |
|
had worked them down, was the mill that grinds young people old; the |
|
children had ancient faces and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the |
|
grown faces, and ploughed into every furrow of age and coming up afresh, |
|
was the sigh, Hunger. It was prevalent everywhere. Hunger was pushed out |
|
of the tall houses, in the wretched clothing that hung upon poles and |
|
lines; Hunger was patched into them with straw and rag and wood and |
|
paper; Hunger was repeated in every fragment of the small modicum of |
|
firewood that the man sawed off; Hunger stared down from the smokeless |
|
chimneys, and started up from the filthy street that had no offal, |
|
among its refuse, of anything to eat. Hunger was the inscription on the |
|
baker’s shelves, written in every small loaf of his scanty stock of |
|
bad bread; at the sausage-shop, in every dead-dog preparation that |
|
was offered for sale. Hunger rattled its dry bones among the roasting |
|
chestnuts in the turned cylinder; Hunger was shred into atomics in every |
|
farthing porringer of husky chips of potato, fried with some reluctant |
|
drops of oil. |
|
|
|
Its abiding place was in all things fitted to it. A narrow winding |
|
street, full of offence and stench, with other narrow winding streets |
|
diverging, all peopled by rags and nightcaps, and all smelling of rags |
|
and nightcaps, and all visible things with a brooding look upon them |
|
that looked ill. In the hunted air of the people there was yet some |
|
wild-beast thought of the possibility of turning at bay. Depressed and |
|
slinking though they were, eyes of fire were not wanting among them; nor |
|
compressed lips, white with what they suppressed; nor foreheads knitted |
|
into the likeness of the gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or |
|
inflicting. The trade signs (and they were almost as many as the shops) |
|
were, all, grim illustrations of Want. The butcher and the porkman |
|
painted up, only the leanest scrags of meat; the baker, the coarsest of |
|
meagre loaves. The people rudely pictured as drinking in the wine-shops, |
|
croaked over their scanty measures of thin wine and beer, and were |
|
gloweringly confidential together. Nothing was represented in a |
|
flourishing condition, save tools and weapons; but, the cutler’s knives |
|
and axes were sharp and bright, the smith’s hammers were heavy, and the |
|
gunmaker’s stock was murderous. The crippling stones of the pavement, |
|
with their many little reservoirs of mud and water, had no footways, but |
|
broke off abruptly at the doors. The kennel, to make amends, ran down |
|
the middle of the street--when it ran at all: which was only after heavy |
|
rains, and then it ran, by many eccentric fits, into the houses. Across |
|
the streets, at wide intervals, one clumsy lamp was slung by a rope and |
|
pulley; at night, when the lamplighter had let these down, and lighted, |
|
and hoisted them again, a feeble grove of dim wicks swung in a sickly |
|
manner overhead, as if they were at sea. Indeed they were at sea, and |
|
the ship and crew were in peril of tempest. |
|
|
|
For, the time was to come, when the gaunt scarecrows of that region |
|
should have watched the lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so |
|
long, as to conceive the idea of improving on his method, and hauling |
|
up men by those ropes and pulleys, to flare upon the darkness of their |
|
condition. But, the time was not come yet; and every wind that blew over |
|
France shook the rags of the scarecrows in vain, for the birds, fine of |
|
song and feather, took no warning. |
|
|
|
The wine-shop was a corner shop, better than most others in its |
|
appearance and degree, and the master of the wine-shop had stood outside |
|
it, in a yellow waistcoat and green breeches, looking on at the struggle |
|
for the lost wine. “It’s not my affair,” said he, with a final shrug |
|
of the shoulders. “The people from the market did it. Let them bring |
|
another.” |
|
|
|
There, his eyes happening to catch the tall joker writing up his joke, |
|
he called to him across the way: |
|
|
|
“Say, then, my Gaspard, what do you do there?” |
|
|
|
The fellow pointed to his joke with immense significance, as is often |
|
the way with his tribe. It missed its mark, and completely failed, as is |
|
often the way with his tribe too. |
|
|
|
“What now? Are you a subject for the mad hospital?” said the wine-shop |
|
keeper, crossing the road, and obliterating the jest with a handful of |
|
mud, picked up for the purpose, and smeared over it. “Why do you write |
|
in the public streets? Is there--tell me thou--is there no other place |
|
to write such words in?” |
|
|
|
In his expostulation he dropped his cleaner hand (perhaps accidentally, |
|
perhaps not) upon the joker’s heart. The joker rapped it with his |
|
own, took a nimble spring upward, and came down in a fantastic dancing |
|
attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off his foot into his |
|
hand, and held out. A joker of an extremely, not to say wolfishly |
|
practical character, he looked, under those circumstances. |
|
|
|
“Put it on, put it on,” said the other. “Call wine, wine; and finish |
|
there.” With that advice, he wiped his soiled hand upon the joker’s |
|
dress, such as it was--quite deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on |
|
his account; and then recrossed the road and entered the wine-shop. |
|
|
|
This wine-shop keeper was a bull-necked, martial-looking man of thirty, |
|
and he should have been of a hot temperament, for, although it was a |
|
bitter day, he wore no coat, but carried one slung over his shoulder. |
|
His shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and his brown arms were bare to |
|
the elbows. Neither did he wear anything more on his head than his own |
|
crisply-curling short dark hair. He was a dark man altogether, with good |
|
eyes and a good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured looking on |
|
the whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man of a strong |
|
resolution and a set purpose; a man not desirable to be met, rushing |
|
down a narrow pass with a gulf on either side, for nothing would turn |
|
the man. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge, his wife, sat in the shop behind the counter as he |
|
came in. Madame Defarge was a stout woman of about his own age, with |
|
a watchful eye that seldom seemed to look at anything, a large hand |
|
heavily ringed, a steady face, strong features, and great composure of |
|
manner. There was a character about Madame Defarge, from which one might |
|
have predicated that she did not often make mistakes against herself |
|
in any of the reckonings over which she presided. Madame Defarge being |
|
sensitive to cold, was wrapped in fur, and had a quantity of bright |
|
shawl twined about her head, though not to the concealment of her large |
|
earrings. Her knitting was before her, but she had laid it down to pick |
|
her teeth with a toothpick. Thus engaged, with her right elbow supported |
|
by her left hand, Madame Defarge said nothing when her lord came in, but |
|
coughed just one grain of cough. This, in combination with the lifting |
|
of her darkly defined eyebrows over her toothpick by the breadth of a |
|
line, suggested to her husband that he would do well to look round the |
|
shop among the customers, for any new customer who had dropped in while |
|
he stepped over the way. |
|
|
|
The wine-shop keeper accordingly rolled his eyes about, until they |
|
rested upon an elderly gentleman and a young lady, who were seated in |
|
a corner. Other company were there: two playing cards, two playing |
|
dominoes, three standing by the counter lengthening out a short supply |
|
of wine. As he passed behind the counter, he took notice that the |
|
elderly gentleman said in a look to the young lady, “This is our man.” |
|
|
|
“What the devil do _you_ do in that galley there?” said Monsieur Defarge |
|
to himself; “I don’t know you.” |
|
|
|
But, he feigned not to notice the two strangers, and fell into discourse |
|
with the triumvirate of customers who were drinking at the counter. |
|
|
|
“How goes it, Jacques?” said one of these three to Monsieur Defarge. “Is |
|
all the spilt wine swallowed?” |
|
|
|
“Every drop, Jacques,” answered Monsieur Defarge. |
|
|
|
When this interchange of Christian name was effected, Madame Defarge, |
|
picking her teeth with her toothpick, coughed another grain of cough, |
|
and raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line. |
|
|
|
“It is not often,” said the second of the three, addressing Monsieur |
|
Defarge, “that many of these miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or |
|
of anything but black bread and death. Is it not so, Jacques?” |
|
|
|
“It is so, Jacques,” Monsieur Defarge returned. |
|
|
|
At this second interchange of the Christian name, Madame Defarge, still |
|
using her toothpick with profound composure, coughed another grain of |
|
cough, and raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line. |
|
|
|
The last of the three now said his say, as he put down his empty |
|
drinking vessel and smacked his lips. |
|
|
|
“Ah! So much the worse! A bitter taste it is that such poor cattle |
|
always have in their mouths, and hard lives they live, Jacques. Am I |
|
right, Jacques?” |
|
|
|
“You are right, Jacques,” was the response of Monsieur Defarge. |
|
|
|
This third interchange of the Christian name was completed at the moment |
|
when Madame Defarge put her toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and |
|
slightly rustled in her seat. |
|
|
|
“Hold then! True!” muttered her husband. “Gentlemen--my wife!” |
|
|
|
The three customers pulled off their hats to Madame Defarge, with three |
|
flourishes. She acknowledged their homage by bending her head, and |
|
giving them a quick look. Then she glanced in a casual manner round the |
|
wine-shop, took up her knitting with great apparent calmness and repose |
|
of spirit, and became absorbed in it. |
|
|
|
“Gentlemen,” said her husband, who had kept his bright eye observantly |
|
upon her, “good day. The chamber, furnished bachelor-fashion, that you |
|
wished to see, and were inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the |
|
fifth floor. The doorway of the staircase gives on the little courtyard |
|
close to the left here,” pointing with his hand, “near to the window of |
|
my establishment. But, now that I remember, one of you has already been |
|
there, and can show the way. Gentlemen, adieu!” |
|
|
|
They paid for their wine, and left the place. The eyes of Monsieur |
|
Defarge were studying his wife at her knitting when the elderly |
|
gentleman advanced from his corner, and begged the favour of a word. |
|
|
|
“Willingly, sir,” said Monsieur Defarge, and quietly stepped with him to |
|
the door. |
|
|
|
Their conference was very short, but very decided. Almost at the first |
|
word, Monsieur Defarge started and became deeply attentive. It had |
|
not lasted a minute, when he nodded and went out. The gentleman then |
|
beckoned to the young lady, and they, too, went out. Madame Defarge |
|
knitted with nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and saw nothing. |
|
|
|
Mr. Jarvis Lorry and Miss Manette, emerging from the wine-shop thus, |
|
joined Monsieur Defarge in the doorway to which he had directed his own |
|
company just before. It opened from a stinking little black courtyard, |
|
and was the general public entrance to a great pile of houses, inhabited |
|
by a great number of people. In the gloomy tile-paved entry to the |
|
gloomy tile-paved staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one knee |
|
to the child of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It was |
|
a gentle action, but not at all gently done; a very remarkable |
|
transformation had come over him in a few seconds. He had no good-humour |
|
in his face, nor any openness of aspect left, but had become a secret, |
|
angry, dangerous man. |
|
|
|
“It is very high; it is a little difficult. Better to begin slowly.” |
|
Thus, Monsieur Defarge, in a stern voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began |
|
ascending the stairs. |
|
|
|
“Is he alone?” the latter whispered. |
|
|
|
“Alone! God help him, who should be with him!” said the other, in the |
|
same low voice. |
|
|
|
“Is he always alone, then?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“Of his own desire?” |
|
|
|
“Of his own necessity. As he was, when I first saw him after they |
|
found me and demanded to know if I would take him, and, at my peril be |
|
discreet--as he was then, so he is now.” |
|
|
|
“He is greatly changed?” |
|
|
|
“Changed!” |
|
|
|
The keeper of the wine-shop stopped to strike the wall with his hand, |
|
and mutter a tremendous curse. No direct answer could have been half so |
|
forcible. Mr. Lorry’s spirits grew heavier and heavier, as he and his |
|
two companions ascended higher and higher. |
|
|
|
Such a staircase, with its accessories, in the older and more crowded |
|
parts of Paris, would be bad enough now; but, at that time, it was vile |
|
indeed to unaccustomed and unhardened senses. Every little habitation |
|
within the great foul nest of one high building--that is to say, |
|
the room or rooms within every door that opened on the general |
|
staircase--left its own heap of refuse on its own landing, besides |
|
flinging other refuse from its own windows. The uncontrollable and |
|
hopeless mass of decomposition so engendered, would have polluted |
|
the air, even if poverty and deprivation had not loaded it with their |
|
intangible impurities; the two bad sources combined made it almost |
|
insupportable. Through such an atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt |
|
and poison, the way lay. Yielding to his own disturbance of mind, and to |
|
his young companion’s agitation, which became greater every instant, Mr. |
|
Jarvis Lorry twice stopped to rest. Each of these stoppages was made |
|
at a doleful grating, by which any languishing good airs that were left |
|
uncorrupted, seemed to escape, and all spoilt and sickly vapours seemed |
|
to crawl in. Through the rusted bars, tastes, rather than glimpses, were |
|
caught of the jumbled neighbourhood; and nothing within range, nearer |
|
or lower than the summits of the two great towers of Notre-Dame, had any |
|
promise on it of healthy life or wholesome aspirations. |
|
|
|
At last, the top of the staircase was gained, and they stopped for the |
|
third time. There was yet an upper staircase, of a steeper inclination |
|
and of contracted dimensions, to be ascended, before the garret story |
|
was reached. The keeper of the wine-shop, always going a little in |
|
advance, and always going on the side which Mr. Lorry took, as though he |
|
dreaded to be asked any question by the young lady, turned himself about |
|
here, and, carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he carried over |
|
his shoulder, took out a key. |
|
|
|
“The door is locked then, my friend?” said Mr. Lorry, surprised. |
|
|
|
“Ay. Yes,” was the grim reply of Monsieur Defarge. |
|
|
|
“You think it necessary to keep the unfortunate gentleman so retired?” |
|
|
|
“I think it necessary to turn the key.” Monsieur Defarge whispered it |
|
closer in his ear, and frowned heavily. |
|
|
|
“Why?” |
|
|
|
“Why! Because he has lived so long, locked up, that he would be |
|
frightened--rave--tear himself to pieces--die--come to I know not what |
|
harm--if his door was left open.” |
|
|
|
“Is it possible!” exclaimed Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“Is it possible!” repeated Defarge, bitterly. “Yes. And a beautiful |
|
world we live in, when it _is_ possible, and when many other such things |
|
are possible, and not only possible, but done--done, see you!--under |
|
that sky there, every day. Long live the Devil. Let us go on.” |
|
|
|
This dialogue had been held in so very low a whisper, that not a word |
|
of it had reached the young lady’s ears. But, by this time she trembled |
|
under such strong emotion, and her face expressed such deep anxiety, |
|
and, above all, such dread and terror, that Mr. Lorry felt it incumbent |
|
on him to speak a word or two of reassurance. |
|
|
|
“Courage, dear miss! Courage! Business! The worst will be over in a |
|
moment; it is but passing the room-door, and the worst is over. Then, |
|
all the good you bring to him, all the relief, all the happiness you |
|
bring to him, begin. Let our good friend here, assist you on that side. |
|
That’s well, friend Defarge. Come, now. Business, business!” |
|
|
|
They went up slowly and softly. The staircase was short, and they were |
|
soon at the top. There, as it had an abrupt turn in it, they came all at |
|
once in sight of three men, whose heads were bent down close together at |
|
the side of a door, and who were intently looking into the room to which |
|
the door belonged, through some chinks or holes in the wall. On hearing |
|
footsteps close at hand, these three turned, and rose, and showed |
|
themselves to be the three of one name who had been drinking in the |
|
wine-shop. |
|
|
|
“I forgot them in the surprise of your visit,” explained Monsieur |
|
Defarge. “Leave us, good boys; we have business here.” |
|
|
|
The three glided by, and went silently down. |
|
|
|
There appearing to be no other door on that floor, and the keeper of |
|
the wine-shop going straight to this one when they were left alone, Mr. |
|
Lorry asked him in a whisper, with a little anger: |
|
|
|
“Do you make a show of Monsieur Manette?” |
|
|
|
“I show him, in the way you have seen, to a chosen few.” |
|
|
|
“Is that well?” |
|
|
|
“_I_ think it is well.” |
|
|
|
“Who are the few? How do you choose them?” |
|
|
|
“I choose them as real men, of my name--Jacques is my name--to whom the |
|
sight is likely to do good. Enough; you are English; that is another |
|
thing. Stay there, if you please, a little moment.” |
|
|
|
With an admonitory gesture to keep them back, he stooped, and looked in |
|
through the crevice in the wall. Soon raising his head again, he struck |
|
twice or thrice upon the door--evidently with no other object than to |
|
make a noise there. With the same intention, he drew the key across it, |
|
three or four times, before he put it clumsily into the lock, and turned |
|
it as heavily as he could. |
|
|
|
The door slowly opened inward under his hand, and he looked into the |
|
room and said something. A faint voice answered something. Little more |
|
than a single syllable could have been spoken on either side. |
|
|
|
He looked back over his shoulder, and beckoned them to enter. Mr. Lorry |
|
got his arm securely round the daughter’s waist, and held her; for he |
|
felt that she was sinking. |
|
|
|
“A-a-a-business, business!” he urged, with a moisture that was not of |
|
business shining on his cheek. “Come in, come in!” |
|
|
|
“I am afraid of it,” she answered, shuddering. |
|
|
|
“Of it? What?” |
|
|
|
“I mean of him. Of my father.” |
|
|
|
Rendered in a manner desperate, by her state and by the beckoning of |
|
their conductor, he drew over his neck the arm that shook upon his |
|
shoulder, lifted her a little, and hurried her into the room. He sat her |
|
down just within the door, and held her, clinging to him. |
|
|
|
Defarge drew out the key, closed the door, locked it on the inside, |
|
took out the key again, and held it in his hand. All this he did, |
|
methodically, and with as loud and harsh an accompaniment of noise as he |
|
could make. Finally, he walked across the room with a measured tread to |
|
where the window was. He stopped there, and faced round. |
|
|
|
The garret, built to be a depository for firewood and the like, was dim |
|
and dark: for, the window of dormer shape, was in truth a door in the |
|
roof, with a little crane over it for the hoisting up of stores from |
|
the street: unglazed, and closing up the middle in two pieces, like any |
|
other door of French construction. To exclude the cold, one half of this |
|
door was fast closed, and the other was opened but a very little way. |
|
Such a scanty portion of light was admitted through these means, that it |
|
was difficult, on first coming in, to see anything; and long habit |
|
alone could have slowly formed in any one, the ability to do any work |
|
requiring nicety in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being |
|
done in the garret; for, with his back towards the door, and his face |
|
towards the window where the keeper of the wine-shop stood looking at |
|
him, a white-haired man sat on a low bench, stooping forward and very |
|
busy, making shoes. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI. |
|
The Shoemaker |
|
|
|
|
|
“Good day!” said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at the white head that |
|
bent low over the shoemaking. |
|
|
|
It was raised for a moment, and a very faint voice responded to the |
|
salutation, as if it were at a distance: |
|
|
|
“Good day!” |
|
|
|
“You are still hard at work, I see?” |
|
|
|
After a long silence, the head was lifted for another moment, and the |
|
voice replied, “Yes--I am working.” This time, a pair of haggard eyes |
|
had looked at the questioner, before the face had dropped again. |
|
|
|
The faintness of the voice was pitiable and dreadful. It was not the |
|
faintness of physical weakness, though confinement and hard fare no |
|
doubt had their part in it. Its deplorable peculiarity was, that it was |
|
the faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like the last feeble echo |
|
of a sound made long and long ago. So entirely had it lost the life and |
|
resonance of the human voice, that it affected the senses like a once |
|
beautiful colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and |
|
suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground. So expressive |
|
it was, of a hopeless and lost creature, that a famished traveller, |
|
wearied out by lonely wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered |
|
home and friends in such a tone before lying down to die. |
|
|
|
Some minutes of silent work had passed: and the haggard eyes had looked |
|
up again: not with any interest or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical |
|
perception, beforehand, that the spot where the only visitor they were |
|
aware of had stood, was not yet empty. |
|
|
|
“I want,” said Defarge, who had not removed his gaze from the shoemaker, |
|
“to let in a little more light here. You can bear a little more?” |
|
|
|
The shoemaker stopped his work; looked with a vacant air of listening, |
|
at the floor on one side of him; then similarly, at the floor on the |
|
other side of him; then, upward at the speaker. |
|
|
|
“What did you say?” |
|
|
|
“You can bear a little more light?” |
|
|
|
“I must bear it, if you let it in.” (Laying the palest shadow of a |
|
stress upon the second word.) |
|
|
|
The opened half-door was opened a little further, and secured at that |
|
angle for the time. A broad ray of light fell into the garret, and |
|
showed the workman with an unfinished shoe upon his lap, pausing in his |
|
labour. His few common tools and various scraps of leather were at his |
|
feet and on his bench. He had a white beard, raggedly cut, but not very |
|
long, a hollow face, and exceedingly bright eyes. The hollowness and |
|
thinness of his face would have caused them to look large, under his yet |
|
dark eyebrows and his confused white hair, though they had been really |
|
otherwise; but, they were naturally large, and looked unnaturally so. |
|
His yellow rags of shirt lay open at the throat, and showed his body |
|
to be withered and worn. He, and his old canvas frock, and his loose |
|
stockings, and all his poor tatters of clothes, had, in a long seclusion |
|
from direct light and air, faded down to such a dull uniformity of |
|
parchment-yellow, that it would have been hard to say which was which. |
|
|
|
He had put up a hand between his eyes and the light, and the very bones |
|
of it seemed transparent. So he sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze, |
|
pausing in his work. He never looked at the figure before him, without |
|
first looking down on this side of himself, then on that, as if he had |
|
lost the habit of associating place with sound; he never spoke, without |
|
first wandering in this manner, and forgetting to speak. |
|
|
|
“Are you going to finish that pair of shoes to-day?” asked Defarge, |
|
motioning to Mr. Lorry to come forward. |
|
|
|
“What did you say?” |
|
|
|
“Do you mean to finish that pair of shoes to-day?” |
|
|
|
“I can’t say that I mean to. I suppose so. I don’t know.” |
|
|
|
But, the question reminded him of his work, and he bent over it again. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry came silently forward, leaving the daughter by the door. When |
|
he had stood, for a minute or two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker |
|
looked up. He showed no surprise at seeing another figure, but the |
|
unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to his lips as he looked at |
|
it (his lips and his nails were of the same pale lead-colour), and then |
|
the hand dropped to his work, and he once more bent over the shoe. The |
|
look and the action had occupied but an instant. |
|
|
|
“You have a visitor, you see,” said Monsieur Defarge. |
|
|
|
“What did you say?” |
|
|
|
“Here is a visitor.” |
|
|
|
The shoemaker looked up as before, but without removing a hand from his |
|
work. |
|
|
|
“Come!” said Defarge. “Here is monsieur, who knows a well-made shoe when |
|
he sees one. Show him that shoe you are working at. Take it, monsieur.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry took it in his hand. |
|
|
|
“Tell monsieur what kind of shoe it is, and the maker’s name.” |
|
|
|
There was a longer pause than usual, before the shoemaker replied: |
|
|
|
“I forget what it was you asked me. What did you say?” |
|
|
|
“I said, couldn’t you describe the kind of shoe, for monsieur’s |
|
information?” |
|
|
|
“It is a lady’s shoe. It is a young lady’s walking-shoe. It is in the |
|
present mode. I never saw the mode. I have had a pattern in my hand.” He |
|
glanced at the shoe with some little passing touch of pride. |
|
|
|
“And the maker’s name?” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
Now that he had no work to hold, he laid the knuckles of the right hand |
|
in the hollow of the left, and then the knuckles of the left hand in the |
|
hollow of the right, and then passed a hand across his bearded chin, and |
|
so on in regular changes, without a moment’s intermission. The task of |
|
recalling him from the vagrancy into which he always sank when he |
|
had spoken, was like recalling some very weak person from a swoon, or |
|
endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the spirit of a |
|
fast-dying man. |
|
|
|
“Did you ask me for my name?” |
|
|
|
“Assuredly I did.” |
|
|
|
“One Hundred and Five, North Tower.” |
|
|
|
“Is that all?” |
|
|
|
“One Hundred and Five, North Tower.” |
|
|
|
With a weary sound that was not a sigh, nor a groan, he bent to work |
|
again, until the silence was again broken. |
|
|
|
“You are not a shoemaker by trade?” said Mr. Lorry, looking steadfastly |
|
at him. |
|
|
|
His haggard eyes turned to Defarge as if he would have transferred the |
|
question to him: but as no help came from that quarter, they turned back |
|
on the questioner when they had sought the ground. |
|
|
|
“I am not a shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a shoemaker by trade. I-I |
|
learnt it here. I taught myself. I asked leave to--” |
|
|
|
He lapsed away, even for minutes, ringing those measured changes on his |
|
hands the whole time. His eyes came slowly back, at last, to the face |
|
from which they had wandered; when they rested on it, he started, and |
|
resumed, in the manner of a sleeper that moment awake, reverting to a |
|
subject of last night. |
|
|
|
“I asked leave to teach myself, and I got it with much difficulty after |
|
a long while, and I have made shoes ever since.” |
|
|
|
As he held out his hand for the shoe that had been taken from him, Mr. |
|
Lorry said, still looking steadfastly in his face: |
|
|
|
“Monsieur Manette, do you remember nothing of me?” |
|
|
|
The shoe dropped to the ground, and he sat looking fixedly at the |
|
questioner. |
|
|
|
“Monsieur Manette”; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon Defarge’s arm; “do you |
|
remember nothing of this man? Look at him. Look at me. Is there no old |
|
banker, no old business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your |
|
mind, Monsieur Manette?” |
|
|
|
As the captive of many years sat looking fixedly, by turns, at Mr. |
|
Lorry and at Defarge, some long obliterated marks of an actively intent |
|
intelligence in the middle of the forehead, gradually forced themselves |
|
through the black mist that had fallen on him. They were overclouded |
|
again, they were fainter, they were gone; but they had been there. And |
|
so exactly was the expression repeated on the fair young face of her who |
|
had crept along the wall to a point where she could see him, and where |
|
she now stood looking at him, with hands which at first had been only |
|
raised in frightened compassion, if not even to keep him off and |
|
shut out the sight of him, but which were now extending towards him, |
|
trembling with eagerness to lay the spectral face upon her warm young |
|
breast, and love it back to life and hope--so exactly was the expression |
|
repeated (though in stronger characters) on her fair young face, that it |
|
looked as though it had passed like a moving light, from him to her. |
|
|
|
Darkness had fallen on him in its place. He looked at the two, less and |
|
less attentively, and his eyes in gloomy abstraction sought the ground |
|
and looked about him in the old way. Finally, with a deep long sigh, he |
|
took the shoe up, and resumed his work. |
|
|
|
“Have you recognised him, monsieur?” asked Defarge in a whisper. |
|
|
|
“Yes; for a moment. At first I thought it quite hopeless, but I have |
|
unquestionably seen, for a single moment, the face that I once knew so |
|
well. Hush! Let us draw further back. Hush!” |
|
|
|
She had moved from the wall of the garret, very near to the bench on |
|
which he sat. There was something awful in his unconsciousness of the |
|
figure that could have put out its hand and touched him as he stooped |
|
over his labour. |
|
|
|
Not a word was spoken, not a sound was made. She stood, like a spirit, |
|
beside him, and he bent over his work. |
|
|
|
It happened, at length, that he had occasion to change the instrument |
|
in his hand, for his shoemaker’s knife. It lay on that side of him |
|
which was not the side on which she stood. He had taken it up, and was |
|
stooping to work again, when his eyes caught the skirt of her dress. He |
|
raised them, and saw her face. The two spectators started forward, |
|
but she stayed them with a motion of her hand. She had no fear of his |
|
striking at her with the knife, though they had. |
|
|
|
He stared at her with a fearful look, and after a while his lips began |
|
to form some words, though no sound proceeded from them. By degrees, in |
|
the pauses of his quick and laboured breathing, he was heard to say: |
|
|
|
“What is this?” |
|
|
|
With the tears streaming down her face, she put her two hands to her |
|
lips, and kissed them to him; then clasped them on her breast, as if she |
|
laid his ruined head there. |
|
|
|
“You are not the gaoler’s daughter?” |
|
|
|
She sighed “No.” |
|
|
|
“Who are you?” |
|
|
|
Not yet trusting the tones of her voice, she sat down on the bench |
|
beside him. He recoiled, but she laid her hand upon his arm. A strange |
|
thrill struck him when she did so, and visibly passed over his frame; he |
|
laid the knife down softly, as he sat staring at her. |
|
|
|
Her golden hair, which she wore in long curls, had been hurriedly pushed |
|
aside, and fell down over her neck. Advancing his hand by little and |
|
little, he took it up and looked at it. In the midst of the action |
|
he went astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to work at his |
|
shoemaking. |
|
|
|
But not for long. Releasing his arm, she laid her hand upon his |
|
shoulder. After looking doubtfully at it, two or three times, as if to |
|
be sure that it was really there, he laid down his work, put his hand |
|
to his neck, and took off a blackened string with a scrap of folded rag |
|
attached to it. He opened this, carefully, on his knee, and it contained |
|
a very little quantity of hair: not more than one or two long golden |
|
hairs, which he had, in some old day, wound off upon his finger. |
|
|
|
He took her hair into his hand again, and looked closely at it. “It is |
|
the same. How can it be! When was it! How was it!” |
|
|
|
As the concentrated expression returned to his forehead, he seemed to |
|
become conscious that it was in hers too. He turned her full to the |
|
light, and looked at her. |
|
|
|
“She had laid her head upon my shoulder, that night when I was summoned |
|
out--she had a fear of my going, though I had none--and when I was |
|
brought to the North Tower they found these upon my sleeve. ‘You will |
|
leave me them? They can never help me to escape in the body, though they |
|
may in the spirit.’ Those were the words I said. I remember them very |
|
well.” |
|
|
|
He formed this speech with his lips many times before he could utter it. |
|
But when he did find spoken words for it, they came to him coherently, |
|
though slowly. |
|
|
|
“How was this?--_Was it you_?” |
|
|
|
Once more, the two spectators started, as he turned upon her with a |
|
frightful suddenness. But she sat perfectly still in his grasp, and only |
|
said, in a low voice, “I entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near |
|
us, do not speak, do not move!” |
|
|
|
“Hark!” he exclaimed. “Whose voice was that?” |
|
|
|
His hands released her as he uttered this cry, and went up to his white |
|
hair, which they tore in a frenzy. It died out, as everything but his |
|
shoemaking did die out of him, and he refolded his little packet and |
|
tried to secure it in his breast; but he still looked at her, and |
|
gloomily shook his head. |
|
|
|
“No, no, no; you are too young, too blooming. It can’t be. See what the |
|
prisoner is. These are not the hands she knew, this is not the face |
|
she knew, this is not a voice she ever heard. No, no. She was--and He |
|
was--before the slow years of the North Tower--ages ago. What is your |
|
name, my gentle angel?” |
|
|
|
Hailing his softened tone and manner, his daughter fell upon her knees |
|
before him, with her appealing hands upon his breast. |
|
|
|
“O, sir, at another time you shall know my name, and who my mother was, |
|
and who my father, and how I never knew their hard, hard history. But I |
|
cannot tell you at this time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may |
|
tell you, here and now, is, that I pray to you to touch me and to bless |
|
me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my dear!” |
|
|
|
His cold white head mingled with her radiant hair, which warmed and |
|
lighted it as though it were the light of Freedom shining on him. |
|
|
|
“If you hear in my voice--I don’t know that it is so, but I hope it |
|
is--if you hear in my voice any resemblance to a voice that once was |
|
sweet music in your ears, weep for it, weep for it! If you touch, in |
|
touching my hair, anything that recalls a beloved head that lay on your |
|
breast when you were young and free, weep for it, weep for it! If, when |
|
I hint to you of a Home that is before us, where I will be true to you |
|
with all my duty and with all my faithful service, I bring back the |
|
remembrance of a Home long desolate, while your poor heart pined away, |
|
weep for it, weep for it!” |
|
|
|
She held him closer round the neck, and rocked him on her breast like a |
|
child. |
|
|
|
“If, when I tell you, dearest dear, that your agony is over, and that I |
|
have come here to take you from it, and that we go to England to be at |
|
peace and at rest, I cause you to think of your useful life laid waste, |
|
and of our native France so wicked to you, weep for it, weep for it! And |
|
if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of my father who is living, |
|
and of my mother who is dead, you learn that I have to kneel to my |
|
honoured father, and implore his pardon for having never for his sake |
|
striven all day and lain awake and wept all night, because the love of |
|
my poor mother hid his torture from me, weep for it, weep for it! Weep |
|
for her, then, and for me! Good gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred |
|
tears upon my face, and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank |
|
God for us, thank God!” |
|
|
|
He had sunk in her arms, and his face dropped on her breast: a sight so |
|
touching, yet so terrible in the tremendous wrong and suffering which |
|
had gone before it, that the two beholders covered their faces. |
|
|
|
When the quiet of the garret had been long undisturbed, and his heaving |
|
breast and shaken form had long yielded to the calm that must follow all |
|
storms--emblem to humanity, of the rest and silence into which the storm |
|
called Life must hush at last--they came forward to raise the father and |
|
daughter from the ground. He had gradually dropped to the floor, and lay |
|
there in a lethargy, worn out. She had nestled down with him, that his |
|
head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping over him curtained |
|
him from the light. |
|
|
|
“If, without disturbing him,” she said, raising her hand to Mr. Lorry as |
|
he stooped over them, after repeated blowings of his nose, “all could be |
|
arranged for our leaving Paris at once, so that, from the very door, he |
|
could be taken away--” |
|
|
|
“But, consider. Is he fit for the journey?” asked Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“More fit for that, I think, than to remain in this city, so dreadful to |
|
him.” |
|
|
|
“It is true,” said Defarge, who was kneeling to look on and hear. “More |
|
than that; Monsieur Manette is, for all reasons, best out of France. |
|
Say, shall I hire a carriage and post-horses?” |
|
|
|
“That’s business,” said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the shortest notice his |
|
methodical manners; “and if business is to be done, I had better do it.” |
|
|
|
“Then be so kind,” urged Miss Manette, “as to leave us here. You see how |
|
composed he has become, and you cannot be afraid to leave him with me |
|
now. Why should you be? If you will lock the door to secure us from |
|
interruption, I do not doubt that you will find him, when you come back, |
|
as quiet as you leave him. In any case, I will take care of him until |
|
you return, and then we will remove him straight.” |
|
|
|
Both Mr. Lorry and Defarge were rather disinclined to this course, and |
|
in favour of one of them remaining. But, as there were not only carriage |
|
and horses to be seen to, but travelling papers; and as time pressed, |
|
for the day was drawing to an end, it came at last to their hastily |
|
dividing the business that was necessary to be done, and hurrying away |
|
to do it. |
|
|
|
Then, as the darkness closed in, the daughter laid her head down on the |
|
hard ground close at the father’s side, and watched him. The darkness |
|
deepened and deepened, and they both lay quiet, until a light gleamed |
|
through the chinks in the wall. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry and Monsieur Defarge had made all ready for the journey, and |
|
had brought with them, besides travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and |
|
meat, wine, and hot coffee. Monsieur Defarge put this provender, and the |
|
lamp he carried, on the shoemaker’s bench (there was nothing else in the |
|
garret but a pallet bed), and he and Mr. Lorry roused the captive, and |
|
assisted him to his feet. |
|
|
|
No human intelligence could have read the mysteries of his mind, in |
|
the scared blank wonder of his face. Whether he knew what had happened, |
|
whether he recollected what they had said to him, whether he knew that |
|
he was free, were questions which no sagacity could have solved. They |
|
tried speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and so very slow to |
|
answer, that they took fright at his bewilderment, and agreed for |
|
the time to tamper with him no more. He had a wild, lost manner of |
|
occasionally clasping his head in his hands, that had not been seen |
|
in him before; yet, he had some pleasure in the mere sound of his |
|
daughter’s voice, and invariably turned to it when she spoke. |
|
|
|
In the submissive way of one long accustomed to obey under coercion, he |
|
ate and drank what they gave him to eat and drink, and put on the cloak |
|
and other wrappings, that they gave him to wear. He readily responded to |
|
his daughter’s drawing her arm through his, and took--and kept--her hand |
|
in both his own. |
|
|
|
They began to descend; Monsieur Defarge going first with the lamp, Mr. |
|
Lorry closing the little procession. They had not traversed many steps |
|
of the long main staircase when he stopped, and stared at the roof and |
|
round at the walls. |
|
|
|
“You remember the place, my father? You remember coming up here?” |
|
|
|
“What did you say?” |
|
|
|
But, before she could repeat the question, he murmured an answer as if |
|
she had repeated it. |
|
|
|
“Remember? No, I don’t remember. It was so very long ago.” |
|
|
|
That he had no recollection whatever of his having been brought from his |
|
prison to that house, was apparent to them. They heard him mutter, |
|
“One Hundred and Five, North Tower;” and when he looked about him, it |
|
evidently was for the strong fortress-walls which had long encompassed |
|
him. On their reaching the courtyard he instinctively altered his |
|
tread, as being in expectation of a drawbridge; and when there was |
|
no drawbridge, and he saw the carriage waiting in the open street, he |
|
dropped his daughter’s hand and clasped his head again. |
|
|
|
No crowd was about the door; no people were discernible at any of the |
|
many windows; not even a chance passerby was in the street. An unnatural |
|
silence and desertion reigned there. Only one soul was to be seen, and |
|
that was Madame Defarge--who leaned against the door-post, knitting, and |
|
saw nothing. |
|
|
|
The prisoner had got into a coach, and his daughter had followed |
|
him, when Mr. Lorry’s feet were arrested on the step by his asking, |
|
miserably, for his shoemaking tools and the unfinished shoes. Madame |
|
Defarge immediately called to her husband that she would get them, and |
|
went, knitting, out of the lamplight, through the courtyard. She quickly |
|
brought them down and handed them in;--and immediately afterwards leaned |
|
against the door-post, knitting, and saw nothing. |
|
|
|
Defarge got upon the box, and gave the word “To the Barrier!” The |
|
postilion cracked his whip, and they clattered away under the feeble |
|
over-swinging lamps. |
|
|
|
Under the over-swinging lamps--swinging ever brighter in the better |
|
streets, and ever dimmer in the worse--and by lighted shops, gay crowds, |
|
illuminated coffee-houses, and theatre-doors, to one of the city |
|
gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the guard-house there. “Your papers, |
|
travellers!” “See here then, Monsieur the Officer,” said Defarge, |
|
getting down, and taking him gravely apart, “these are the papers of |
|
monsieur inside, with the white head. They were consigned to me, with |
|
him, at the--” He dropped his voice, there was a flutter among the |
|
military lanterns, and one of them being handed into the coach by an arm |
|
in uniform, the eyes connected with the arm looked, not an every day |
|
or an every night look, at monsieur with the white head. “It is well. |
|
Forward!” from the uniform. “Adieu!” from Defarge. And so, under a short |
|
grove of feebler and feebler over-swinging lamps, out under the great |
|
grove of stars. |
|
|
|
Beneath that arch of unmoved and eternal lights; some, so remote from |
|
this little earth that the learned tell us it is doubtful whether their |
|
rays have even yet discovered it, as a point in space where anything |
|
is suffered or done: the shadows of the night were broad and black. |
|
All through the cold and restless interval, until dawn, they once more |
|
whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis Lorry--sitting opposite the buried |
|
man who had been dug out, and wondering what subtle powers were for ever |
|
lost to him, and what were capable of restoration--the old inquiry: |
|
|
|
“I hope you care to be recalled to life?” |
|
|
|
And the old answer: |
|
|
|
“I can’t say.” |
|
|
|
|
|
The end of the first book. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Book the Second--the Golden Thread |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. |
|
Five Years Later |
|
|
|
|
|
Tellson’s Bank by Temple Bar was an old-fashioned place, even in the |
|
year one thousand seven hundred and eighty. It was very small, very |
|
dark, very ugly, very incommodious. It was an old-fashioned place, |
|
moreover, in the moral attribute that the partners in the House were |
|
proud of its smallness, proud of its darkness, proud of its ugliness, |
|
proud of its incommodiousness. They were even boastful of its eminence |
|
in those particulars, and were fired by an express conviction that, if |
|
it were less objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was |
|
no passive belief, but an active weapon which they flashed at more |
|
convenient places of business. Tellson’s (they said) wanted |
|
no elbow-room, Tellson’s wanted no light, Tellson’s wanted no |
|
embellishment. Noakes and Co.’s might, or Snooks Brothers’ might; but |
|
Tellson’s, thank Heaven--! |
|
|
|
Any one of these partners would have disinherited his son on the |
|
question of rebuilding Tellson’s. In this respect the House was much |
|
on a par with the Country; which did very often disinherit its sons for |
|
suggesting improvements in laws and customs that had long been highly |
|
objectionable, but were only the more respectable. |
|
|
|
Thus it had come to pass, that Tellson’s was the triumphant perfection |
|
of inconvenience. After bursting open a door of idiotic obstinacy with |
|
a weak rattle in its throat, you fell into Tellson’s down two steps, |
|
and came to your senses in a miserable little shop, with two little |
|
counters, where the oldest of men made your cheque shake as if the |
|
wind rustled it, while they examined the signature by the dingiest of |
|
windows, which were always under a shower-bath of mud from Fleet-street, |
|
and which were made the dingier by their own iron bars proper, and the |
|
heavy shadow of Temple Bar. If your business necessitated your seeing |
|
“the House,” you were put into a species of Condemned Hold at the back, |
|
where you meditated on a misspent life, until the House came with its |
|
hands in its pockets, and you could hardly blink at it in the dismal |
|
twilight. Your money came out of, or went into, wormy old wooden |
|
drawers, particles of which flew up your nose and down your throat when |
|
they were opened and shut. Your bank-notes had a musty odour, as if they |
|
were fast decomposing into rags again. Your plate was stowed away among |
|
the neighbouring cesspools, and evil communications corrupted its good |
|
polish in a day or two. Your deeds got into extemporised strong-rooms |
|
made of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all the fat out of their |
|
parchments into the banking-house air. Your lighter boxes of family |
|
papers went up-stairs into a Barmecide room, that always had a great |
|
dining-table in it and never had a dinner, and where, even in the year |
|
one thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters written to you |
|
by your old love, or by your little children, were but newly released |
|
from the horror of being ogled through the windows, by the heads |
|
exposed on Temple Bar with an insensate brutality and ferocity worthy of |
|
Abyssinia or Ashantee. |
|
|
|
But indeed, at that time, putting to death was a recipe much in vogue |
|
with all trades and professions, and not least of all with Tellson’s. |
|
Death is Nature’s remedy for all things, and why not Legislation’s? |
|
Accordingly, the forger was put to Death; the utterer of a bad note |
|
was put to Death; the unlawful opener of a letter was put to Death; the |
|
purloiner of forty shillings and sixpence was put to Death; the holder |
|
of a horse at Tellson’s door, who made off with it, was put to |
|
Death; the coiner of a bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of |
|
three-fourths of the notes in the whole gamut of Crime, were put to |
|
Death. Not that it did the least good in the way of prevention--it |
|
might almost have been worth remarking that the fact was exactly the |
|
reverse--but, it cleared off (as to this world) the trouble of each |
|
particular case, and left nothing else connected with it to be looked |
|
after. Thus, Tellson’s, in its day, like greater places of business, |
|
its contemporaries, had taken so many lives, that, if the heads laid |
|
low before it had been ranged on Temple Bar instead of being privately |
|
disposed of, they would probably have excluded what little light the |
|
ground floor had, in a rather significant manner. |
|
|
|
Cramped in all kinds of dim cupboards and hutches at Tellson’s, the |
|
oldest of men carried on the business gravely. When they took a young |
|
man into Tellson’s London house, they hid him somewhere till he was |
|
old. They kept him in a dark place, like a cheese, until he had the full |
|
Tellson flavour and blue-mould upon him. Then only was he permitted to |
|
be seen, spectacularly poring over large books, and casting his breeches |
|
and gaiters into the general weight of the establishment. |
|
|
|
Outside Tellson’s--never by any means in it, unless called in--was an |
|
odd-job-man, an occasional porter and messenger, who served as the live |
|
sign of the house. He was never absent during business hours, unless |
|
upon an errand, and then he was represented by his son: a grisly urchin |
|
of twelve, who was his express image. People understood that Tellson’s, |
|
in a stately way, tolerated the odd-job-man. The house had always |
|
tolerated some person in that capacity, and time and tide had drifted |
|
this person to the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on the youthful |
|
occasion of his renouncing by proxy the works of darkness, in the |
|
easterly parish church of Hounsditch, he had received the added |
|
appellation of Jerry. |
|
|
|
The scene was Mr. Cruncher’s private lodging in Hanging-sword-alley, |
|
Whitefriars: the time, half-past seven of the clock on a windy March |
|
morning, Anno Domini seventeen hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself |
|
always spoke of the year of our Lord as Anna Dominoes: apparently under |
|
the impression that the Christian era dated from the invention of a |
|
popular game, by a lady who had bestowed her name upon it.) |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher’s apartments were not in a savoury neighbourhood, and were |
|
but two in number, even if a closet with a single pane of glass in it |
|
might be counted as one. But they were very decently kept. Early as |
|
it was, on the windy March morning, the room in which he lay abed was |
|
already scrubbed throughout; and between the cups and saucers arranged |
|
for breakfast, and the lumbering deal table, a very clean white cloth |
|
was spread. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher reposed under a patchwork counterpane, like a Harlequin |
|
at home. At first, he slept heavily, but, by degrees, began to roll |
|
and surge in bed, until he rose above the surface, with his spiky hair |
|
looking as if it must tear the sheets to ribbons. At which juncture, he |
|
exclaimed, in a voice of dire exasperation: |
|
|
|
“Bust me, if she ain’t at it agin!” |
|
|
|
A woman of orderly and industrious appearance rose from her knees in a |
|
corner, with sufficient haste and trepidation to show that she was the |
|
person referred to. |
|
|
|
“What!” said Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a boot. “You’re at it |
|
agin, are you?” |
|
|
|
After hailing the morn with this second salutation, he threw a boot at |
|
the woman as a third. It was a very muddy boot, and may introduce the |
|
odd circumstance connected with Mr. Cruncher’s domestic economy, that, |
|
whereas he often came home after banking hours with clean boots, he |
|
often got up next morning to find the same boots covered with clay. |
|
|
|
“What,” said Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe after missing his |
|
mark--“what are you up to, Aggerawayter?” |
|
|
|
“I was only saying my prayers.” |
|
|
|
“Saying your prayers! You’re a nice woman! What do you mean by flopping |
|
yourself down and praying agin me?” |
|
|
|
“I was not praying against you; I was praying for you.” |
|
|
|
“You weren’t. And if you were, I won’t be took the liberty with. Here! |
|
your mother’s a nice woman, young Jerry, going a praying agin your |
|
father’s prosperity. You’ve got a dutiful mother, you have, my son. |
|
You’ve got a religious mother, you have, my boy: going and flopping |
|
herself down, and praying that the bread-and-butter may be snatched out |
|
of the mouth of her only child.” |
|
|
|
Master Cruncher (who was in his shirt) took this very ill, and, turning |
|
to his mother, strongly deprecated any praying away of his personal |
|
board. |
|
|
|
“And what do you suppose, you conceited female,” said Mr. Cruncher, with |
|
unconscious inconsistency, “that the worth of _your_ prayers may be? |
|
Name the price that you put _your_ prayers at!” |
|
|
|
“They only come from the heart, Jerry. They are worth no more than |
|
that.” |
|
|
|
“Worth no more than that,” repeated Mr. Cruncher. “They ain’t worth |
|
much, then. Whether or no, I won’t be prayed agin, I tell you. I can’t |
|
afford it. I’m not a going to be made unlucky by _your_ sneaking. If |
|
you must go flopping yourself down, flop in favour of your husband and |
|
child, and not in opposition to ’em. If I had had any but a unnat’ral |
|
wife, and this poor boy had had any but a unnat’ral mother, I might |
|
have made some money last week instead of being counter-prayed and |
|
countermined and religiously circumwented into the worst of luck. |
|
B-u-u-ust me!” said Mr. Cruncher, who all this time had been putting |
|
on his clothes, “if I ain’t, what with piety and one blowed thing and |
|
another, been choused this last week into as bad luck as ever a poor |
|
devil of a honest tradesman met with! Young Jerry, dress yourself, my |
|
boy, and while I clean my boots keep a eye upon your mother now and |
|
then, and if you see any signs of more flopping, give me a call. For, I |
|
tell you,” here he addressed his wife once more, “I won’t be gone agin, |
|
in this manner. I am as rickety as a hackney-coach, I’m as sleepy as |
|
laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree that I shouldn’t know, if |
|
it wasn’t for the pain in ’em, which was me and which somebody else, yet |
|
I’m none the better for it in pocket; and it’s my suspicion that you’ve |
|
been at it from morning to night to prevent me from being the better for |
|
it in pocket, and I won’t put up with it, Aggerawayter, and what do you |
|
say now!” |
|
|
|
Growling, in addition, such phrases as “Ah! yes! You’re religious, too. |
|
You wouldn’t put yourself in opposition to the interests of your husband |
|
and child, would you? Not you!” and throwing off other sarcastic sparks |
|
from the whirling grindstone of his indignation, Mr. Cruncher betook |
|
himself to his boot-cleaning and his general preparation for business. |
|
In the meantime, his son, whose head was garnished with tenderer spikes, |
|
and whose young eyes stood close by one another, as his father’s did, |
|
kept the required watch upon his mother. He greatly disturbed that poor |
|
woman at intervals, by darting out of his sleeping closet, where he made |
|
his toilet, with a suppressed cry of “You are going to flop, mother. |
|
--Halloa, father!” and, after raising this fictitious alarm, darting in |
|
again with an undutiful grin. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher’s temper was not at all improved when he came to his |
|
breakfast. He resented Mrs. Cruncher’s saying grace with particular |
|
animosity. |
|
|
|
“Now, Aggerawayter! What are you up to? At it again?” |
|
|
|
His wife explained that she had merely “asked a blessing.” |
|
|
|
“Don’t do it!” said Mr. Crunches looking about, as if he rather expected |
|
to see the loaf disappear under the efficacy of his wife’s petitions. “I |
|
ain’t a going to be blest out of house and home. I won’t have my wittles |
|
blest off my table. Keep still!” |
|
|
|
Exceedingly red-eyed and grim, as if he had been up all night at a party |
|
which had taken anything but a convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried |
|
his breakfast rather than ate it, growling over it like any four-footed |
|
inmate of a menagerie. Towards nine o’clock he smoothed his ruffled |
|
aspect, and, presenting as respectable and business-like an exterior as |
|
he could overlay his natural self with, issued forth to the occupation |
|
of the day. |
|
|
|
It could scarcely be called a trade, in spite of his favourite |
|
description of himself as “a honest tradesman.” His stock consisted of |
|
a wooden stool, made out of a broken-backed chair cut down, which stool, |
|
young Jerry, walking at his father’s side, carried every morning to |
|
beneath the banking-house window that was nearest Temple Bar: where, |
|
with the addition of the first handful of straw that could be gleaned |
|
from any passing vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the odd-job-man’s |
|
feet, it formed the encampment for the day. On this post of his, Mr. |
|
Cruncher was as well known to Fleet-street and the Temple, as the Bar |
|
itself,--and was almost as in-looking. |
|
|
|
Encamped at a quarter before nine, in good time to touch his |
|
three-cornered hat to the oldest of men as they passed in to Tellson’s, |
|
Jerry took up his station on this windy March morning, with young Jerry |
|
standing by him, when not engaged in making forays through the Bar, to |
|
inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute description on passing |
|
boys who were small enough for his amiable purpose. Father and son, |
|
extremely like each other, looking silently on at the morning traffic |
|
in Fleet-street, with their two heads as near to one another as the two |
|
eyes of each were, bore a considerable resemblance to a pair of monkeys. |
|
The resemblance was not lessened by the accidental circumstance, that |
|
the mature Jerry bit and spat out straw, while the twinkling eyes of the |
|
youthful Jerry were as restlessly watchful of him as of everything else |
|
in Fleet-street. |
|
|
|
The head of one of the regular indoor messengers attached to Tellson’s |
|
establishment was put through the door, and the word was given: |
|
|
|
“Porter wanted!” |
|
|
|
“Hooray, father! Here’s an early job to begin with!” |
|
|
|
Having thus given his parent God speed, young Jerry seated himself on |
|
the stool, entered on his reversionary interest in the straw his father |
|
had been chewing, and cogitated. |
|
|
|
“Al-ways rusty! His fingers is al-ways rusty!” muttered young Jerry. |
|
“Where does my father get all that iron rust from? He don’t get no iron |
|
rust here!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. |
|
A Sight |
|
|
|
|
|
“You know the Old Bailey well, no doubt?” said one of the oldest of |
|
clerks to Jerry the messenger. |
|
|
|
“Ye-es, sir,” returned Jerry, in something of a dogged manner. “I _do_ |
|
know the Bailey.” |
|
|
|
“Just so. And you know Mr. Lorry.” |
|
|
|
“I know Mr. Lorry, sir, much better than I know the Bailey. Much |
|
better,” said Jerry, not unlike a reluctant witness at the establishment |
|
in question, “than I, as a honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey.” |
|
|
|
“Very well. Find the door where the witnesses go in, and show the |
|
door-keeper this note for Mr. Lorry. He will then let you in.” |
|
|
|
“Into the court, sir?” |
|
|
|
“Into the court.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher’s eyes seemed to get a little closer to one another, and to |
|
interchange the inquiry, “What do you think of this?” |
|
|
|
“Am I to wait in the court, sir?” he asked, as the result of that |
|
conference. |
|
|
|
“I am going to tell you. The door-keeper will pass the note to Mr. |
|
Lorry, and do you make any gesture that will attract Mr. Lorry’s |
|
attention, and show him where you stand. Then what you have to do, is, |
|
to remain there until he wants you.” |
|
|
|
“Is that all, sir?” |
|
|
|
“That’s all. He wishes to have a messenger at hand. This is to tell him |
|
you are there.” |
|
|
|
As the ancient clerk deliberately folded and superscribed the note, |
|
Mr. Cruncher, after surveying him in silence until he came to the |
|
blotting-paper stage, remarked: |
|
|
|
“I suppose they’ll be trying Forgeries this morning?” |
|
|
|
“Treason!” |
|
|
|
“That’s quartering,” said Jerry. “Barbarous!” |
|
|
|
“It is the law,” remarked the ancient clerk, turning his surprised |
|
spectacles upon him. “It is the law.” |
|
|
|
“It’s hard in the law to spile a man, I think. It’s hard enough to kill |
|
him, but it’s wery hard to spile him, sir.” |
|
|
|
“Not at all,” retained the ancient clerk. “Speak well of the law. Take |
|
care of your chest and voice, my good friend, and leave the law to take |
|
care of itself. I give you that advice.” |
|
|
|
“It’s the damp, sir, what settles on my chest and voice,” said Jerry. “I |
|
leave you to judge what a damp way of earning a living mine is.” |
|
|
|
“Well, well,” said the old clerk; “we all have our various ways of |
|
gaining a livelihood. Some of us have damp ways, and some of us have dry |
|
ways. Here is the letter. Go along.” |
|
|
|
Jerry took the letter, and, remarking to himself with less internal |
|
deference than he made an outward show of, “You are a lean old one, |
|
too,” made his bow, informed his son, in passing, of his destination, |
|
and went his way. |
|
|
|
They hanged at Tyburn, in those days, so the street outside Newgate had |
|
not obtained one infamous notoriety that has since attached to it. |
|
But, the gaol was a vile place, in which most kinds of debauchery and |
|
villainy were practised, and where dire diseases were bred, that came |
|
into court with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed straight from the |
|
dock at my Lord Chief Justice himself, and pulled him off the bench. It |
|
had more than once happened, that the Judge in the black cap pronounced |
|
his own doom as certainly as the prisoner’s, and even died before him. |
|
For the rest, the Old Bailey was famous as a kind of deadly inn-yard, |
|
from which pale travellers set out continually, in carts and coaches, on |
|
a violent passage into the other world: traversing some two miles and a |
|
half of public street and road, and shaming few good citizens, if any. |
|
So powerful is use, and so desirable to be good use in the beginning. It |
|
was famous, too, for the pillory, a wise old institution, that inflicted |
|
a punishment of which no one could foresee the extent; also, for |
|
the whipping-post, another dear old institution, very humanising and |
|
softening to behold in action; also, for extensive transactions in |
|
blood-money, another fragment of ancestral wisdom, systematically |
|
leading to the most frightful mercenary crimes that could be committed |
|
under Heaven. Altogether, the Old Bailey, at that date, was a choice |
|
illustration of the precept, that “Whatever is is right;” an aphorism |
|
that would be as final as it is lazy, did it not include the troublesome |
|
consequence, that nothing that ever was, was wrong. |
|
|
|
Making his way through the tainted crowd, dispersed up and down this |
|
hideous scene of action, with the skill of a man accustomed to make his |
|
way quietly, the messenger found out the door he sought, and handed in |
|
his letter through a trap in it. For, people then paid to see the play |
|
at the Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the play in Bedlam--only the |
|
former entertainment was much the dearer. Therefore, all the Old Bailey |
|
doors were well guarded--except, indeed, the social doors by which the |
|
criminals got there, and those were always left wide open. |
|
|
|
After some delay and demur, the door grudgingly turned on its hinges a |
|
very little way, and allowed Mr. Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into |
|
court. |
|
|
|
“What’s on?” he asked, in a whisper, of the man he found himself next |
|
to. |
|
|
|
“Nothing yet.” |
|
|
|
“What’s coming on?” |
|
|
|
“The Treason case.” |
|
|
|
“The quartering one, eh?” |
|
|
|
“Ah!” returned the man, with a relish; “he’ll be drawn on a hurdle to |
|
be half hanged, and then he’ll be taken down and sliced before his own |
|
face, and then his inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on, |
|
and then his head will be chopped off, and he’ll be cut into quarters. |
|
That’s the sentence.” |
|
|
|
“If he’s found Guilty, you mean to say?” Jerry added, by way of proviso. |
|
|
|
“Oh! they’ll find him guilty,” said the other. “Don’t you be afraid of |
|
that.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher’s attention was here diverted to the door-keeper, whom he |
|
saw making his way to Mr. Lorry, with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry |
|
sat at a table, among the gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged |
|
gentleman, the prisoner’s counsel, who had a great bundle of papers |
|
before him: and nearly opposite another wigged gentleman with his hands |
|
in his pockets, whose whole attention, when Mr. Cruncher looked at him |
|
then or afterwards, seemed to be concentrated on the ceiling of the |
|
court. After some gruff coughing and rubbing of his chin and signing |
|
with his hand, Jerry attracted the notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood up |
|
to look for him, and who quietly nodded and sat down again. |
|
|
|
“What’s _he_ got to do with the case?” asked the man he had spoken with. |
|
|
|
“Blest if I know,” said Jerry. |
|
|
|
“What have _you_ got to do with it, then, if a person may inquire?” |
|
|
|
“Blest if I know that either,” said Jerry. |
|
|
|
The entrance of the Judge, and a consequent great stir and settling |
|
down in the court, stopped the dialogue. Presently, the dock became the |
|
central point of interest. Two gaolers, who had been standing there, |
|
went out, and the prisoner was brought in, and put to the bar. |
|
|
|
Everybody present, except the one wigged gentleman who looked at the |
|
ceiling, stared at him. All the human breath in the place, rolled |
|
at him, like a sea, or a wind, or a fire. Eager faces strained round |
|
pillars and corners, to get a sight of him; spectators in back rows |
|
stood up, not to miss a hair of him; people on the floor of the court, |
|
laid their hands on the shoulders of the people before them, to help |
|
themselves, at anybody’s cost, to a view of him--stood a-tiptoe, got |
|
upon ledges, stood upon next to nothing, to see every inch of him. |
|
Conspicuous among these latter, like an animated bit of the spiked wall |
|
of Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at the prisoner the beery breath of a |
|
whet he had taken as he came along, and discharging it to mingle with |
|
the waves of other beer, and gin, and tea, and coffee, and what not, |
|
that flowed at him, and already broke upon the great windows behind him |
|
in an impure mist and rain. |
|
|
|
The object of all this staring and blaring, was a young man of about |
|
five-and-twenty, well-grown and well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and |
|
a dark eye. His condition was that of a young gentleman. He was plainly |
|
dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his hair, which was long and |
|
dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back of his neck; more to be out |
|
of his way than for ornament. As an emotion of the mind will express |
|
itself through any covering of the body, so the paleness which his |
|
situation engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing the |
|
soul to be stronger than the sun. He was otherwise quite self-possessed, |
|
bowed to the Judge, and stood quiet. |
|
|
|
The sort of interest with which this man was stared and breathed at, |
|
was not a sort that elevated humanity. Had he stood in peril of a less |
|
horrible sentence--had there been a chance of any one of its savage |
|
details being spared--by just so much would he have lost in his |
|
fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so shamefully mangled, |
|
was the sight; the immortal creature that was to be so butchered |
|
and torn asunder, yielded the sensation. Whatever gloss the various |
|
spectators put upon the interest, according to their several arts and |
|
powers of self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it, Ogreish. |
|
|
|
Silence in the court! Charles Darnay had yesterday pleaded Not Guilty to |
|
an indictment denouncing him (with infinite jingle and jangle) for that |
|
he was a false traitor to our serene, illustrious, excellent, and so |
|
forth, prince, our Lord the King, by reason of his having, on divers |
|
occasions, and by divers means and ways, assisted Lewis, the French |
|
King, in his wars against our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and |
|
so forth; that was to say, by coming and going, between the dominions of |
|
our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, and those of the |
|
said French Lewis, and wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and otherwise |
|
evil-adverbiously, revealing to the said French Lewis what forces our |
|
said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, had in preparation |
|
to send to Canada and North America. This much, Jerry, with his head |
|
becoming more and more spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out with |
|
huge satisfaction, and so arrived circuitously at the understanding that |
|
the aforesaid, and over and over again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood |
|
there before him upon his trial; that the jury were swearing in; and |
|
that Mr. Attorney-General was making ready to speak. |
|
|
|
The accused, who was (and who knew he was) being mentally hanged, |
|
beheaded, and quartered, by everybody there, neither flinched from |
|
the situation, nor assumed any theatrical air in it. He was quiet and |
|
attentive; watched the opening proceedings with a grave interest; |
|
and stood with his hands resting on the slab of wood before him, so |
|
composedly, that they had not displaced a leaf of the herbs with which |
|
it was strewn. The court was all bestrewn with herbs and sprinkled with |
|
vinegar, as a precaution against gaol air and gaol fever. |
|
|
|
Over the prisoner’s head there was a mirror, to throw the light down |
|
upon him. Crowds of the wicked and the wretched had been reflected in |
|
it, and had passed from its surface and this earth’s together. Haunted |
|
in a most ghastly manner that abominable place would have been, if the |
|
glass could ever have rendered back its reflections, as the ocean is one |
|
day to give up its dead. Some passing thought of the infamy and disgrace |
|
for which it had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner’s mind. Be |
|
that as it may, a change in his position making him conscious of a bar |
|
of light across his face, he looked up; and when he saw the glass his |
|
face flushed, and his right hand pushed the herbs away. |
|
|
|
It happened, that the action turned his face to that side of the court |
|
which was on his left. About on a level with his eyes, there sat, |
|
in that corner of the Judge’s bench, two persons upon whom his look |
|
immediately rested; so immediately, and so much to the changing of his |
|
aspect, that all the eyes that were turned upon him, turned to them. |
|
|
|
The spectators saw in the two figures, a young lady of little more than |
|
twenty, and a gentleman who was evidently her father; a man of a very |
|
remarkable appearance in respect of the absolute whiteness of his hair, |
|
and a certain indescribable intensity of face: not of an active kind, |
|
but pondering and self-communing. When this expression was upon him, he |
|
looked as if he were old; but when it was stirred and broken up--as |
|
it was now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter--he became a |
|
handsome man, not past the prime of life. |
|
|
|
His daughter had one of her hands drawn through his arm, as she sat by |
|
him, and the other pressed upon it. She had drawn close to him, in her |
|
dread of the scene, and in her pity for the prisoner. Her forehead had |
|
been strikingly expressive of an engrossing terror and compassion |
|
that saw nothing but the peril of the accused. This had been so very |
|
noticeable, so very powerfully and naturally shown, that starers who |
|
had had no pity for him were touched by her; and the whisper went about, |
|
“Who are they?” |
|
|
|
Jerry, the messenger, who had made his own observations, in his own |
|
manner, and who had been sucking the rust off his fingers in his |
|
absorption, stretched his neck to hear who they were. The crowd about |
|
him had pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest attendant, and |
|
from him it had been more slowly pressed and passed back; at last it got |
|
to Jerry: |
|
|
|
“Witnesses.” |
|
|
|
“For which side?” |
|
|
|
“Against.” |
|
|
|
“Against what side?” |
|
|
|
“The prisoner’s.” |
|
|
|
The Judge, whose eyes had gone in the general direction, recalled them, |
|
leaned back in his seat, and looked steadily at the man whose life was |
|
in his hand, as Mr. Attorney-General rose to spin the rope, grind the |
|
axe, and hammer the nails into the scaffold. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. |
|
A Disappointment |
|
|
|
|
|
Mr. Attorney-General had to inform the jury, that the prisoner before |
|
them, though young in years, was old in the treasonable practices which |
|
claimed the forfeit of his life. That this correspondence with the |
|
public enemy was not a correspondence of to-day, or of yesterday, or |
|
even of last year, or of the year before. That, it was certain the |
|
prisoner had, for longer than that, been in the habit of passing and |
|
repassing between France and England, on secret business of which |
|
he could give no honest account. That, if it were in the nature of |
|
traitorous ways to thrive (which happily it never was), the real |
|
wickedness and guilt of his business might have remained undiscovered. |
|
That Providence, however, had put it into the heart of a person who |
|
was beyond fear and beyond reproach, to ferret out the nature of the |
|
prisoner’s schemes, and, struck with horror, to disclose them to his |
|
Majesty’s Chief Secretary of State and most honourable Privy Council. |
|
That, this patriot would be produced before them. That, his position and |
|
attitude were, on the whole, sublime. That, he had been the prisoner’s |
|
friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an evil hour detecting his |
|
infamy, had resolved to immolate the traitor he could no longer cherish |
|
in his bosom, on the sacred altar of his country. That, if statues |
|
were decreed in Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome, to public |
|
benefactors, this shining citizen would assuredly have had one. That, as |
|
they were not so decreed, he probably would not have one. That, Virtue, |
|
as had been observed by the poets (in many passages which he well |
|
knew the jury would have, word for word, at the tips of their tongues; |
|
whereat the jury’s countenances displayed a guilty consciousness that |
|
they knew nothing about the passages), was in a manner contagious; more |
|
especially the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of country. |
|
That, the lofty example of this immaculate and unimpeachable witness |
|
for the Crown, to refer to whom however unworthily was an honour, had |
|
communicated itself to the prisoner’s servant, and had engendered in him |
|
a holy determination to examine his master’s table-drawers and pockets, |
|
and secrete his papers. That, he (Mr. Attorney-General) was prepared to |
|
hear some disparagement attempted of this admirable servant; but that, |
|
in a general way, he preferred him to his (Mr. Attorney-General’s) |
|
brothers and sisters, and honoured him more than his (Mr. |
|
Attorney-General’s) father and mother. That, he called with confidence |
|
on the jury to come and do likewise. That, the evidence of these two |
|
witnesses, coupled with the documents of their discovering that would be |
|
produced, would show the prisoner to have been furnished with lists of |
|
his Majesty’s forces, and of their disposition and preparation, both by |
|
sea and land, and would leave no doubt that he had habitually conveyed |
|
such information to a hostile power. That, these lists could not be |
|
proved to be in the prisoner’s handwriting; but that it was all the |
|
same; that, indeed, it was rather the better for the prosecution, as |
|
showing the prisoner to be artful in his precautions. That, the proof |
|
would go back five years, and would show the prisoner already engaged |
|
in these pernicious missions, within a few weeks before the date of the |
|
very first action fought between the British troops and the Americans. |
|
That, for these reasons, the jury, being a loyal jury (as he knew they |
|
were), and being a responsible jury (as _they_ knew they were), must |
|
positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of him, whether |
|
they liked it or not. That, they never could lay their heads upon their |
|
pillows; that, they never could tolerate the idea of their wives laying |
|
their heads upon their pillows; that, they never could endure the notion |
|
of their children laying their heads upon their pillows; in short, that |
|
there never more could be, for them or theirs, any laying of heads upon |
|
pillows at all, unless the prisoner’s head was taken off. That head |
|
Mr. Attorney-General concluded by demanding of them, in the name of |
|
everything he could think of with a round turn in it, and on the faith |
|
of his solemn asseveration that he already considered the prisoner as |
|
good as dead and gone. |
|
|
|
When the Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in the court as if |
|
a cloud of great blue-flies were swarming about the prisoner, in |
|
anticipation of what he was soon to become. When toned down again, the |
|
unimpeachable patriot appeared in the witness-box. |
|
|
|
Mr. Solicitor-General then, following his leader’s lead, examined the |
|
patriot: John Barsad, gentleman, by name. The story of his pure soul was |
|
exactly what Mr. Attorney-General had described it to be--perhaps, if |
|
it had a fault, a little too exactly. Having released his noble bosom |
|
of its burden, he would have modestly withdrawn himself, but that the |
|
wigged gentleman with the papers before him, sitting not far from Mr. |
|
Lorry, begged to ask him a few questions. The wigged gentleman sitting |
|
opposite, still looking at the ceiling of the court. |
|
|
|
Had he ever been a spy himself? No, he scorned the base insinuation. |
|
What did he live upon? His property. Where was his property? He didn’t |
|
precisely remember where it was. What was it? No business of anybody’s. |
|
Had he inherited it? Yes, he had. From whom? Distant relation. Very |
|
distant? Rather. Ever been in prison? Certainly not. Never in a debtors’ |
|
prison? Didn’t see what that had to do with it. Never in a debtors’ |
|
prison?--Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times? Two or three |
|
times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what profession? Gentleman. Ever |
|
been kicked? Might have been. Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs? |
|
Decidedly not; once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell |
|
downstairs of his own accord. Kicked on that occasion for cheating at |
|
dice? Something to that effect was said by the intoxicated liar who |
|
committed the assault, but it was not true. Swear it was not true? |
|
Positively. Ever live by cheating at play? Never. Ever live by play? Not |
|
more than other gentlemen do. Ever borrow money of the prisoner? Yes. |
|
Ever pay him? No. Was not this intimacy with the prisoner, in reality a |
|
very slight one, forced upon the prisoner in coaches, inns, and packets? |
|
No. Sure he saw the prisoner with these lists? Certain. Knew no more |
|
about the lists? No. Had not procured them himself, for instance? No. |
|
Expect to get anything by this evidence? No. Not in regular government |
|
pay and employment, to lay traps? Oh dear no. Or to do anything? Oh dear |
|
no. Swear that? Over and over again. No motives but motives of sheer |
|
patriotism? None whatever. |
|
|
|
The virtuous servant, Roger Cly, swore his way through the case at a |
|
great rate. He had taken service with the prisoner, in good faith and |
|
simplicity, four years ago. He had asked the prisoner, aboard the Calais |
|
packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the prisoner had engaged him. |
|
He had not asked the prisoner to take the handy fellow as an act of |
|
charity--never thought of such a thing. He began to have suspicions of |
|
the prisoner, and to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In arranging |
|
his clothes, while travelling, he had seen similar lists to these in the |
|
prisoner’s pockets, over and over again. He had taken these lists from |
|
the drawer of the prisoner’s desk. He had not put them there first. He |
|
had seen the prisoner show these identical lists to French gentlemen |
|
at Calais, and similar lists to French gentlemen, both at Calais and |
|
Boulogne. He loved his country, and couldn’t bear it, and had given |
|
information. He had never been suspected of stealing a silver tea-pot; |
|
he had been maligned respecting a mustard-pot, but it turned out to be |
|
only a plated one. He had known the last witness seven or eight years; |
|
that was merely a coincidence. He didn’t call it a particularly curious |
|
coincidence; most coincidences were curious. Neither did he call it a |
|
curious coincidence that true patriotism was _his_ only motive too. He |
|
was a true Briton, and hoped there were many like him. |
|
|
|
The blue-flies buzzed again, and Mr. Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis |
|
Lorry. |
|
|
|
“Mr. Jarvis Lorry, are you a clerk in Tellson’s bank?” |
|
|
|
“I am.” |
|
|
|
“On a certain Friday night in November one thousand seven hundred and |
|
seventy-five, did business occasion you to travel between London and |
|
Dover by the mail?” |
|
|
|
“It did.” |
|
|
|
“Were there any other passengers in the mail?” |
|
|
|
“Two.” |
|
|
|
“Did they alight on the road in the course of the night?” |
|
|
|
“They did.” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Lorry, look upon the prisoner. Was he one of those two passengers?” |
|
|
|
“I cannot undertake to say that he was.” |
|
|
|
“Does he resemble either of these two passengers?” |
|
|
|
“Both were so wrapped up, and the night was so dark, and we were all so |
|
reserved, that I cannot undertake to say even that.” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Lorry, look again upon the prisoner. Supposing him wrapped up as |
|
those two passengers were, is there anything in his bulk and stature to |
|
render it unlikely that he was one of them?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
“You will not swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one of them?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
“So at least you say he may have been one of them?” |
|
|
|
“Yes. Except that I remember them both to have been--like |
|
myself--timorous of highwaymen, and the prisoner has not a timorous |
|
air.” |
|
|
|
“Did you ever see a counterfeit of timidity, Mr. Lorry?” |
|
|
|
“I certainly have seen that.” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Lorry, look once more upon the prisoner. Have you seen him, to your |
|
certain knowledge, before?” |
|
|
|
“I have.” |
|
|
|
“When?” |
|
|
|
“I was returning from France a few days afterwards, and, at Calais, the |
|
prisoner came on board the packet-ship in which I returned, and made the |
|
voyage with me.” |
|
|
|
“At what hour did he come on board?” |
|
|
|
“At a little after midnight.” |
|
|
|
“In the dead of the night. Was he the only passenger who came on board |
|
at that untimely hour?” |
|
|
|
“He happened to be the only one.” |
|
|
|
“Never mind about ‘happening,’ Mr. Lorry. He was the only passenger who |
|
came on board in the dead of the night?” |
|
|
|
“He was.” |
|
|
|
“Were you travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any companion?” |
|
|
|
“With two companions. A gentleman and lady. They are here.” |
|
|
|
“They are here. Had you any conversation with the prisoner?” |
|
|
|
“Hardly any. The weather was stormy, and the passage long and rough, and |
|
I lay on a sofa, almost from shore to shore.” |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette!” |
|
|
|
The young lady, to whom all eyes had been turned before, and were now |
|
turned again, stood up where she had sat. Her father rose with her, and |
|
kept her hand drawn through his arm. |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, look upon the prisoner.” |
|
|
|
To be confronted with such pity, and such earnest youth and beauty, was |
|
far more trying to the accused than to be confronted with all the crowd. |
|
Standing, as it were, apart with her on the edge of his grave, not all |
|
the staring curiosity that looked on, could, for the moment, nerve him |
|
to remain quite still. His hurried right hand parcelled out the herbs |
|
before him into imaginary beds of flowers in a garden; and his efforts |
|
to control and steady his breathing shook the lips from which the colour |
|
rushed to his heart. The buzz of the great flies was loud again. |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, have you seen the prisoner before?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir.” |
|
|
|
“Where?” |
|
|
|
“On board of the packet-ship just now referred to, sir, and on the same |
|
occasion.” |
|
|
|
“You are the young lady just now referred to?” |
|
|
|
“O! most unhappily, I am!” |
|
|
|
The plaintive tone of her compassion merged into the less musical voice |
|
of the Judge, as he said something fiercely: “Answer the questions put |
|
to you, and make no remark upon them.” |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, had you any conversation with the prisoner on that |
|
passage across the Channel?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir.” |
|
|
|
“Recall it.” |
|
|
|
In the midst of a profound stillness, she faintly began: “When the |
|
gentleman came on board--” |
|
|
|
“Do you mean the prisoner?” inquired the Judge, knitting his brows. |
|
|
|
“Yes, my Lord.” |
|
|
|
“Then say the prisoner.” |
|
|
|
“When the prisoner came on board, he noticed that my father,” turning |
|
her eyes lovingly to him as he stood beside her, “was much fatigued |
|
and in a very weak state of health. My father was so reduced that I was |
|
afraid to take him out of the air, and I had made a bed for him on the |
|
deck near the cabin steps, and I sat on the deck at his side to take |
|
care of him. There were no other passengers that night, but we four. |
|
The prisoner was so good as to beg permission to advise me how I could |
|
shelter my father from the wind and weather, better than I had done. I |
|
had not known how to do it well, not understanding how the wind would |
|
set when we were out of the harbour. He did it for me. He expressed |
|
great gentleness and kindness for my father’s state, and I am sure he |
|
felt it. That was the manner of our beginning to speak together.” |
|
|
|
“Let me interrupt you for a moment. Had he come on board alone?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
“How many were with him?” |
|
|
|
“Two French gentlemen.” |
|
|
|
“Had they conferred together?” |
|
|
|
“They had conferred together until the last moment, when it was |
|
necessary for the French gentlemen to be landed in their boat.” |
|
|
|
“Had any papers been handed about among them, similar to these lists?” |
|
|
|
“Some papers had been handed about among them, but I don’t know what |
|
papers.” |
|
|
|
“Like these in shape and size?” |
|
|
|
“Possibly, but indeed I don’t know, although they stood whispering very |
|
near to me: because they stood at the top of the cabin steps to have the |
|
light of the lamp that was hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they |
|
spoke very low, and I did not hear what they said, and saw only that |
|
they looked at papers.” |
|
|
|
“Now, to the prisoner’s conversation, Miss Manette.” |
|
|
|
“The prisoner was as open in his confidence with me--which arose out |
|
of my helpless situation--as he was kind, and good, and useful to my |
|
father. I hope,” bursting into tears, “I may not repay him by doing him |
|
harm to-day.” |
|
|
|
Buzzing from the blue-flies. |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, if the prisoner does not perfectly understand that |
|
you give the evidence which it is your duty to give--which you must |
|
give--and which you cannot escape from giving--with great unwillingness, |
|
he is the only person present in that condition. Please to go on.” |
|
|
|
“He told me that he was travelling on business of a delicate and |
|
difficult nature, which might get people into trouble, and that he was |
|
therefore travelling under an assumed name. He said that this business |
|
had, within a few days, taken him to France, and might, at intervals, |
|
take him backwards and forwards between France and England for a long |
|
time to come.” |
|
|
|
“Did he say anything about America, Miss Manette? Be particular.” |
|
|
|
“He tried to explain to me how that quarrel had arisen, and he said |
|
that, so far as he could judge, it was a wrong and foolish one on |
|
England’s part. He added, in a jesting way, that perhaps George |
|
Washington might gain almost as great a name in history as George the |
|
Third. But there was no harm in his way of saying this: it was said |
|
laughingly, and to beguile the time.” |
|
|
|
Any strongly marked expression of face on the part of a chief actor in |
|
a scene of great interest to whom many eyes are directed, will be |
|
unconsciously imitated by the spectators. Her forehead was painfully |
|
anxious and intent as she gave this evidence, and, in the pauses when |
|
she stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its effect upon |
|
the counsel for and against. Among the lookers-on there was the same |
|
expression in all quarters of the court; insomuch, that a great majority |
|
of the foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the witness, |
|
when the Judge looked up from his notes to glare at that tremendous |
|
heresy about George Washington. |
|
|
|
Mr. Attorney-General now signified to my Lord, that he deemed it |
|
necessary, as a matter of precaution and form, to call the young lady’s |
|
father, Doctor Manette. Who was called accordingly. |
|
|
|
“Doctor Manette, look upon the prisoner. Have you ever seen him before?” |
|
|
|
“Once. When he called at my lodgings in London. Some three years, or |
|
three years and a half ago.” |
|
|
|
“Can you identify him as your fellow-passenger on board the packet, or |
|
speak to his conversation with your daughter?” |
|
|
|
“Sir, I can do neither.” |
|
|
|
“Is there any particular and special reason for your being unable to do |
|
either?” |
|
|
|
He answered, in a low voice, “There is.” |
|
|
|
“Has it been your misfortune to undergo a long imprisonment, without |
|
trial, or even accusation, in your native country, Doctor Manette?” |
|
|
|
He answered, in a tone that went to every heart, “A long imprisonment.” |
|
|
|
“Were you newly released on the occasion in question?” |
|
|
|
“They tell me so.” |
|
|
|
“Have you no remembrance of the occasion?” |
|
|
|
“None. My mind is a blank, from some time--I cannot even say what |
|
time--when I employed myself, in my captivity, in making shoes, to the |
|
time when I found myself living in London with my dear daughter |
|
here. She had become familiar to me, when a gracious God restored |
|
my faculties; but, I am quite unable even to say how she had become |
|
familiar. I have no remembrance of the process.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Attorney-General sat down, and the father and daughter sat down |
|
together. |
|
|
|
A singular circumstance then arose in the case. The object in hand being |
|
to show that the prisoner went down, with some fellow-plotter untracked, |
|
in the Dover mail on that Friday night in November five years ago, and |
|
got out of the mail in the night, as a blind, at a place where he did |
|
not remain, but from which he travelled back some dozen miles or more, |
|
to a garrison and dockyard, and there collected information; a witness |
|
was called to identify him as having been at the precise time required, |
|
in the coffee-room of an hotel in that garrison-and-dockyard town, |
|
waiting for another person. The prisoner’s counsel was cross-examining |
|
this witness with no result, except that he had never seen the prisoner |
|
on any other occasion, when the wigged gentleman who had all this time |
|
been looking at the ceiling of the court, wrote a word or two on a |
|
little piece of paper, screwed it up, and tossed it to him. Opening |
|
this piece of paper in the next pause, the counsel looked with great |
|
attention and curiosity at the prisoner. |
|
|
|
“You say again you are quite sure that it was the prisoner?” |
|
|
|
The witness was quite sure. |
|
|
|
“Did you ever see anybody very like the prisoner?” |
|
|
|
Not so like (the witness said) as that he could be mistaken. |
|
|
|
“Look well upon that gentleman, my learned friend there,” pointing |
|
to him who had tossed the paper over, “and then look well upon the |
|
prisoner. How say you? Are they very like each other?” |
|
|
|
Allowing for my learned friend’s appearance being careless and slovenly |
|
if not debauched, they were sufficiently like each other to surprise, |
|
not only the witness, but everybody present, when they were thus brought |
|
into comparison. My Lord being prayed to bid my learned friend lay aside |
|
his wig, and giving no very gracious consent, the likeness became |
|
much more remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the prisoner’s |
|
counsel), whether they were next to try Mr. Carton (name of my learned |
|
friend) for treason? But, Mr. Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he |
|
would ask the witness to tell him whether what happened once, might |
|
happen twice; whether he would have been so confident if he had seen |
|
this illustration of his rashness sooner, whether he would be so |
|
confident, having seen it; and more. The upshot of which, was, to smash |
|
this witness like a crockery vessel, and shiver his part of the case to |
|
useless lumber. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher had by this time taken quite a lunch of rust off his |
|
fingers in his following of the evidence. He had now to attend while Mr. |
|
Stryver fitted the prisoner’s case on the jury, like a compact suit |
|
of clothes; showing them how the patriot, Barsad, was a hired spy and |
|
traitor, an unblushing trafficker in blood, and one of the greatest |
|
scoundrels upon earth since accursed Judas--which he certainly did look |
|
rather like. How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and partner, |
|
and was worthy to be; how the watchful eyes of those forgers and false |
|
swearers had rested on the prisoner as a victim, because some family |
|
affairs in France, he being of French extraction, did require his making |
|
those passages across the Channel--though what those affairs were, a |
|
consideration for others who were near and dear to him, forbade him, |
|
even for his life, to disclose. How the evidence that had been warped |
|
and wrested from the young lady, whose anguish in giving it they |
|
had witnessed, came to nothing, involving the mere little innocent |
|
gallantries and politenesses likely to pass between any young gentleman |
|
and young lady so thrown together;--with the exception of that |
|
reference to George Washington, which was altogether too extravagant and |
|
impossible to be regarded in any other light than as a monstrous joke. |
|
How it would be a weakness in the government to break down in this |
|
attempt to practise for popularity on the lowest national antipathies |
|
and fears, and therefore Mr. Attorney-General had made the most of it; |
|
how, nevertheless, it rested upon nothing, save that vile and infamous |
|
character of evidence too often disfiguring such cases, and of which the |
|
State Trials of this country were full. But, there my Lord interposed |
|
(with as grave a face as if it had not been true), saying that he could |
|
not sit upon that Bench and suffer those allusions. |
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver then called his few witnesses, and Mr. Cruncher had next to |
|
attend while Mr. Attorney-General turned the whole suit of clothes Mr. |
|
Stryver had fitted on the jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and |
|
Cly were even a hundred times better than he had thought them, and the |
|
prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came my Lord himself, turning |
|
the suit of clothes, now inside out, now outside in, but on the whole |
|
decidedly trimming and shaping them into grave-clothes for the prisoner. |
|
|
|
And now, the jury turned to consider, and the great flies swarmed again. |
|
|
|
Mr. Carton, who had so long sat looking at the ceiling of the court, |
|
changed neither his place nor his attitude, even in this excitement. |
|
While his learned friend, Mr. Stryver, massing his papers before him, |
|
whispered with those who sat near, and from time to time glanced |
|
anxiously at the jury; while all the spectators moved more or less, and |
|
grouped themselves anew; while even my Lord himself arose from his seat, |
|
and slowly paced up and down his platform, not unattended by a suspicion |
|
in the minds of the audience that his state was feverish; this one man |
|
sat leaning back, with his torn gown half off him, his untidy wig put |
|
on just as it had happened to light on his head after its removal, his |
|
hands in his pockets, and his eyes on the ceiling as they had been all |
|
day. Something especially reckless in his demeanour, not only gave him |
|
a disreputable look, but so diminished the strong resemblance he |
|
undoubtedly bore to the prisoner (which his momentary earnestness, |
|
when they were compared together, had strengthened), that many of the |
|
lookers-on, taking note of him now, said to one another they would |
|
hardly have thought the two were so alike. Mr. Cruncher made the |
|
observation to his next neighbour, and added, “I’d hold half a guinea |
|
that _he_ don’t get no law-work to do. Don’t look like the sort of one |
|
to get any, do he?” |
|
|
|
Yet, this Mr. Carton took in more of the details of the scene than he |
|
appeared to take in; for now, when Miss Manette’s head dropped upon |
|
her father’s breast, he was the first to see it, and to say audibly: |
|
“Officer! look to that young lady. Help the gentleman to take her out. |
|
Don’t you see she will fall!” |
|
|
|
There was much commiseration for her as she was removed, and much |
|
sympathy with her father. It had evidently been a great distress to |
|
him, to have the days of his imprisonment recalled. He had shown |
|
strong internal agitation when he was questioned, and that pondering or |
|
brooding look which made him old, had been upon him, like a heavy cloud, |
|
ever since. As he passed out, the jury, who had turned back and paused a |
|
moment, spoke, through their foreman. |
|
|
|
They were not agreed, and wished to retire. My Lord (perhaps with George |
|
Washington on his mind) showed some surprise that they were not agreed, |
|
but signified his pleasure that they should retire under watch and ward, |
|
and retired himself. The trial had lasted all day, and the lamps in |
|
the court were now being lighted. It began to be rumoured that the |
|
jury would be out a long while. The spectators dropped off to get |
|
refreshment, and the prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat |
|
down. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry, who had gone out when the young lady and her father went out, |
|
now reappeared, and beckoned to Jerry: who, in the slackened interest, |
|
could easily get near him. |
|
|
|
“Jerry, if you wish to take something to eat, you can. But, keep in the |
|
way. You will be sure to hear when the jury come in. Don’t be a moment |
|
behind them, for I want you to take the verdict back to the bank. You |
|
are the quickest messenger I know, and will get to Temple Bar long |
|
before I can.” |
|
|
|
Jerry had just enough forehead to knuckle, and he knuckled it in |
|
acknowledgment of this communication and a shilling. Mr. Carton came up |
|
at the moment, and touched Mr. Lorry on the arm. |
|
|
|
“How is the young lady?” |
|
|
|
“She is greatly distressed; but her father is comforting her, and she |
|
feels the better for being out of court.” |
|
|
|
“I’ll tell the prisoner so. It won’t do for a respectable bank gentleman |
|
like you, to be seen speaking to him publicly, you know.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry reddened as if he were conscious of having debated the point |
|
in his mind, and Mr. Carton made his way to the outside of the bar. |
|
The way out of court lay in that direction, and Jerry followed him, all |
|
eyes, ears, and spikes. |
|
|
|
“Mr. Darnay!” |
|
|
|
The prisoner came forward directly. |
|
|
|
“You will naturally be anxious to hear of the witness, Miss Manette. She |
|
will do very well. You have seen the worst of her agitation.” |
|
|
|
“I am deeply sorry to have been the cause of it. Could you tell her so |
|
for me, with my fervent acknowledgments?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, I could. I will, if you ask it.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Carton’s manner was so careless as to be almost insolent. He stood, |
|
half turned from the prisoner, lounging with his elbow against the bar. |
|
|
|
“I do ask it. Accept my cordial thanks.” |
|
|
|
“What,” said Carton, still only half turned towards him, “do you expect, |
|
Mr. Darnay?” |
|
|
|
“The worst.” |
|
|
|
“It’s the wisest thing to expect, and the likeliest. But I think their |
|
withdrawing is in your favour.” |
|
|
|
Loitering on the way out of court not being allowed, Jerry heard no |
|
more: but left them--so like each other in feature, so unlike each other |
|
in manner--standing side by side, both reflected in the glass above |
|
them. |
|
|
|
An hour and a half limped heavily away in the thief-and-rascal crowded |
|
passages below, even though assisted off with mutton pies and ale. |
|
The hoarse messenger, uncomfortably seated on a form after taking that |
|
refection, had dropped into a doze, when a loud murmur and a rapid tide |
|
of people setting up the stairs that led to the court, carried him along |
|
with them. |
|
|
|
“Jerry! Jerry!” Mr. Lorry was already calling at the door when he got |
|
there. |
|
|
|
“Here, sir! It’s a fight to get back again. Here I am, sir!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry handed him a paper through the throng. “Quick! Have you got |
|
it?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir.” |
|
|
|
Hastily written on the paper was the word “ACQUITTED.” |
|
|
|
“If you had sent the message, ‘Recalled to Life,’ again,” muttered |
|
Jerry, as he turned, “I should have known what you meant, this time.” |
|
|
|
He had no opportunity of saying, or so much as thinking, anything else, |
|
until he was clear of the Old Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out |
|
with a vehemence that nearly took him off his legs, and a loud buzz |
|
swept into the street as if the baffled blue-flies were dispersing in |
|
search of other carrion. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. |
|
Congratulatory |
|
|
|
|
|
From the dimly-lighted passages of the court, the last sediment of the |
|
human stew that had been boiling there all day, was straining off, when |
|
Doctor Manette, Lucie Manette, his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor |
|
for the defence, and its counsel, Mr. Stryver, stood gathered round Mr. |
|
Charles Darnay--just released--congratulating him on his escape from |
|
death. |
|
|
|
It would have been difficult by a far brighter light, to recognise |
|
in Doctor Manette, intellectual of face and upright of bearing, the |
|
shoemaker of the garret in Paris. Yet, no one could have looked at him |
|
twice, without looking again: even though the opportunity of observation |
|
had not extended to the mournful cadence of his low grave voice, and |
|
to the abstraction that overclouded him fitfully, without any apparent |
|
reason. While one external cause, and that a reference to his long |
|
lingering agony, would always--as on the trial--evoke this condition |
|
from the depths of his soul, it was also in its nature to arise of |
|
itself, and to draw a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those |
|
unacquainted with his story as if they had seen the shadow of the actual |
|
Bastille thrown upon him by a summer sun, when the substance was three |
|
hundred miles away. |
|
|
|
Only his daughter had the power of charming this black brooding from |
|
his mind. She was the golden thread that united him to a Past beyond his |
|
misery, and to a Present beyond his misery: and the sound of her voice, |
|
the light of her face, the touch of her hand, had a strong beneficial |
|
influence with him almost always. Not absolutely always, for she could |
|
recall some occasions on which her power had failed; but they were few |
|
and slight, and she believed them over. |
|
|
|
Mr. Darnay had kissed her hand fervently and gratefully, and had turned |
|
to Mr. Stryver, whom he warmly thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little |
|
more than thirty, but looking twenty years older than he was, stout, |
|
loud, red, bluff, and free from any drawback of delicacy, had a pushing |
|
way of shouldering himself (morally and physically) into companies and |
|
conversations, that argued well for his shouldering his way up in life. |
|
|
|
He still had his wig and gown on, and he said, squaring himself at his |
|
late client to that degree that he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean |
|
out of the group: “I am glad to have brought you off with honour, Mr. |
|
Darnay. It was an infamous prosecution, grossly infamous; but not the |
|
less likely to succeed on that account.” |
|
|
|
“You have laid me under an obligation to you for life--in two senses,” |
|
said his late client, taking his hand. |
|
|
|
“I have done my best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my best is as good as |
|
another man’s, I believe.” |
|
|
|
It clearly being incumbent on some one to say, “Much better,” Mr. Lorry |
|
said it; perhaps not quite disinterestedly, but with the interested |
|
object of squeezing himself back again. |
|
|
|
“You think so?” said Mr. Stryver. “Well! you have been present all day, |
|
and you ought to know. You are a man of business, too.” |
|
|
|
“And as such,” quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel learned in the law had |
|
now shouldered back into the group, just as he had previously shouldered |
|
him out of it--“as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up |
|
this conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie looks ill, Mr. |
|
Darnay has had a terrible day, we are worn out.” |
|
|
|
“Speak for yourself, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver; “I have a night’s work to |
|
do yet. Speak for yourself.” |
|
|
|
“I speak for myself,” answered Mr. Lorry, “and for Mr. Darnay, and for |
|
Miss Lucie, and--Miss Lucie, do you not think I may speak for us all?” |
|
He asked her the question pointedly, and with a glance at her father. |
|
|
|
His face had become frozen, as it were, in a very curious look at |
|
Darnay: an intent look, deepening into a frown of dislike and distrust, |
|
not even unmixed with fear. With this strange expression on him his |
|
thoughts had wandered away. |
|
|
|
“My father,” said Lucie, softly laying her hand on his. |
|
|
|
He slowly shook the shadow off, and turned to her. |
|
|
|
“Shall we go home, my father?” |
|
|
|
With a long breath, he answered “Yes.” |
|
|
|
The friends of the acquitted prisoner had dispersed, under the |
|
impression--which he himself had originated--that he would not be |
|
released that night. The lights were nearly all extinguished in the |
|
passages, the iron gates were being closed with a jar and a rattle, |
|
and the dismal place was deserted until to-morrow morning’s interest of |
|
gallows, pillory, whipping-post, and branding-iron, should repeople it. |
|
Walking between her father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into |
|
the open air. A hackney-coach was called, and the father and daughter |
|
departed in it. |
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver had left them in the passages, to shoulder his way back |
|
to the robing-room. Another person, who had not joined the group, or |
|
interchanged a word with any one of them, but who had been leaning |
|
against the wall where its shadow was darkest, had silently strolled |
|
out after the rest, and had looked on until the coach drove away. He now |
|
stepped up to where Mr. Lorry and Mr. Darnay stood upon the pavement. |
|
|
|
“So, Mr. Lorry! Men of business may speak to Mr. Darnay now?” |
|
|
|
Nobody had made any acknowledgment of Mr. Carton’s part in the day’s |
|
proceedings; nobody had known of it. He was unrobed, and was none the |
|
better for it in appearance. |
|
|
|
“If you knew what a conflict goes on in the business mind, when the |
|
business mind is divided between good-natured impulse and business |
|
appearances, you would be amused, Mr. Darnay.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry reddened, and said, warmly, “You have mentioned that before, |
|
sir. We men of business, who serve a House, are not our own masters. We |
|
have to think of the House more than ourselves.” |
|
|
|
“_I_ know, _I_ know,” rejoined Mr. Carton, carelessly. “Don’t be |
|
nettled, Mr. Lorry. You are as good as another, I have no doubt: better, |
|
I dare say.” |
|
|
|
“And indeed, sir,” pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding him, “I really don’t |
|
know what you have to do with the matter. If you’ll excuse me, as very |
|
much your elder, for saying so, I really don’t know that it is your |
|
business.” |
|
|
|
“Business! Bless you, _I_ have no business,” said Mr. Carton. |
|
|
|
“It is a pity you have not, sir.” |
|
|
|
“I think so, too.” |
|
|
|
“If you had,” pursued Mr. Lorry, “perhaps you would attend to it.” |
|
|
|
“Lord love you, no!--I shouldn’t,” said Mr. Carton. |
|
|
|
“Well, sir!” cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by his indifference, |
|
“business is a very good thing, and a very respectable thing. And, sir, |
|
if business imposes its restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr. |
|
Darnay as a young gentleman of generosity knows how to make allowance |
|
for that circumstance. Mr. Darnay, good night, God bless you, sir! |
|
I hope you have been this day preserved for a prosperous and happy |
|
life.--Chair there!” |
|
|
|
Perhaps a little angry with himself, as well as with the barrister, Mr. |
|
Lorry bustled into the chair, and was carried off to Tellson’s. Carton, |
|
who smelt of port wine, and did not appear to be quite sober, laughed |
|
then, and turned to Darnay: |
|
|
|
“This is a strange chance that throws you and me together. This must |
|
be a strange night to you, standing alone here with your counterpart on |
|
these street stones?” |
|
|
|
“I hardly seem yet,” returned Charles Darnay, “to belong to this world |
|
again.” |
|
|
|
“I don’t wonder at it; it’s not so long since you were pretty far |
|
advanced on your way to another. You speak faintly.” |
|
|
|
“I begin to think I _am_ faint.” |
|
|
|
“Then why the devil don’t you dine? I dined, myself, while those |
|
numskulls were deliberating which world you should belong to--this, or |
|
some other. Let me show you the nearest tavern to dine well at.” |
|
|
|
Drawing his arm through his own, he took him down Ludgate-hill to |
|
Fleet-street, and so, up a covered way, into a tavern. Here, they were |
|
shown into a little room, where Charles Darnay was soon recruiting |
|
his strength with a good plain dinner and good wine: while Carton sat |
|
opposite to him at the same table, with his separate bottle of port |
|
before him, and his fully half-insolent manner upon him. |
|
|
|
“Do you feel, yet, that you belong to this terrestrial scheme again, Mr. |
|
Darnay?” |
|
|
|
“I am frightfully confused regarding time and place; but I am so far |
|
mended as to feel that.” |
|
|
|
“It must be an immense satisfaction!” |
|
|
|
He said it bitterly, and filled up his glass again: which was a large |
|
one. |
|
|
|
“As to me, the greatest desire I have, is to forget that I belong to it. |
|
It has no good in it for me--except wine like this--nor I for it. So we |
|
are not much alike in that particular. Indeed, I begin to think we are |
|
not much alike in any particular, you and I.” |
|
|
|
Confused by the emotion of the day, and feeling his being there with |
|
this Double of coarse deportment, to be like a dream, Charles Darnay was |
|
at a loss how to answer; finally, answered not at all. |
|
|
|
“Now your dinner is done,” Carton presently said, “why don’t you call a |
|
health, Mr. Darnay; why don’t you give your toast?” |
|
|
|
“What health? What toast?” |
|
|
|
“Why, it’s on the tip of your tongue. It ought to be, it must be, I’ll |
|
swear it’s there.” |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, then!” |
|
|
|
“Miss Manette, then!” |
|
|
|
Looking his companion full in the face while he drank the toast, Carton |
|
flung his glass over his shoulder against the wall, where it shivered to |
|
pieces; then, rang the bell, and ordered in another. |
|
|
|
“That’s a fair young lady to hand to a coach in the dark, Mr. Darnay!” |
|
he said, filling his new goblet. |
|
|
|
A slight frown and a laconic “Yes,” were the answer. |
|
|
|
“That’s a fair young lady to be pitied by and wept for by! How does it |
|
feel? Is it worth being tried for one’s life, to be the object of such |
|
sympathy and compassion, Mr. Darnay?” |
|
|
|
Again Darnay answered not a word. |
|
|
|
“She was mightily pleased to have your message, when I gave it her. Not |
|
that she showed she was pleased, but I suppose she was.” |
|
|
|
The allusion served as a timely reminder to Darnay that this |
|
disagreeable companion had, of his own free will, assisted him in the |
|
strait of the day. He turned the dialogue to that point, and thanked him |
|
for it. |
|
|
|
“I neither want any thanks, nor merit any,” was the careless rejoinder. |
|
“It was nothing to do, in the first place; and I don’t know why I did |
|
it, in the second. Mr. Darnay, let me ask you a question.” |
|
|
|
“Willingly, and a small return for your good offices.” |
|
|
|
“Do you think I particularly like you?” |
|
|
|
“Really, Mr. Carton,” returned the other, oddly disconcerted, “I have |
|
not asked myself the question.” |
|
|
|
“But ask yourself the question now.” |
|
|
|
“You have acted as if you do; but I don’t think you do.” |
|
|
|
“_I_ don’t think I do,” said Carton. “I begin to have a very good |
|
opinion of your understanding.” |
|
|
|
“Nevertheless,” pursued Darnay, rising to ring the bell, “there is |
|
nothing in that, I hope, to prevent my calling the reckoning, and our |
|
parting without ill-blood on either side.” |
|
|
|
Carton rejoining, “Nothing in life!” Darnay rang. “Do you call the whole |
|
reckoning?” said Carton. On his answering in the affirmative, “Then |
|
bring me another pint of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at |
|
ten.” |
|
|
|
The bill being paid, Charles Darnay rose and wished him good night. |
|
Without returning the wish, Carton rose too, with something of a threat |
|
of defiance in his manner, and said, “A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think |
|
I am drunk?” |
|
|
|
“I think you have been drinking, Mr. Carton.” |
|
|
|
“Think? You know I have been drinking.” |
|
|
|
“Since I must say so, I know it.” |
|
|
|
“Then you shall likewise know why. I am a disappointed drudge, sir. I |
|
care for no man on earth, and no man on earth cares for me.” |
|
|
|
“Much to be regretted. You might have used your talents better.” |
|
|
|
“May be so, Mr. Darnay; may be not. Don’t let your sober face elate you, |
|
however; you don’t know what it may come to. Good night!” |
|
|
|
When he was left alone, this strange being took up a candle, went to a |
|
glass that hung against the wall, and surveyed himself minutely in it. |
|
|
|
“Do you particularly like the man?” he muttered, at his own image; “why |
|
should you particularly like a man who resembles you? There is nothing |
|
in you to like; you know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have |
|
made in yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he shows you |
|
what you have fallen away from, and what you might have been! Change |
|
places with him, and would you have been looked at by those blue eyes as |
|
he was, and commiserated by that agitated face as he was? Come on, and |
|
have it out in plain words! You hate the fellow.” |
|
|
|
He resorted to his pint of wine for consolation, drank it all in a few |
|
minutes, and fell asleep on his arms, with his hair straggling over the |
|
table, and a long winding-sheet in the candle dripping down upon him. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V. |
|
The Jackal |
|
|
|
|
|
Those were drinking days, and most men drank hard. So very great is |
|
the improvement Time has brought about in such habits, that a moderate |
|
statement of the quantity of wine and punch which one man would swallow |
|
in the course of a night, without any detriment to his reputation as a |
|
perfect gentleman, would seem, in these days, a ridiculous exaggeration. |
|
The learned profession of the law was certainly not behind any other |
|
learned profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither was Mr. |
|
Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large and lucrative |
|
practice, behind his compeers in this particular, any more than in the |
|
drier parts of the legal race. |
|
|
|
A favourite at the Old Bailey, and eke at the Sessions, Mr. Stryver had |
|
begun cautiously to hew away the lower staves of the ladder on which |
|
he mounted. Sessions and Old Bailey had now to summon their favourite, |
|
specially, to their longing arms; and shouldering itself towards the |
|
visage of the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of King’s Bench, the |
|
florid countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen, bursting out of |
|
the bed of wigs, like a great sunflower pushing its way at the sun from |
|
among a rank garden-full of flaring companions. |
|
|
|
It had once been noted at the Bar, that while Mr. Stryver was a glib |
|
man, and an unscrupulous, and a ready, and a bold, he had not that |
|
faculty of extracting the essence from a heap of statements, which is |
|
among the most striking and necessary of the advocate’s accomplishments. |
|
But, a remarkable improvement came upon him as to this. The more |
|
business he got, the greater his power seemed to grow of getting at its |
|
pith and marrow; and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney |
|
Carton, he always had his points at his fingers’ ends in the morning. |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton, idlest and most unpromising of men, was Stryver’s great |
|
ally. What the two drank together, between Hilary Term and Michaelmas, |
|
might have floated a king’s ship. Stryver never had a case in hand, |
|
anywhere, but Carton was there, with his hands in his pockets, staring |
|
at the ceiling of the court; they went the same Circuit, and even there |
|
they prolonged their usual orgies late into the night, and Carton was |
|
rumoured to be seen at broad day, going home stealthily and unsteadily |
|
to his lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get about, |
|
among such as were interested in the matter, that although Sydney Carton |
|
would never be a lion, he was an amazingly good jackal, and that he |
|
rendered suit and service to Stryver in that humble capacity. |
|
|
|
“Ten o’clock, sir,” said the man at the tavern, whom he had charged to |
|
wake him--“ten o’clock, sir.” |
|
|
|
“_What’s_ the matter?” |
|
|
|
“Ten o’clock, sir.” |
|
|
|
“What do you mean? Ten o’clock at night?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, sir. Your honour told me to call you.” |
|
|
|
“Oh! I remember. Very well, very well.” |
|
|
|
After a few dull efforts to get to sleep again, which the man |
|
dexterously combated by stirring the fire continuously for five minutes, |
|
he got up, tossed his hat on, and walked out. He turned into the Temple, |
|
and, having revived himself by twice pacing the pavements of King’s |
|
Bench-walk and Paper-buildings, turned into the Stryver chambers. |
|
|
|
The Stryver clerk, who never assisted at these conferences, had gone |
|
home, and the Stryver principal opened the door. He had his slippers on, |
|
and a loose bed-gown, and his throat was bare for his greater ease. He |
|
had that rather wild, strained, seared marking about the eyes, which |
|
may be observed in all free livers of his class, from the portrait of |
|
Jeffries downward, and which can be traced, under various disguises of |
|
Art, through the portraits of every Drinking Age. |
|
|
|
“You are a little late, Memory,” said Stryver. |
|
|
|
“About the usual time; it may be a quarter of an hour later.” |
|
|
|
They went into a dingy room lined with books and littered with papers, |
|
where there was a blazing fire. A kettle steamed upon the hob, and in |
|
the midst of the wreck of papers a table shone, with plenty of wine upon |
|
it, and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons. |
|
|
|
“You have had your bottle, I perceive, Sydney.” |
|
|
|
“Two to-night, I think. I have been dining with the day’s client; or |
|
seeing him dine--it’s all one!” |
|
|
|
“That was a rare point, Sydney, that you brought to bear upon the |
|
identification. How did you come by it? When did it strike you?” |
|
|
|
“I thought he was rather a handsome fellow, and I thought I should have |
|
been much the same sort of fellow, if I had had any luck.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver laughed till he shook his precocious paunch. |
|
|
|
“You and your luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to work.” |
|
|
|
Sullenly enough, the jackal loosened his dress, went into an adjoining |
|
room, and came back with a large jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel |
|
or two. Steeping the towels in the water, and partially wringing them |
|
out, he folded them on his head in a manner hideous to behold, sat down |
|
at the table, and said, “Now I am ready!” |
|
|
|
“Not much boiling down to be done to-night, Memory,” said Mr. Stryver, |
|
gaily, as he looked among his papers. |
|
|
|
“How much?” |
|
|
|
“Only two sets of them.” |
|
|
|
“Give me the worst first.” |
|
|
|
“There they are, Sydney. Fire away!” |
|
|
|
The lion then composed himself on his back on a sofa on one side of the |
|
drinking-table, while the jackal sat at his own paper-bestrewn table |
|
proper, on the other side of it, with the bottles and glasses ready to |
|
his hand. Both resorted to the drinking-table without stint, but each in |
|
a different way; the lion for the most part reclining with his hands in |
|
his waistband, looking at the fire, or occasionally flirting with some |
|
lighter document; the jackal, with knitted brows and intent face, |
|
so deep in his task, that his eyes did not even follow the hand he |
|
stretched out for his glass--which often groped about, for a minute or |
|
more, before it found the glass for his lips. Two or three times, the |
|
matter in hand became so knotty, that the jackal found it imperative on |
|
him to get up, and steep his towels anew. From these pilgrimages to the |
|
jug and basin, he returned with such eccentricities of damp headgear as |
|
no words can describe; which were made the more ludicrous by his anxious |
|
gravity. |
|
|
|
At length the jackal had got together a compact repast for the lion, and |
|
proceeded to offer it to him. The lion took it with care and caution, |
|
made his selections from it, and his remarks upon it, and the jackal |
|
assisted both. When the repast was fully discussed, the lion put his |
|
hands in his waistband again, and lay down to meditate. The jackal then |
|
invigorated himself with a bumper for his throttle, and a fresh application |
|
to his head, and applied himself to the collection of a second meal; |
|
this was administered to the lion in the same manner, and was not |
|
disposed of until the clocks struck three in the morning. |
|
|
|
“And now we have done, Sydney, fill a bumper of punch,” said Mr. |
|
Stryver. |
|
|
|
The jackal removed the towels from his head, which had been steaming |
|
again, shook himself, yawned, shivered, and complied. |
|
|
|
“You were very sound, Sydney, in the matter of those crown witnesses |
|
to-day. Every question told.” |
|
|
|
“I always am sound; am I not?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t gainsay it. What has roughened your temper? Put some punch to |
|
it and smooth it again.” |
|
|
|
With a deprecatory grunt, the jackal again complied. |
|
|
|
“The old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury School,” said Stryver, nodding |
|
his head over him as he reviewed him in the present and the past, “the |
|
old seesaw Sydney. Up one minute and down the next; now in spirits and |
|
now in despondency!” |
|
|
|
“Ah!” returned the other, sighing: “yes! The same Sydney, with the same |
|
luck. Even then, I did exercises for other boys, and seldom did my own.” |
|
|
|
“And why not?” |
|
|
|
“God knows. It was my way, I suppose.” |
|
|
|
He sat, with his hands in his pockets and his legs stretched out before |
|
him, looking at the fire. |
|
|
|
“Carton,” said his friend, squaring himself at him with a bullying air, |
|
as if the fire-grate had been the furnace in which sustained endeavour |
|
was forged, and the one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney |
|
Carton of old Shrewsbury School was to shoulder him into it, “your way |
|
is, and always was, a lame way. You summon no energy and purpose. Look |
|
at me.” |
|
|
|
“Oh, botheration!” returned Sydney, with a lighter and more |
|
good-humoured laugh, “don’t _you_ be moral!” |
|
|
|
“How have I done what I have done?” said Stryver; “how do I do what I |
|
do?” |
|
|
|
“Partly through paying me to help you, I suppose. But it’s not worth |
|
your while to apostrophise me, or the air, about it; what you want to |
|
do, you do. You were always in the front rank, and I was always behind.” |
|
|
|
“I had to get into the front rank; I was not born there, was I?” |
|
|
|
“I was not present at the ceremony; but my opinion is you were,” said |
|
Carton. At this, he laughed again, and they both laughed. |
|
|
|
“Before Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever since Shrewsbury,” |
|
pursued Carton, “you have fallen into your rank, and I have fallen into |
|
mine. Even when we were fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris, |
|
picking up French, and French law, and other French crumbs that we |
|
didn’t get much good of, you were always somewhere, and I was always |
|
nowhere.” |
|
|
|
“And whose fault was that?” |
|
|
|
“Upon my soul, I am not sure that it was not yours. You were always |
|
driving and riving and shouldering and passing, to that restless degree |
|
that I had no chance for my life but in rust and repose. It’s a gloomy |
|
thing, however, to talk about one’s own past, with the day breaking. |
|
Turn me in some other direction before I go.” |
|
|
|
“Well then! Pledge me to the pretty witness,” said Stryver, holding up |
|
his glass. “Are you turned in a pleasant direction?” |
|
|
|
Apparently not, for he became gloomy again. |
|
|
|
“Pretty witness,” he muttered, looking down into his glass. “I have had |
|
enough of witnesses to-day and to-night; who’s your pretty witness?” |
|
|
|
“The picturesque doctor’s daughter, Miss Manette.” |
|
|
|
“_She_ pretty?” |
|
|
|
“Is she not?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
“Why, man alive, she was the admiration of the whole Court!” |
|
|
|
“Rot the admiration of the whole Court! Who made the Old Bailey a judge |
|
of beauty? She was a golden-haired doll!” |
|
|
|
“Do you know, Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, looking at him with sharp eyes, |
|
and slowly drawing a hand across his florid face: “do you know, I rather |
|
thought, at the time, that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll, |
|
and were quick to see what happened to the golden-haired doll?” |
|
|
|
“Quick to see what happened! If a girl, doll or no doll, swoons within a |
|
yard or two of a man’s nose, he can see it without a perspective-glass. |
|
I pledge you, but I deny the beauty. And now I’ll have no more drink; |
|
I’ll get to bed.” |
|
|
|
When his host followed him out on the staircase with a candle, to light |
|
him down the stairs, the day was coldly looking in through its grimy |
|
windows. When he got out of the house, the air was cold and sad, the |
|
dull sky overcast, the river dark and dim, the whole scene like a |
|
lifeless desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round and round |
|
before the morning blast, as if the desert-sand had risen far away, and |
|
the first spray of it in its advance had begun to overwhelm the city. |
|
|
|
Waste forces within him, and a desert all around, this man stood still |
|
on his way across a silent terrace, and saw for a moment, lying in the |
|
wilderness before him, a mirage of honourable ambition, self-denial, and |
|
perseverance. In the fair city of this vision, there were airy galleries |
|
from which the loves and graces looked upon him, gardens in which the |
|
fruits of life hung ripening, waters of Hope that sparkled in his sight. |
|
A moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in a well of |
|
houses, he threw himself down in his clothes on a neglected bed, and its |
|
pillow was wet with wasted tears. |
|
|
|
Sadly, sadly, the sun rose; it rose upon no sadder sight than the man of |
|
good abilities and good emotions, incapable of their directed exercise, |
|
incapable of his own help and his own happiness, sensible of the blight |
|
on him, and resigning himself to let it eat him away. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI. |
|
Hundreds of People |
|
|
|
|
|
The quiet lodgings of Doctor Manette were in a quiet street-corner not |
|
far from Soho-square. On the afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the |
|
waves of four months had rolled over the trial for treason, and carried |
|
it, as to the public interest and memory, far out to sea, Mr. Jarvis |
|
Lorry walked along the sunny streets from Clerkenwell where he lived, |
|
on his way to dine with the Doctor. After several relapses into |
|
business-absorption, Mr. Lorry had become the Doctor’s friend, and the |
|
quiet street-corner was the sunny part of his life. |
|
|
|
On this certain fine Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked towards Soho, early in |
|
the afternoon, for three reasons of habit. Firstly, because, on fine |
|
Sundays, he often walked out, before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie; |
|
secondly, because, on unfavourable Sundays, he was accustomed to be with |
|
them as the family friend, talking, reading, looking out of window, and |
|
generally getting through the day; thirdly, because he happened to have |
|
his own little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how the ways of the |
|
Doctor’s household pointed to that time as a likely time for solving |
|
them. |
|
|
|
A quainter corner than the corner where the Doctor lived, was not to be |
|
found in London. There was no way through it, and the front windows of |
|
the Doctor’s lodgings commanded a pleasant little vista of street that |
|
had a congenial air of retirement on it. There were few buildings then, |
|
north of the Oxford-road, and forest-trees flourished, and wild flowers |
|
grew, and the hawthorn blossomed, in the now vanished fields. As a |
|
consequence, country airs circulated in Soho with vigorous freedom, |
|
instead of languishing into the parish like stray paupers without a |
|
settlement; and there was many a good south wall, not far off, on which |
|
the peaches ripened in their season. |
|
|
|
The summer light struck into the corner brilliantly in the earlier part |
|
of the day; but, when the streets grew hot, the corner was in shadow, |
|
though not in shadow so remote but that you could see beyond it into a |
|
glare of brightness. It was a cool spot, staid but cheerful, a wonderful |
|
place for echoes, and a very harbour from the raging streets. |
|
|
|
There ought to have been a tranquil bark in such an anchorage, and |
|
there was. The Doctor occupied two floors of a large stiff house, where |
|
several callings purported to be pursued by day, but whereof little was |
|
audible any day, and which was shunned by all of them at night. In |
|
a building at the back, attainable by a courtyard where a plane-tree |
|
rustled its green leaves, church-organs claimed to be made, and silver |
|
to be chased, and likewise gold to be beaten by some mysterious giant |
|
who had a golden arm starting out of the wall of the front hall--as if |
|
he had beaten himself precious, and menaced a similar conversion of all |
|
visitors. Very little of these trades, or of a lonely lodger rumoured |
|
to live up-stairs, or of a dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have |
|
a counting-house below, was ever heard or seen. Occasionally, a stray |
|
workman putting his coat on, traversed the hall, or a stranger peered |
|
about there, or a distant clink was heard across the courtyard, or a |
|
thump from the golden giant. These, however, were only the exceptions |
|
required to prove the rule that the sparrows in the plane-tree behind |
|
the house, and the echoes in the corner before it, had their own way |
|
from Sunday morning unto Saturday night. |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette received such patients here as his old reputation, and |
|
its revival in the floating whispers of his story, brought him. |
|
His scientific knowledge, and his vigilance and skill in conducting |
|
ingenious experiments, brought him otherwise into moderate request, and |
|
he earned as much as he wanted. |
|
|
|
These things were within Mr. Jarvis Lorry’s knowledge, thoughts, and |
|
notice, when he rang the door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner, |
|
on the fine Sunday afternoon. |
|
|
|
“Doctor Manette at home?” |
|
|
|
Expected home. |
|
|
|
“Miss Lucie at home?” |
|
|
|
Expected home. |
|
|
|
“Miss Pross at home?” |
|
|
|
Possibly at home, but of a certainty impossible for handmaid to |
|
anticipate intentions of Miss Pross, as to admission or denial of the |
|
fact. |
|
|
|
“As I am at home myself,” said Mr. Lorry, “I’ll go upstairs.” |
|
|
|
Although the Doctor’s daughter had known nothing of the country of her |
|
birth, she appeared to have innately derived from it that ability to |
|
make much of little means, which is one of its most useful and most |
|
agreeable characteristics. Simple as the furniture was, it was set off |
|
by so many little adornments, of no value but for their taste and fancy, |
|
that its effect was delightful. The disposition of everything in the |
|
rooms, from the largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours, |
|
the elegant variety and contrast obtained by thrift in trifles, by |
|
delicate hands, clear eyes, and good sense; were at once so pleasant in |
|
themselves, and so expressive of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry |
|
stood looking about him, the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him, |
|
with something of that peculiar expression which he knew so well by this |
|
time, whether he approved? |
|
|
|
There were three rooms on a floor, and, the doors by which they |
|
communicated being put open that the air might pass freely through them |
|
all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly observant of that fanciful resemblance which |
|
he detected all around him, walked from one to another. The first was |
|
the best room, and in it were Lucie’s birds, and flowers, and books, |
|
and desk, and work-table, and box of water-colours; the second was |
|
the Doctor’s consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third, |
|
changingly speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in the yard, was the |
|
Doctor’s bedroom, and there, in a corner, stood the disused shoemaker’s |
|
bench and tray of tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the |
|
dismal house by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint Antoine in Paris. |
|
|
|
“I wonder,” said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking about, “that he keeps |
|
that reminder of his sufferings about him!” |
|
|
|
“And why wonder at that?” was the abrupt inquiry that made him start. |
|
|
|
It proceeded from Miss Pross, the wild red woman, strong of hand, whose |
|
acquaintance he had first made at the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and |
|
had since improved. |
|
|
|
“I should have thought--” Mr. Lorry began. |
|
|
|
“Pooh! You’d have thought!” said Miss Pross; and Mr. Lorry left off. |
|
|
|
“How do you do?” inquired that lady then--sharply, and yet as if to |
|
express that she bore him no malice. |
|
|
|
“I am pretty well, I thank you,” answered Mr. Lorry, with meekness; “how |
|
are you?” |
|
|
|
“Nothing to boast of,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“Indeed?” |
|
|
|
“Ah! indeed!” said Miss Pross. “I am very much put out about my |
|
Ladybird.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed?” |
|
|
|
“For gracious sake say something else besides ‘indeed,’ or you’ll |
|
fidget me to death,” said Miss Pross: whose character (dissociated from |
|
stature) was shortness. |
|
|
|
“Really, then?” said Mr. Lorry, as an amendment. |
|
|
|
“Really, is bad enough,” returned Miss Pross, “but better. Yes, I am |
|
very much put out.” |
|
|
|
“May I ask the cause?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t want dozens of people who are not at all worthy of Ladybird, to |
|
come here looking after her,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“_Do_ dozens come for that purpose?” |
|
|
|
“Hundreds,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
It was characteristic of this lady (as of some other people before her |
|
time and since) that whenever her original proposition was questioned, |
|
she exaggerated it. |
|
|
|
“Dear me!” said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he could think of. |
|
|
|
“I have lived with the darling--or the darling has lived with me, and |
|
paid me for it; which she certainly should never have done, you may take |
|
your affidavit, if I could have afforded to keep either myself or her |
|
for nothing--since she was ten years old. And it’s really very hard,” |
|
said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
Not seeing with precision what was very hard, Mr. Lorry shook his head; |
|
using that important part of himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would |
|
fit anything. |
|
|
|
“All sorts of people who are not in the least degree worthy of the pet, |
|
are always turning up,” said Miss Pross. “When you began it--” |
|
|
|
“_I_ began it, Miss Pross?” |
|
|
|
“Didn’t you? Who brought her father to life?” |
|
|
|
“Oh! If _that_ was beginning it--” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“It wasn’t ending it, I suppose? I say, when you began it, it was hard |
|
enough; not that I have any fault to find with Doctor Manette, except |
|
that he is not worthy of such a daughter, which is no imputation on |
|
him, for it was not to be expected that anybody should be, under any |
|
circumstances. But it really is doubly and trebly hard to have crowds |
|
and multitudes of people turning up after him (I could have forgiven |
|
him), to take Ladybird’s affections away from me.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry knew Miss Pross to be very jealous, but he also knew her by |
|
this time to be, beneath the service of her eccentricity, one of those |
|
unselfish creatures--found only among women--who will, for pure love and |
|
admiration, bind themselves willing slaves, to youth when they have lost |
|
it, to beauty that they never had, to accomplishments that they were |
|
never fortunate enough to gain, to bright hopes that never shone upon |
|
their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to know that there |
|
is nothing in it better than the faithful service of the heart; so |
|
rendered and so free from any mercenary taint, he had such an exalted |
|
respect for it, that in the retributive arrangements made by his own |
|
mind--we all make such arrangements, more or less--he stationed Miss |
|
Pross much nearer to the lower Angels than many ladies immeasurably |
|
better got up both by Nature and Art, who had balances at Tellson’s. |
|
|
|
“There never was, nor will be, but one man worthy of Ladybird,” said |
|
Miss Pross; “and that was my brother Solomon, if he hadn’t made a |
|
mistake in life.” |
|
|
|
Here again: Mr. Lorry’s inquiries into Miss Pross’s personal history had |
|
established the fact that her brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel |
|
who had stripped her of everything she possessed, as a stake to |
|
speculate with, and had abandoned her in her poverty for evermore, with |
|
no touch of compunction. Miss Pross’s fidelity of belief in Solomon |
|
(deducting a mere trifle for this slight mistake) was quite a serious |
|
matter with Mr. Lorry, and had its weight in his good opinion of her. |
|
|
|
“As we happen to be alone for the moment, and are both people of |
|
business,” he said, when they had got back to the drawing-room and had |
|
sat down there in friendly relations, “let me ask you--does the Doctor, |
|
in talking with Lucie, never refer to the shoemaking time, yet?” |
|
|
|
“Never.” |
|
|
|
“And yet keeps that bench and those tools beside him?” |
|
|
|
“Ah!” returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. “But I don’t say he don’t |
|
refer to it within himself.” |
|
|
|
“Do you believe that he thinks of it much?” |
|
|
|
“I do,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“Do you imagine--” Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss Pross took him up |
|
short with: |
|
|
|
“Never imagine anything. Have no imagination at all.” |
|
|
|
“I stand corrected; do you suppose--you go so far as to suppose, |
|
sometimes?” |
|
|
|
“Now and then,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“Do you suppose,” Mr. Lorry went on, with a laughing twinkle in his |
|
bright eye, as it looked kindly at her, “that Doctor Manette has any |
|
theory of his own, preserved through all those years, relative to |
|
the cause of his being so oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of his |
|
oppressor?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t suppose anything about it but what Ladybird tells me.” |
|
|
|
“And that is--?” |
|
|
|
“That she thinks he has.” |
|
|
|
“Now don’t be angry at my asking all these questions; because I am a |
|
mere dull man of business, and you are a woman of business.” |
|
|
|
“Dull?” Miss Pross inquired, with placidity. |
|
|
|
Rather wishing his modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry replied, “No, no, |
|
no. Surely not. To return to business:--Is it not remarkable that Doctor |
|
Manette, unquestionably innocent of any crime as we are all well assured |
|
he is, should never touch upon that question? I will not say with me, |
|
though he had business relations with me many years ago, and we are now |
|
intimate; I will say with the fair daughter to whom he is so devotedly |
|
attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him? Believe me, Miss |
|
Pross, I don’t approach the topic with you, out of curiosity, but out of |
|
zealous interest.” |
|
|
|
“Well! To the best of my understanding, and bad’s the best, you’ll tell |
|
me,” said Miss Pross, softened by the tone of the apology, “he is afraid |
|
of the whole subject.” |
|
|
|
“Afraid?” |
|
|
|
“It’s plain enough, I should think, why he may be. It’s a dreadful |
|
remembrance. Besides that, his loss of himself grew out of it. Not |
|
knowing how he lost himself, or how he recovered himself, he may never |
|
feel certain of not losing himself again. That alone wouldn’t make the |
|
subject pleasant, I should think.” |
|
|
|
It was a profounder remark than Mr. Lorry had looked for. “True,” said |
|
he, “and fearful to reflect upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss |
|
Pross, whether it is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression |
|
always shut up within him. Indeed, it is this doubt and the uneasiness |
|
it sometimes causes me that has led me to our present confidence.” |
|
|
|
“Can’t be helped,” said Miss Pross, shaking her head. “Touch that |
|
string, and he instantly changes for the worse. Better leave it alone. |
|
In short, must leave it alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in |
|
the dead of the night, and will be heard, by us overhead there, walking |
|
up and down, walking up and down, in his room. Ladybird has learnt to |
|
know then that his mind is walking up and down, walking up and down, in |
|
his old prison. She hurries to him, and they go on together, walking up |
|
and down, walking up and down, until he is composed. But he never says |
|
a word of the true reason of his restlessness, to her, and she finds it |
|
best not to hint at it to him. In silence they go walking up and down |
|
together, walking up and down together, till her love and company have |
|
brought him to himself.” |
|
|
|
Notwithstanding Miss Pross’s denial of her own imagination, there was a |
|
perception of the pain of being monotonously haunted by one sad idea, |
|
in her repetition of the phrase, walking up and down, which testified to |
|
her possessing such a thing. |
|
|
|
The corner has been mentioned as a wonderful corner for echoes; it |
|
had begun to echo so resoundingly to the tread of coming feet, that it |
|
seemed as though the very mention of that weary pacing to and fro had |
|
set it going. |
|
|
|
“Here they are!” said Miss Pross, rising to break up the conference; |
|
“and now we shall have hundreds of people pretty soon!” |
|
|
|
It was such a curious corner in its acoustical properties, such a |
|
peculiar Ear of a place, that as Mr. Lorry stood at the open window, |
|
looking for the father and daughter whose steps he heard, he fancied |
|
they would never approach. Not only would the echoes die away, as though |
|
the steps had gone; but, echoes of other steps that never came would be |
|
heard in their stead, and would die away for good when they seemed close |
|
at hand. However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss Pross |
|
was ready at the street door to receive them. |
|
|
|
Miss Pross was a pleasant sight, albeit wild, and red, and grim, taking |
|
off her darling’s bonnet when she came up-stairs, and touching it up |
|
with the ends of her handkerchief, and blowing the dust off it, and |
|
folding her mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing her rich hair with |
|
as much pride as she could possibly have taken in her own hair if she |
|
had been the vainest and handsomest of women. Her darling was a pleasant |
|
sight too, embracing her and thanking her, and protesting against |
|
her taking so much trouble for her--which last she only dared to do |
|
playfully, or Miss Pross, sorely hurt, would have retired to her own |
|
chamber and cried. The Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at |
|
them, and telling Miss Pross how she spoilt Lucie, in accents and with |
|
eyes that had as much spoiling in them as Miss Pross had, and would |
|
have had more if it were possible. Mr. Lorry was a pleasant sight too, |
|
beaming at all this in his little wig, and thanking his bachelor |
|
stars for having lighted him in his declining years to a Home. But, no |
|
Hundreds of people came to see the sights, and Mr. Lorry looked in vain |
|
for the fulfilment of Miss Pross’s prediction. |
|
|
|
Dinner-time, and still no Hundreds of people. In the arrangements of |
|
the little household, Miss Pross took charge of the lower regions, and |
|
always acquitted herself marvellously. Her dinners, of a very modest |
|
quality, were so well cooked and so well served, and so neat in their |
|
contrivances, half English and half French, that nothing could be |
|
better. Miss Pross’s friendship being of the thoroughly practical |
|
kind, she had ravaged Soho and the adjacent provinces, in search of |
|
impoverished French, who, tempted by shillings and half-crowns, would |
|
impart culinary mysteries to her. From these decayed sons and daughters |
|
of Gaul, she had acquired such wonderful arts, that the woman and girl |
|
who formed the staff of domestics regarded her as quite a Sorceress, |
|
or Cinderella’s Godmother: who would send out for a fowl, a rabbit, |
|
a vegetable or two from the garden, and change them into anything she |
|
pleased. |
|
|
|
On Sundays, Miss Pross dined at the Doctor’s table, but on other days |
|
persisted in taking her meals at unknown periods, either in the lower |
|
regions, or in her own room on the second floor--a blue chamber, to |
|
which no one but her Ladybird ever gained admittance. On this occasion, |
|
Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird’s pleasant face and pleasant efforts |
|
to please her, unbent exceedingly; so the dinner was very pleasant, too. |
|
|
|
It was an oppressive day, and, after dinner, Lucie proposed that the |
|
wine should be carried out under the plane-tree, and they should sit |
|
there in the air. As everything turned upon her, and revolved about her, |
|
they went out under the plane-tree, and she carried the wine down for |
|
the special benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had installed herself, some |
|
time before, as Mr. Lorry’s cup-bearer; and while they sat under the |
|
plane-tree, talking, she kept his glass replenished. Mysterious backs |
|
and ends of houses peeped at them as they talked, and the plane-tree |
|
whispered to them in its own way above their heads. |
|
|
|
Still, the Hundreds of people did not present themselves. Mr. Darnay |
|
presented himself while they were sitting under the plane-tree, but he |
|
was only One. |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette received him kindly, and so did Lucie. But, Miss Pross |
|
suddenly became afflicted with a twitching in the head and body, and |
|
retired into the house. She was not unfrequently the victim of this |
|
disorder, and she called it, in familiar conversation, “a fit of the |
|
jerks.” |
|
|
|
The Doctor was in his best condition, and looked specially young. The |
|
resemblance between him and Lucie was very strong at such times, and as |
|
they sat side by side, she leaning on his shoulder, and he resting |
|
his arm on the back of her chair, it was very agreeable to trace the |
|
likeness. |
|
|
|
He had been talking all day, on many subjects, and with unusual |
|
vivacity. “Pray, Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Darnay, as they sat under the |
|
plane-tree--and he said it in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand, |
|
which happened to be the old buildings of London--“have you seen much of |
|
the Tower?” |
|
|
|
“Lucie and I have been there; but only casually. We have seen enough of |
|
it, to know that it teems with interest; little more.” |
|
|
|
“_I_ have been there, as you remember,” said Darnay, with a smile, |
|
though reddening a little angrily, “in another character, and not in a |
|
character that gives facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a |
|
curious thing when I was there.” |
|
|
|
“What was that?” Lucie asked. |
|
|
|
“In making some alterations, the workmen came upon an old dungeon, which |
|
had been, for many years, built up and forgotten. Every stone of |
|
its inner wall was covered by inscriptions which had been carved by |
|
prisoners--dates, names, complaints, and prayers. Upon a corner stone |
|
in an angle of the wall, one prisoner, who seemed to have gone to |
|
execution, had cut as his last work, three letters. They were done with |
|
some very poor instrument, and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand. |
|
At first, they were read as D. I. C.; but, on being more carefully |
|
examined, the last letter was found to be G. There was no record or |
|
legend of any prisoner with those initials, and many fruitless guesses |
|
were made what the name could have been. At length, it was suggested |
|
that the letters were not initials, but the complete word, DIG. The |
|
floor was examined very carefully under the inscription, and, in the |
|
earth beneath a stone, or tile, or some fragment of paving, were found |
|
the ashes of a paper, mingled with the ashes of a small leathern case |
|
or bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never be read, but he |
|
had written something, and hidden it away to keep it from the gaoler.” |
|
|
|
“My father,” exclaimed Lucie, “you are ill!” |
|
|
|
He had suddenly started up, with his hand to his head. His manner and |
|
his look quite terrified them all. |
|
|
|
“No, my dear, not ill. There are large drops of rain falling, and they |
|
made me start. We had better go in.” |
|
|
|
He recovered himself almost instantly. Rain was really falling in large |
|
drops, and he showed the back of his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he |
|
said not a single word in reference to the discovery that had been told |
|
of, and, as they went into the house, the business eye of Mr. Lorry |
|
either detected, or fancied it detected, on his face, as it turned |
|
towards Charles Darnay, the same singular look that had been upon it |
|
when it turned towards him in the passages of the Court House. |
|
|
|
He recovered himself so quickly, however, that Mr. Lorry had doubts of |
|
his business eye. The arm of the golden giant in the hall was not more |
|
steady than he was, when he stopped under it to remark to them that he |
|
was not yet proof against slight surprises (if he ever would be), and |
|
that the rain had startled him. |
|
|
|
Tea-time, and Miss Pross making tea, with another fit of the jerks upon |
|
her, and yet no Hundreds of people. Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he |
|
made only Two. |
|
|
|
The night was so very sultry, that although they sat with doors and |
|
windows open, they were overpowered by heat. When the tea-table was |
|
done with, they all moved to one of the windows, and looked out into the |
|
heavy twilight. Lucie sat by her father; Darnay sat beside her; Carton |
|
leaned against a window. The curtains were long and white, and some of |
|
the thunder-gusts that whirled into the corner, caught them up to the |
|
ceiling, and waved them like spectral wings. |
|
|
|
“The rain-drops are still falling, large, heavy, and few,” said Doctor |
|
Manette. “It comes slowly.” |
|
|
|
“It comes surely,” said Carton. |
|
|
|
They spoke low, as people watching and waiting mostly do; as people in a |
|
dark room, watching and waiting for Lightning, always do. |
|
|
|
There was a great hurry in the streets of people speeding away to |
|
get shelter before the storm broke; the wonderful corner for echoes |
|
resounded with the echoes of footsteps coming and going, yet not a |
|
footstep was there. |
|
|
|
“A multitude of people, and yet a solitude!” said Darnay, when they had |
|
listened for a while. |
|
|
|
“Is it not impressive, Mr. Darnay?” asked Lucie. “Sometimes, I have |
|
sat here of an evening, until I have fancied--but even the shade of |
|
a foolish fancy makes me shudder to-night, when all is so black and |
|
solemn--” |
|
|
|
“Let us shudder too. We may know what it is.” |
|
|
|
“It will seem nothing to you. Such whims are only impressive as we |
|
originate them, I think; they are not to be communicated. I have |
|
sometimes sat alone here of an evening, listening, until I have made |
|
the echoes out to be the echoes of all the footsteps that are coming |
|
by-and-bye into our lives.” |
|
|
|
“There is a great crowd coming one day into our lives, if that be so,” |
|
Sydney Carton struck in, in his moody way. |
|
|
|
The footsteps were incessant, and the hurry of them became more and more |
|
rapid. The corner echoed and re-echoed with the tread of feet; some, |
|
as it seemed, under the windows; some, as it seemed, in the room; some |
|
coming, some going, some breaking off, some stopping altogether; all in |
|
the distant streets, and not one within sight. |
|
|
|
“Are all these footsteps destined to come to all of us, Miss Manette, or |
|
are we to divide them among us?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t know, Mr. Darnay; I told you it was a foolish fancy, but you |
|
asked for it. When I have yielded myself to it, I have been alone, and |
|
then I have imagined them the footsteps of the people who are to come |
|
into my life, and my father’s.” |
|
|
|
“I take them into mine!” said Carton. “_I_ ask no questions and make no |
|
stipulations. There is a great crowd bearing down upon us, Miss Manette, |
|
and I see them--by the Lightning.” He added the last words, after there |
|
had been a vivid flash which had shown him lounging in the window. |
|
|
|
“And I hear them!” he added again, after a peal of thunder. “Here they |
|
come, fast, fierce, and furious!” |
|
|
|
It was the rush and roar of rain that he typified, and it stopped him, |
|
for no voice could be heard in it. A memorable storm of thunder and |
|
lightning broke with that sweep of water, and there was not a moment’s |
|
interval in crash, and fire, and rain, until after the moon rose at |
|
midnight. |
|
|
|
The great bell of Saint Paul’s was striking one in the cleared air, when |
|
Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry, high-booted and bearing a lantern, set |
|
forth on his return-passage to Clerkenwell. There were solitary patches |
|
of road on the way between Soho and Clerkenwell, and Mr. Lorry, mindful |
|
of foot-pads, always retained Jerry for this service: though it was |
|
usually performed a good two hours earlier. |
|
|
|
“What a night it has been! Almost a night, Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry, “to |
|
bring the dead out of their graves.” |
|
|
|
“I never see the night myself, master--nor yet I don’t expect to--what |
|
would do that,” answered Jerry. |
|
|
|
“Good night, Mr. Carton,” said the man of business. “Good night, Mr. |
|
Darnay. Shall we ever see such a night again, together!” |
|
|
|
Perhaps. Perhaps, see the great crowd of people with its rush and roar, |
|
bearing down upon them, too. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII. |
|
Monseigneur in Town |
|
|
|
|
|
Monseigneur, one of the great lords in power at the Court, held his |
|
fortnightly reception in his grand hotel in Paris. Monseigneur was in |
|
his inner room, his sanctuary of sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to |
|
the crowd of worshippers in the suite of rooms without. Monseigneur |
|
was about to take his chocolate. Monseigneur could swallow a great many |
|
things with ease, and was by some few sullen minds supposed to be rather |
|
rapidly swallowing France; but, his morning’s chocolate could not so |
|
much as get into the throat of Monseigneur, without the aid of four |
|
strong men besides the Cook. |
|
|
|
Yes. It took four men, all four ablaze with gorgeous decoration, and the |
|
Chief of them unable to exist with fewer than two gold watches in his |
|
pocket, emulative of the noble and chaste fashion set by Monseigneur, to |
|
conduct the happy chocolate to Monseigneur’s lips. One lacquey carried |
|
the chocolate-pot into the sacred presence; a second, milled and frothed |
|
the chocolate with the little instrument he bore for that function; |
|
a third, presented the favoured napkin; a fourth (he of the two gold |
|
watches), poured the chocolate out. It was impossible for Monseigneur to |
|
dispense with one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold his high |
|
place under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have been the blot upon |
|
his escutcheon if his chocolate had been ignobly waited on by only three |
|
men; he must have died of two. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur had been out at a little supper last night, where the Comedy |
|
and the Grand Opera were charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at |
|
a little supper most nights, with fascinating company. So polite and so |
|
impressible was Monseigneur, that the Comedy and the Grand Opera had far |
|
more influence with him in the tiresome articles of state affairs and |
|
state secrets, than the needs of all France. A happy circumstance |
|
for France, as the like always is for all countries similarly |
|
favoured!--always was for England (by way of example), in the regretted |
|
days of the merry Stuart who sold it. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur had one truly noble idea of general public business, which |
|
was, to let everything go on in its own way; of particular public |
|
business, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea that it must all go |
|
his way--tend to his own power and pocket. Of his pleasures, general and |
|
particular, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea, that the world |
|
was made for them. The text of his order (altered from the original |
|
by only a pronoun, which is not much) ran: “The earth and the fulness |
|
thereof are mine, saith Monseigneur.” |
|
|
|
Yet, Monseigneur had slowly found that vulgar embarrassments crept into |
|
his affairs, both private and public; and he had, as to both classes of |
|
affairs, allied himself perforce with a Farmer-General. As to finances |
|
public, because Monseigneur could not make anything at all of them, and |
|
must consequently let them out to somebody who could; as to finances |
|
private, because Farmer-Generals were rich, and Monseigneur, after |
|
generations of great luxury and expense, was growing poor. Hence |
|
Monseigneur had taken his sister from a convent, while there was yet |
|
time to ward off the impending veil, the cheapest garment she could |
|
wear, and had bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich Farmer-General, |
|
poor in family. Which Farmer-General, carrying an appropriate cane with |
|
a golden apple on the top of it, was now among the company in the outer |
|
rooms, much prostrated before by mankind--always excepting superior |
|
mankind of the blood of Monseigneur, who, his own wife included, looked |
|
down upon him with the loftiest contempt. |
|
|
|
A sumptuous man was the Farmer-General. Thirty horses stood in his |
|
stables, twenty-four male domestics sat in his halls, six body-women |
|
waited on his wife. As one who pretended to do nothing but plunder and |
|
forage where he could, the Farmer-General--howsoever his matrimonial |
|
relations conduced to social morality--was at least the greatest reality |
|
among the personages who attended at the hotel of Monseigneur that day. |
|
|
|
For, the rooms, though a beautiful scene to look at, and adorned with |
|
every device of decoration that the taste and skill of the time could |
|
achieve, were, in truth, not a sound business; considered with any |
|
reference to the scarecrows in the rags and nightcaps elsewhere (and not |
|
so far off, either, but that the watching towers of Notre Dame, almost |
|
equidistant from the two extremes, could see them both), they would |
|
have been an exceedingly uncomfortable business--if that could have |
|
been anybody’s business, at the house of Monseigneur. Military officers |
|
destitute of military knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship; |
|
civil officers without a notion of affairs; brazen ecclesiastics, of the |
|
worst world worldly, with sensual eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives; |
|
all totally unfit for their several callings, all lying horribly in |
|
pretending to belong to them, but all nearly or remotely of the order of |
|
Monseigneur, and therefore foisted on all public employments from which |
|
anything was to be got; these were to be told off by the score and the |
|
score. People not immediately connected with Monseigneur or the State, |
|
yet equally unconnected with anything that was real, or with lives |
|
passed in travelling by any straight road to any true earthly end, were |
|
no less abundant. Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies |
|
for imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon their courtly |
|
patients in the ante-chambers of Monseigneur. Projectors who had |
|
discovered every kind of remedy for the little evils with which the |
|
State was touched, except the remedy of setting to work in earnest to |
|
root out a single sin, poured their distracting babble into any ears |
|
they could lay hold of, at the reception of Monseigneur. Unbelieving |
|
Philosophers who were remodelling the world with words, and making |
|
card-towers of Babel to scale the skies with, talked with Unbelieving |
|
Chemists who had an eye on the transmutation of metals, at this |
|
wonderful gathering accumulated by Monseigneur. Exquisite gentlemen of |
|
the finest breeding, which was at that remarkable time--and has been |
|
since--to be known by its fruits of indifference to every natural |
|
subject of human interest, were in the most exemplary state of |
|
exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur. Such homes had these various |
|
notabilities left behind them in the fine world of Paris, that the spies |
|
among the assembled devotees of Monseigneur--forming a goodly half |
|
of the polite company--would have found it hard to discover among |
|
the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who, in her manners and |
|
appearance, owned to being a Mother. Indeed, except for the mere act of |
|
bringing a troublesome creature into this world--which does not go far |
|
towards the realisation of the name of mother--there was no such thing |
|
known to the fashion. Peasant women kept the unfashionable babies close, |
|
and brought them up, and charming grandmammas of sixty dressed and |
|
supped as at twenty. |
|
|
|
The leprosy of unreality disfigured every human creature in attendance |
|
upon Monseigneur. In the outermost room were half a dozen exceptional |
|
people who had had, for a few years, some vague misgiving in them that |
|
things in general were going rather wrong. As a promising way of setting |
|
them right, half of the half-dozen had become members of a fantastic |
|
sect of Convulsionists, and were even then considering within themselves |
|
whether they should foam, rage, roar, and turn cataleptic on the |
|
spot--thereby setting up a highly intelligible finger-post to the |
|
Future, for Monseigneur’s guidance. Besides these Dervishes, were other |
|
three who had rushed into another sect, which mended matters with a |
|
jargon about “the Centre of Truth:” holding that Man had got out of the |
|
Centre of Truth--which did not need much demonstration--but had not got |
|
out of the Circumference, and that he was to be kept from flying out of |
|
the Circumference, and was even to be shoved back into the Centre, |
|
by fasting and seeing of spirits. Among these, accordingly, much |
|
discoursing with spirits went on--and it did a world of good which never |
|
became manifest. |
|
|
|
But, the comfort was, that all the company at the grand hotel of |
|
Monseigneur were perfectly dressed. If the Day of Judgment had only been |
|
ascertained to be a dress day, everybody there would have been eternally |
|
correct. Such frizzling and powdering and sticking up of hair, such |
|
delicate complexions artificially preserved and mended, such gallant |
|
swords to look at, and such delicate honour to the sense of smell, would |
|
surely keep anything going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen |
|
of the finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked as they |
|
languidly moved; these golden fetters rang like precious little bells; |
|
and what with that ringing, and with the rustle of silk and brocade and |
|
fine linen, there was a flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and |
|
his devouring hunger far away. |
|
|
|
Dress was the one unfailing talisman and charm used for keeping all |
|
things in their places. Everybody was dressed for a Fancy Ball that |
|
was never to leave off. From the Palace of the Tuileries, through |
|
Monseigneur and the whole Court, through the Chambers, the Tribunals |
|
of Justice, and all society (except the scarecrows), the Fancy Ball |
|
descended to the Common Executioner: who, in pursuance of the charm, was |
|
required to officiate “frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced coat, pumps, |
|
and white silk stockings.” At the gallows and the wheel--the axe was a |
|
rarity--Monsieur Paris, as it was the episcopal mode among his brother |
|
Professors of the provinces, Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call |
|
him, presided in this dainty dress. And who among the company at |
|
Monseigneur’s reception in that seventeen hundred and eightieth year |
|
of our Lord, could possibly doubt, that a system rooted in a frizzled |
|
hangman, powdered, gold-laced, pumped, and white-silk stockinged, would |
|
see the very stars out! |
|
|
|
Monseigneur having eased his four men of their burdens and taken his |
|
chocolate, caused the doors of the Holiest of Holiests to be thrown |
|
open, and issued forth. Then, what submission, what cringing and |
|
fawning, what servility, what abject humiliation! As to bowing down in |
|
body and spirit, nothing in that way was left for Heaven--which may have |
|
been one among other reasons why the worshippers of Monseigneur never |
|
troubled it. |
|
|
|
Bestowing a word of promise here and a smile there, a whisper on one |
|
happy slave and a wave of the hand on another, Monseigneur affably |
|
passed through his rooms to the remote region of the Circumference of |
|
Truth. There, Monseigneur turned, and came back again, and so in due |
|
course of time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by the chocolate |
|
sprites, and was seen no more. |
|
|
|
The show being over, the flutter in the air became quite a little storm, |
|
and the precious little bells went ringing downstairs. There was soon |
|
but one person left of all the crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm |
|
and his snuff-box in his hand, slowly passed among the mirrors on his |
|
way out. |
|
|
|
“I devote you,” said this person, stopping at the last door on his way, |
|
and turning in the direction of the sanctuary, “to the Devil!” |
|
|
|
With that, he shook the snuff from his fingers as if he had shaken the |
|
dust from his feet, and quietly walked downstairs. |
|
|
|
He was a man of about sixty, handsomely dressed, haughty in manner, and |
|
with a face like a fine mask. A face of a transparent paleness; every |
|
feature in it clearly defined; one set expression on it. The nose, |
|
beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly pinched at the top |
|
of each nostril. In those two compressions, or dints, the only little |
|
change that the face ever showed, resided. They persisted in changing |
|
colour sometimes, and they would be occasionally dilated and contracted |
|
by something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look of |
|
treachery, and cruelty, to the whole countenance. Examined with |
|
attention, its capacity of helping such a look was to be found in the |
|
line of the mouth, and the lines of the orbits of the eyes, being much |
|
too horizontal and thin; still, in the effect of the face made, it was a |
|
handsome face, and a remarkable one. |
|
|
|
Its owner went downstairs into the courtyard, got into his carriage, and |
|
drove away. Not many people had talked with him at the reception; he had |
|
stood in a little space apart, and Monseigneur might have been warmer |
|
in his manner. It appeared, under the circumstances, rather agreeable |
|
to him to see the common people dispersed before his horses, and |
|
often barely escaping from being run down. His man drove as if he were |
|
charging an enemy, and the furious recklessness of the man brought no |
|
check into the face, or to the lips, of the master. The complaint had |
|
sometimes made itself audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age, |
|
that, in the narrow streets without footways, the fierce patrician |
|
custom of hard driving endangered and maimed the mere vulgar in a |
|
barbarous manner. But, few cared enough for that to think of it a second |
|
time, and, in this matter, as in all others, the common wretches were |
|
left to get out of their difficulties as they could. |
|
|
|
With a wild rattle and clatter, and an inhuman abandonment of |
|
consideration not easy to be understood in these days, the carriage |
|
dashed through streets and swept round corners, with women screaming |
|
before it, and men clutching each other and clutching children out of |
|
its way. At last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain, one of its |
|
wheels came to a sickening little jolt, and there was a loud cry from a |
|
number of voices, and the horses reared and plunged. |
|
|
|
But for the latter inconvenience, the carriage probably would not have |
|
stopped; carriages were often known to drive on, and leave their wounded |
|
behind, and why not? But the frightened valet had got down in a hurry, |
|
and there were twenty hands at the horses’ bridles. |
|
|
|
“What has gone wrong?” said Monsieur, calmly looking out. |
|
|
|
A tall man in a nightcap had caught up a bundle from among the feet of |
|
the horses, and had laid it on the basement of the fountain, and was |
|
down in the mud and wet, howling over it like a wild animal. |
|
|
|
“Pardon, Monsieur the Marquis!” said a ragged and submissive man, “it is |
|
a child.” |
|
|
|
“Why does he make that abominable noise? Is it his child?” |
|
|
|
“Excuse me, Monsieur the Marquis--it is a pity--yes.” |
|
|
|
The fountain was a little removed; for the street opened, where it was, |
|
into a space some ten or twelve yards square. As the tall man suddenly |
|
got up from the ground, and came running at the carriage, Monsieur the |
|
Marquis clapped his hand for an instant on his sword-hilt. |
|
|
|
“Killed!” shrieked the man, in wild desperation, extending both arms at |
|
their length above his head, and staring at him. “Dead!” |
|
|
|
The people closed round, and looked at Monsieur the Marquis. There was |
|
nothing revealed by the many eyes that looked at him but watchfulness |
|
and eagerness; there was no visible menacing or anger. Neither did the |
|
people say anything; after the first cry, they had been silent, and they |
|
remained so. The voice of the submissive man who had spoken, was flat |
|
and tame in its extreme submission. Monsieur the Marquis ran his eyes |
|
over them all, as if they had been mere rats come out of their holes. |
|
|
|
He took out his purse. |
|
|
|
“It is extraordinary to me,” said he, “that you people cannot take care |
|
of yourselves and your children. One or the other of you is for ever in |
|
the way. How do I know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give |
|
him that.” |
|
|
|
He threw out a gold coin for the valet to pick up, and all the heads |
|
craned forward that all the eyes might look down at it as it fell. The |
|
tall man called out again with a most unearthly cry, “Dead!” |
|
|
|
He was arrested by the quick arrival of another man, for whom the rest |
|
made way. On seeing him, the miserable creature fell upon his shoulder, |
|
sobbing and crying, and pointing to the fountain, where some women were |
|
stooping over the motionless bundle, and moving gently about it. They |
|
were as silent, however, as the men. |
|
|
|
“I know all, I know all,” said the last comer. “Be a brave man, my |
|
Gaspard! It is better for the poor little plaything to die so, than to |
|
live. It has died in a moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour |
|
as happily?” |
|
|
|
“You are a philosopher, you there,” said the Marquis, smiling. “How do |
|
they call you?” |
|
|
|
“They call me Defarge.” |
|
|
|
“Of what trade?” |
|
|
|
“Monsieur the Marquis, vendor of wine.” |
|
|
|
“Pick up that, philosopher and vendor of wine,” said the Marquis, |
|
throwing him another gold coin, “and spend it as you will. The horses |
|
there; are they right?” |
|
|
|
Without deigning to look at the assemblage a second time, Monsieur the |
|
Marquis leaned back in his seat, and was just being driven away with the |
|
air of a gentleman who had accidentally broke some common thing, and had |
|
paid for it, and could afford to pay for it; when his ease was suddenly |
|
disturbed by a coin flying into his carriage, and ringing on its floor. |
|
|
|
“Hold!” said Monsieur the Marquis. “Hold the horses! Who threw that?” |
|
|
|
He looked to the spot where Defarge the vendor of wine had stood, a |
|
moment before; but the wretched father was grovelling on his face on |
|
the pavement in that spot, and the figure that stood beside him was the |
|
figure of a dark stout woman, knitting. |
|
|
|
“You dogs!” said the Marquis, but smoothly, and with an unchanged front, |
|
except as to the spots on his nose: “I would ride over any of you very |
|
willingly, and exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal |
|
threw at the carriage, and if that brigand were sufficiently near it, he |
|
should be crushed under the wheels.” |
|
|
|
So cowed was their condition, and so long and hard their experience of |
|
what such a man could do to them, within the law and beyond it, that not |
|
a voice, or a hand, or even an eye was raised. Among the men, not one. |
|
But the woman who stood knitting looked up steadily, and looked the |
|
Marquis in the face. It was not for his dignity to notice it; his |
|
contemptuous eyes passed over her, and over all the other rats; and he |
|
leaned back in his seat again, and gave the word “Go on!” |
|
|
|
He was driven on, and other carriages came whirling by in quick |
|
succession; the Minister, the State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the |
|
Doctor, the Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic, the Grand Opera, the Comedy, the |
|
whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow, came whirling by. The rats |
|
had crept out of their holes to look on, and they remained looking |
|
on for hours; soldiers and police often passing between them and the |
|
spectacle, and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through |
|
which they peeped. The father had long ago taken up his bundle and |
|
bidden himself away with it, when the women who had tended the bundle |
|
while it lay on the base of the fountain, sat there watching the running |
|
of the water and the rolling of the Fancy Ball--when the one woman who |
|
had stood conspicuous, knitting, still knitted on with the steadfastness |
|
of Fate. The water of the fountain ran, the swift river ran, the day ran |
|
into evening, so much life in the city ran into death according to rule, |
|
time and tide waited for no man, the rats were sleeping close together |
|
in their dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was lighted up at supper, all |
|
things ran their course. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. |
|
Monseigneur in the Country |
|
|
|
|
|
A beautiful landscape, with the corn bright in it, but not abundant. |
|
Patches of poor rye where corn should have been, patches of poor peas |
|
and beans, patches of most coarse vegetable substitutes for wheat. On |
|
inanimate nature, as on the men and women who cultivated it, a prevalent |
|
tendency towards an appearance of vegetating unwillingly--a dejected |
|
disposition to give up, and wither away. |
|
|
|
Monsieur the Marquis in his travelling carriage (which might have been |
|
lighter), conducted by four post-horses and two postilions, fagged up |
|
a steep hill. A blush on the countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was |
|
no impeachment of his high breeding; it was not from within; it was |
|
occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his control--the setting |
|
sun. |
|
|
|
The sunset struck so brilliantly into the travelling carriage when it |
|
gained the hill-top, that its occupant was steeped in crimson. “It will |
|
die out,” said Monsieur the Marquis, glancing at his hands, “directly.” |
|
|
|
In effect, the sun was so low that it dipped at the moment. When the |
|
heavy drag had been adjusted to the wheel, and the carriage slid down |
|
hill, with a cinderous smell, in a cloud of dust, the red glow departed |
|
quickly; the sun and the Marquis going down together, there was no glow |
|
left when the drag was taken off. |
|
|
|
But, there remained a broken country, bold and open, a little village |
|
at the bottom of the hill, a broad sweep and rise beyond it, a |
|
church-tower, a windmill, a forest for the chase, and a crag with a |
|
fortress on it used as a prison. Round upon all these darkening objects |
|
as the night drew on, the Marquis looked, with the air of one who was |
|
coming near home. |
|
|
|
The village had its one poor street, with its poor brewery, poor |
|
tannery, poor tavern, poor stable-yard for relays of post-horses, poor |
|
fountain, all usual poor appointments. It had its poor people too. All |
|
its people were poor, and many of them were sitting at their doors, |
|
shredding spare onions and the like for supper, while many were at the |
|
fountain, washing leaves, and grasses, and any such small yieldings of |
|
the earth that could be eaten. Expressive signs of what made them poor, |
|
were not wanting; the tax for the state, the tax for the church, the tax |
|
for the lord, tax local and tax general, were to be paid here and to be |
|
paid there, according to solemn inscription in the little village, until |
|
the wonder was, that there was any village left unswallowed. |
|
|
|
Few children were to be seen, and no dogs. As to the men and women, |
|
their choice on earth was stated in the prospect--Life on the lowest |
|
terms that could sustain it, down in the little village under the mill; |
|
or captivity and Death in the dominant prison on the crag. |
|
|
|
Heralded by a courier in advance, and by the cracking of his postilions’ |
|
whips, which twined snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as |
|
if he came attended by the Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up in |
|
his travelling carriage at the posting-house gate. It was hard by the |
|
fountain, and the peasants suspended their operations to look at him. |
|
He looked at them, and saw in them, without knowing it, the slow |
|
sure filing down of misery-worn face and figure, that was to make the |
|
meagreness of Frenchmen an English superstition which should survive the |
|
truth through the best part of a hundred years. |
|
|
|
Monsieur the Marquis cast his eyes over the submissive faces that |
|
drooped before him, as the like of himself had drooped before |
|
Monseigneur of the Court--only the difference was, that these faces |
|
drooped merely to suffer and not to propitiate--when a grizzled mender |
|
of the roads joined the group. |
|
|
|
“Bring me hither that fellow!” said the Marquis to the courier. |
|
|
|
The fellow was brought, cap in hand, and the other fellows closed round |
|
to look and listen, in the manner of the people at the Paris fountain. |
|
|
|
“I passed you on the road?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, it is true. I had the honour of being passed on the road.” |
|
|
|
“Coming up the hill, and at the top of the hill, both?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, it is true.” |
|
|
|
“What did you look at, so fixedly?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, I looked at the man.” |
|
|
|
He stooped a little, and with his tattered blue cap pointed under the |
|
carriage. All his fellows stooped to look under the carriage. |
|
|
|
“What man, pig? And why look there?” |
|
|
|
“Pardon, Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the shoe--the drag.” |
|
|
|
“Who?” demanded the traveller. |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, the man.” |
|
|
|
“May the Devil carry away these idiots! How do you call the man? You |
|
know all the men of this part of the country. Who was he?” |
|
|
|
“Your clemency, Monseigneur! He was not of this part of the country. Of |
|
all the days of my life, I never saw him.” |
|
|
|
“Swinging by the chain? To be suffocated?” |
|
|
|
“With your gracious permission, that was the wonder of it, Monseigneur. |
|
His head hanging over--like this!” |
|
|
|
He turned himself sideways to the carriage, and leaned back, with his |
|
face thrown up to the sky, and his head hanging down; then recovered |
|
himself, fumbled with his cap, and made a bow. |
|
|
|
“What was he like?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, he was whiter than the miller. All covered with dust, |
|
white as a spectre, tall as a spectre!” |
|
|
|
The picture produced an immense sensation in the little crowd; but all |
|
eyes, without comparing notes with other eyes, looked at Monsieur |
|
the Marquis. Perhaps, to observe whether he had any spectre on his |
|
conscience. |
|
|
|
“Truly, you did well,” said the Marquis, felicitously sensible that such |
|
vermin were not to ruffle him, “to see a thief accompanying my carriage, |
|
and not open that great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside, Monsieur |
|
Gabelle!” |
|
|
|
Monsieur Gabelle was the Postmaster, and some other taxing functionary |
|
united; he had come out with great obsequiousness to assist at this |
|
examination, and had held the examined by the drapery of his arm in an |
|
official manner. |
|
|
|
“Bah! Go aside!” said Monsieur Gabelle. |
|
|
|
“Lay hands on this stranger if he seeks to lodge in your village |
|
to-night, and be sure that his business is honest, Gabelle.” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, I am flattered to devote myself to your orders.” |
|
|
|
“Did he run away, fellow?--where is that Accursed?” |
|
|
|
The accursed was already under the carriage with some half-dozen |
|
particular friends, pointing out the chain with his blue cap. Some |
|
half-dozen other particular friends promptly hauled him out, and |
|
presented him breathless to Monsieur the Marquis. |
|
|
|
“Did the man run away, Dolt, when we stopped for the drag?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, he precipitated himself over the hill-side, head first, as |
|
a person plunges into the river.” |
|
|
|
“See to it, Gabelle. Go on!” |
|
|
|
The half-dozen who were peering at the chain were still among the |
|
wheels, like sheep; the wheels turned so suddenly that they were lucky |
|
to save their skins and bones; they had very little else to save, or |
|
they might not have been so fortunate. |
|
|
|
The burst with which the carriage started out of the village and up the |
|
rise beyond, was soon checked by the steepness of the hill. Gradually, |
|
it subsided to a foot pace, swinging and lumbering upward among the many |
|
sweet scents of a summer night. The postilions, with a thousand gossamer |
|
gnats circling about them in lieu of the Furies, quietly mended the |
|
points to the lashes of their whips; the valet walked by the horses; the |
|
courier was audible, trotting on ahead into the dull distance. |
|
|
|
At the steepest point of the hill there was a little burial-ground, |
|
with a Cross and a new large figure of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor |
|
figure in wood, done by some inexperienced rustic carver, but he had |
|
studied the figure from the life--his own life, maybe--for it was |
|
dreadfully spare and thin. |
|
|
|
To this distressful emblem of a great distress that had long been |
|
growing worse, and was not at its worst, a woman was kneeling. She |
|
turned her head as the carriage came up to her, rose quickly, and |
|
presented herself at the carriage-door. |
|
|
|
“It is you, Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a petition.” |
|
|
|
With an exclamation of impatience, but with his unchangeable face, |
|
Monseigneur looked out. |
|
|
|
“How, then! What is it? Always petitions!” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur. For the love of the great God! My husband, the forester.” |
|
|
|
“What of your husband, the forester? Always the same with you people. He |
|
cannot pay something?” |
|
|
|
“He has paid all, Monseigneur. He is dead.” |
|
|
|
“Well! He is quiet. Can I restore him to you?” |
|
|
|
“Alas, no, Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a little heap of poor |
|
grass.” |
|
|
|
“Well?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, there are so many little heaps of poor grass?” |
|
|
|
“Again, well?” |
|
|
|
She looked an old woman, but was young. Her manner was one of passionate |
|
grief; by turns she clasped her veinous and knotted hands together |
|
with wild energy, and laid one of them on the carriage-door--tenderly, |
|
caressingly, as if it had been a human breast, and could be expected to |
|
feel the appealing touch. |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, hear me! Monseigneur, hear my petition! My husband died of |
|
want; so many die of want; so many more will die of want.” |
|
|
|
“Again, well? Can I feed them?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, the good God knows; but I don’t ask it. My petition is, |
|
that a morsel of stone or wood, with my husband’s name, may be placed |
|
over him to show where he lies. Otherwise, the place will be quickly |
|
forgotten, it will never be found when I am dead of the same malady, I |
|
shall be laid under some other heap of poor grass. Monseigneur, they |
|
are so many, they increase so fast, there is so much want. Monseigneur! |
|
Monseigneur!” |
|
|
|
The valet had put her away from the door, the carriage had broken into |
|
a brisk trot, the postilions had quickened the pace, she was left far |
|
behind, and Monseigneur, again escorted by the Furies, was rapidly |
|
diminishing the league or two of distance that remained between him and |
|
his chateau. |
|
|
|
The sweet scents of the summer night rose all around him, and rose, as |
|
the rain falls, impartially, on the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group |
|
at the fountain not far away; to whom the mender of roads, with the aid |
|
of the blue cap without which he was nothing, still enlarged upon his |
|
man like a spectre, as long as they could bear it. By degrees, as they |
|
could bear no more, they dropped off one by one, and lights twinkled |
|
in little casements; which lights, as the casements darkened, and more |
|
stars came out, seemed to have shot up into the sky instead of having |
|
been extinguished. |
|
|
|
The shadow of a large high-roofed house, and of many over-hanging trees, |
|
was upon Monsieur the Marquis by that time; and the shadow was exchanged |
|
for the light of a flambeau, as his carriage stopped, and the great door |
|
of his chateau was opened to him. |
|
|
|
“Monsieur Charles, whom I expect; is he arrived from England?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, not yet.” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX. |
|
The Gorgon’s Head |
|
|
|
|
|
It was a heavy mass of building, that chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, |
|
with a large stone courtyard before it, and two stone sweeps of |
|
staircase meeting in a stone terrace before the principal door. A stony |
|
business altogether, with heavy stone balustrades, and stone urns, and |
|
stone flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone heads of lions, in |
|
all directions. As if the Gorgon’s head had surveyed it, when it was |
|
finished, two centuries ago. |
|
|
|
Up the broad flight of shallow steps, Monsieur the Marquis, flambeau |
|
preceded, went from his carriage, sufficiently disturbing the darkness |
|
to elicit loud remonstrance from an owl in the roof of the great pile |
|
of stable building away among the trees. All else was so quiet, that the |
|
flambeau carried up the steps, and the other flambeau held at the great |
|
door, burnt as if they were in a close room of state, instead of being |
|
in the open night-air. Other sound than the owl’s voice there was none, |
|
save the falling of a fountain into its stone basin; for, it was one of |
|
those dark nights that hold their breath by the hour together, and then |
|
heave a long low sigh, and hold their breath again. |
|
|
|
The great door clanged behind him, and Monsieur the Marquis crossed a |
|
hall grim with certain old boar-spears, swords, and knives of the chase; |
|
grimmer with certain heavy riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a |
|
peasant, gone to his benefactor Death, had felt the weight when his lord |
|
was angry. |
|
|
|
Avoiding the larger rooms, which were dark and made fast for the night, |
|
Monsieur the Marquis, with his flambeau-bearer going on before, went up |
|
the staircase to a door in a corridor. This thrown open, admitted him |
|
to his own private apartment of three rooms: his bed-chamber and two |
|
others. High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted floors, great dogs upon |
|
the hearths for the burning of wood in winter time, and all luxuries |
|
befitting the state of a marquis in a luxurious age and country. |
|
The fashion of the last Louis but one, of the line that was never to |
|
break--the fourteenth Louis--was conspicuous in their rich furniture; |
|
but, it was diversified by many objects that were illustrations of old |
|
pages in the history of France. |
|
|
|
A supper-table was laid for two, in the third of the rooms; a round |
|
room, in one of the chateau’s four extinguisher-topped towers. A small |
|
lofty room, with its window wide open, and the wooden jalousie-blinds |
|
closed, so that the dark night only showed in slight horizontal lines of |
|
black, alternating with their broad lines of stone colour. |
|
|
|
“My nephew,” said the Marquis, glancing at the supper preparation; “they |
|
said he was not arrived.” |
|
|
|
Nor was he; but, he had been expected with Monseigneur. |
|
|
|
“Ah! It is not probable he will arrive to-night; nevertheless, leave the |
|
table as it is. I shall be ready in a quarter of an hour.” |
|
|
|
In a quarter of an hour Monseigneur was ready, and sat down alone to his |
|
sumptuous and choice supper. His chair was opposite to the window, and |
|
he had taken his soup, and was raising his glass of Bordeaux to his |
|
lips, when he put it down. |
|
|
|
“What is that?” he calmly asked, looking with attention at the |
|
horizontal lines of black and stone colour. |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur? That?” |
|
|
|
“Outside the blinds. Open the blinds.” |
|
|
|
It was done. |
|
|
|
“Well?” |
|
|
|
“Monseigneur, it is nothing. The trees and the night are all that are |
|
here.” |
|
|
|
The servant who spoke, had thrown the blinds wide, had looked out into |
|
the vacant darkness, and stood with that blank behind him, looking round |
|
for instructions. |
|
|
|
“Good,” said the imperturbable master. “Close them again.” |
|
|
|
That was done too, and the Marquis went on with his supper. He was |
|
half way through it, when he again stopped with his glass in his hand, |
|
hearing the sound of wheels. It came on briskly, and came up to the |
|
front of the chateau. |
|
|
|
“Ask who is arrived.” |
|
|
|
It was the nephew of Monseigneur. He had been some few leagues behind |
|
Monseigneur, early in the afternoon. He had diminished the distance |
|
rapidly, but not so rapidly as to come up with Monseigneur on the road. |
|
He had heard of Monseigneur, at the posting-houses, as being before him. |
|
|
|
He was to be told (said Monseigneur) that supper awaited him then and |
|
there, and that he was prayed to come to it. In a little while he came. |
|
He had been known in England as Charles Darnay. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur received him in a courtly manner, but they did not shake |
|
hands. |
|
|
|
“You left Paris yesterday, sir?” he said to Monseigneur, as he took his |
|
seat at table. |
|
|
|
“Yesterday. And you?” |
|
|
|
“I come direct.” |
|
|
|
“From London?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“You have been a long time coming,” said the Marquis, with a smile. |
|
|
|
“On the contrary; I come direct.” |
|
|
|
“Pardon me! I mean, not a long time on the journey; a long time |
|
intending the journey.” |
|
|
|
“I have been detained by”--the nephew stopped a moment in his |
|
answer--“various business.” |
|
|
|
“Without doubt,” said the polished uncle. |
|
|
|
So long as a servant was present, no other words passed between them. |
|
When coffee had been served and they were alone together, the nephew, |
|
looking at the uncle and meeting the eyes of the face that was like a |
|
fine mask, opened a conversation. |
|
|
|
“I have come back, sir, as you anticipate, pursuing the object that |
|
took me away. It carried me into great and unexpected peril; but it is |
|
a sacred object, and if it had carried me to death I hope it would have |
|
sustained me.” |
|
|
|
“Not to death,” said the uncle; “it is not necessary to say, to death.” |
|
|
|
“I doubt, sir,” returned the nephew, “whether, if it had carried me to |
|
the utmost brink of death, you would have cared to stop me there.” |
|
|
|
The deepened marks in the nose, and the lengthening of the fine straight |
|
lines in the cruel face, looked ominous as to that; the uncle made a |
|
graceful gesture of protest, which was so clearly a slight form of good |
|
breeding that it was not reassuring. |
|
|
|
“Indeed, sir,” pursued the nephew, “for anything I know, you may have |
|
expressly worked to give a more suspicious appearance to the suspicious |
|
circumstances that surrounded me.” |
|
|
|
“No, no, no,” said the uncle, pleasantly. |
|
|
|
“But, however that may be,” resumed the nephew, glancing at him with |
|
deep distrust, “I know that your diplomacy would stop me by any means, |
|
and would know no scruple as to means.” |
|
|
|
“My friend, I told you so,” said the uncle, with a fine pulsation in the |
|
two marks. “Do me the favour to recall that I told you so, long ago.” |
|
|
|
“I recall it.” |
|
|
|
“Thank you,” said the Marquis--very sweetly indeed. |
|
|
|
His tone lingered in the air, almost like the tone of a musical |
|
instrument. |
|
|
|
“In effect, sir,” pursued the nephew, “I believe it to be at once your |
|
bad fortune, and my good fortune, that has kept me out of a prison in |
|
France here.” |
|
|
|
“I do not quite understand,” returned the uncle, sipping his coffee. |
|
“Dare I ask you to explain?” |
|
|
|
“I believe that if you were not in disgrace with the Court, and had not |
|
been overshadowed by that cloud for years past, a letter de cachet would |
|
have sent me to some fortress indefinitely.” |
|
|
|
“It is possible,” said the uncle, with great calmness. “For the honour |
|
of the family, I could even resolve to incommode you to that extent. |
|
Pray excuse me!” |
|
|
|
“I perceive that, happily for me, the Reception of the day before |
|
yesterday was, as usual, a cold one,” observed the nephew. |
|
|
|
“I would not say happily, my friend,” returned the uncle, with refined |
|
politeness; “I would not be sure of that. A good opportunity for |
|
consideration, surrounded by the advantages of solitude, might influence |
|
your destiny to far greater advantage than you influence it for |
|
yourself. But it is useless to discuss the question. I am, as you say, |
|
at a disadvantage. These little instruments of correction, these gentle |
|
aids to the power and honour of families, these slight favours that |
|
might so incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest |
|
and importunity. They are sought by so many, and they are granted |
|
(comparatively) to so few! It used not to be so, but France in all such |
|
things is changed for the worse. Our not remote ancestors held the right |
|
of life and death over the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such |
|
dogs have been taken out to be hanged; in the next room (my bedroom), |
|
one fellow, to our knowledge, was poniarded on the spot for professing |
|
some insolent delicacy respecting his daughter--_his_ daughter? We have |
|
lost many privileges; a new philosophy has become the mode; and the |
|
assertion of our station, in these days, might (I do not go so far as |
|
to say would, but might) cause us real inconvenience. All very bad, very |
|
bad!” |
|
|
|
The Marquis took a gentle little pinch of snuff, and shook his head; |
|
as elegantly despondent as he could becomingly be of a country still |
|
containing himself, that great means of regeneration. |
|
|
|
“We have so asserted our station, both in the old time and in the modern |
|
time also,” said the nephew, gloomily, “that I believe our name to be |
|
more detested than any name in France.” |
|
|
|
“Let us hope so,” said the uncle. “Detestation of the high is the |
|
involuntary homage of the low.” |
|
|
|
“There is not,” pursued the nephew, in his former tone, “a face I can |
|
look at, in all this country round about us, which looks at me with any |
|
deference on it but the dark deference of fear and slavery.” |
|
|
|
“A compliment,” said the Marquis, “to the grandeur of the family, |
|
merited by the manner in which the family has sustained its grandeur. |
|
Hah!” And he took another gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly |
|
crossed his legs. |
|
|
|
But, when his nephew, leaning an elbow on the table, covered his eyes |
|
thoughtfully and dejectedly with his hand, the fine mask looked at |
|
him sideways with a stronger concentration of keenness, closeness, |
|
and dislike, than was comportable with its wearer’s assumption of |
|
indifference. |
|
|
|
“Repression is the only lasting philosophy. The dark deference of fear |
|
and slavery, my friend,” observed the Marquis, “will keep the dogs |
|
obedient to the whip, as long as this roof,” looking up to it, “shuts |
|
out the sky.” |
|
|
|
That might not be so long as the Marquis supposed. If a picture of the |
|
chateau as it was to be a very few years hence, and of fifty like it as |
|
they too were to be a very few years hence, could have been shown to |
|
him that night, he might have been at a loss to claim his own from |
|
the ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As for the roof |
|
he vaunted, he might have found _that_ shutting out the sky in a new |
|
way--to wit, for ever, from the eyes of the bodies into which its lead |
|
was fired, out of the barrels of a hundred thousand muskets. |
|
|
|
“Meanwhile,” said the Marquis, “I will preserve the honour and repose |
|
of the family, if you will not. But you must be fatigued. Shall we |
|
terminate our conference for the night?” |
|
|
|
“A moment more.” |
|
|
|
“An hour, if you please.” |
|
|
|
“Sir,” said the nephew, “we have done wrong, and are reaping the fruits |
|
of wrong.” |
|
|
|
“_We_ have done wrong?” repeated the Marquis, with an inquiring smile, |
|
and delicately pointing, first to his nephew, then to himself. |
|
|
|
“Our family; our honourable family, whose honour is of so much account |
|
to both of us, in such different ways. Even in my father’s time, we did |
|
a world of wrong, injuring every human creature who came between us and |
|
our pleasure, whatever it was. Why need I speak of my father’s time, |
|
when it is equally yours? Can I separate my father’s twin-brother, joint |
|
inheritor, and next successor, from himself?” |
|
|
|
“Death has done that!” said the Marquis. |
|
|
|
“And has left me,” answered the nephew, “bound to a system that is |
|
frightful to me, responsible for it, but powerless in it; seeking to |
|
execute the last request of my dear mother’s lips, and obey the last |
|
look of my dear mother’s eyes, which implored me to have mercy and to |
|
redress; and tortured by seeking assistance and power in vain.” |
|
|
|
“Seeking them from me, my nephew,” said the Marquis, touching him on the |
|
breast with his forefinger--they were now standing by the hearth--“you |
|
will for ever seek them in vain, be assured.” |
|
|
|
Every fine straight line in the clear whiteness of his face, was |
|
cruelly, craftily, and closely compressed, while he stood looking |
|
quietly at his nephew, with his snuff-box in his hand. Once again he |
|
touched him on the breast, as though his finger were the fine point of |
|
a small sword, with which, in delicate finesse, he ran him through the |
|
body, and said, |
|
|
|
“My friend, I will die, perpetuating the system under which I have |
|
lived.” |
|
|
|
When he had said it, he took a culminating pinch of snuff, and put his |
|
box in his pocket. |
|
|
|
“Better to be a rational creature,” he added then, after ringing a small |
|
bell on the table, “and accept your natural destiny. But you are lost, |
|
Monsieur Charles, I see.” |
|
|
|
“This property and France are lost to me,” said the nephew, sadly; “I |
|
renounce them.” |
|
|
|
“Are they both yours to renounce? France may be, but is the property? It |
|
is scarcely worth mentioning; but, is it yet?” |
|
|
|
“I had no intention, in the words I used, to claim it yet. If it passed |
|
to me from you, to-morrow--” |
|
|
|
“Which I have the vanity to hope is not probable.” |
|
|
|
“--or twenty years hence--” |
|
|
|
“You do me too much honour,” said the Marquis; “still, I prefer that |
|
supposition.” |
|
|
|
“--I would abandon it, and live otherwise and elsewhere. It is little to |
|
relinquish. What is it but a wilderness of misery and ruin!” |
|
|
|
“Hah!” said the Marquis, glancing round the luxurious room. |
|
|
|
“To the eye it is fair enough, here; but seen in its integrity, |
|
under the sky, and by the daylight, it is a crumbling tower of waste, |
|
mismanagement, extortion, debt, mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness, |
|
and suffering.” |
|
|
|
“Hah!” said the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied manner. |
|
|
|
“If it ever becomes mine, it shall be put into some hands better |
|
qualified to free it slowly (if such a thing is possible) from the |
|
weight that drags it down, so that the miserable people who cannot leave |
|
it and who have been long wrung to the last point of endurance, may, in |
|
another generation, suffer less; but it is not for me. There is a curse |
|
on it, and on all this land.” |
|
|
|
“And you?” said the uncle. “Forgive my curiosity; do you, under your new |
|
philosophy, graciously intend to live?” |
|
|
|
“I must do, to live, what others of my countrymen, even with nobility at |
|
their backs, may have to do some day--work.” |
|
|
|
“In England, for example?” |
|
|
|
“Yes. The family honour, sir, is safe from me in this country. The |
|
family name can suffer from me in no other, for I bear it in no other.” |
|
|
|
The ringing of the bell had caused the adjoining bed-chamber to be |
|
lighted. It now shone brightly, through the door of communication. The |
|
Marquis looked that way, and listened for the retreating step of his |
|
valet. |
|
|
|
“England is very attractive to you, seeing how indifferently you have |
|
prospered there,” he observed then, turning his calm face to his nephew |
|
with a smile. |
|
|
|
“I have already said, that for my prospering there, I am sensible I may |
|
be indebted to you, sir. For the rest, it is my Refuge.” |
|
|
|
“They say, those boastful English, that it is the Refuge of many. You |
|
know a compatriot who has found a Refuge there? A Doctor?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“With a daughter?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“Yes,” said the Marquis. “You are fatigued. Good night!” |
|
|
|
As he bent his head in his most courtly manner, there was a secrecy |
|
in his smiling face, and he conveyed an air of mystery to those words, |
|
which struck the eyes and ears of his nephew forcibly. At the same |
|
time, the thin straight lines of the setting of the eyes, and the thin |
|
straight lips, and the markings in the nose, curved with a sarcasm that |
|
looked handsomely diabolic. |
|
|
|
“Yes,” repeated the Marquis. “A Doctor with a daughter. Yes. So |
|
commences the new philosophy! You are fatigued. Good night!” |
|
|
|
It would have been of as much avail to interrogate any stone face |
|
outside the chateau as to interrogate that face of his. The nephew |
|
looked at him, in vain, in passing on to the door. |
|
|
|
“Good night!” said the uncle. “I look to the pleasure of seeing you |
|
again in the morning. Good repose! Light Monsieur my nephew to his |
|
chamber there!--And burn Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will,” he |
|
added to himself, before he rang his little bell again, and summoned his |
|
valet to his own bedroom. |
|
|
|
The valet come and gone, Monsieur the Marquis walked to and fro in his |
|
loose chamber-robe, to prepare himself gently for sleep, that hot still |
|
night. Rustling about the room, his softly-slippered feet making no |
|
noise on the floor, he moved like a refined tiger:--looked like some |
|
enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked sort, in story, whose |
|
periodical change into tiger form was either just going off, or just |
|
coming on. |
|
|
|
He moved from end to end of his voluptuous bedroom, looking again at the |
|
scraps of the day’s journey that came unbidden into his mind; the slow |
|
toil up the hill at sunset, the setting sun, the descent, the mill, the |
|
prison on the crag, the little village in the hollow, the peasants at |
|
the fountain, and the mender of roads with his blue cap pointing out the |
|
chain under the carriage. That fountain suggested the Paris fountain, |
|
the little bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it, and the |
|
tall man with his arms up, crying, “Dead!” |
|
|
|
“I am cool now,” said Monsieur the Marquis, “and may go to bed.” |
|
|
|
So, leaving only one light burning on the large hearth, he let his thin |
|
gauze curtains fall around him, and heard the night break its silence |
|
with a long sigh as he composed himself to sleep. |
|
|
|
The stone faces on the outer walls stared blindly at the black night |
|
for three heavy hours; for three heavy hours, the horses in the stables |
|
rattled at their racks, the dogs barked, and the owl made a noise with |
|
very little resemblance in it to the noise conventionally assigned to |
|
the owl by men-poets. But it is the obstinate custom of such creatures |
|
hardly ever to say what is set down for them. |
|
|
|
For three heavy hours, the stone faces of the chateau, lion and human, |
|
stared blindly at the night. Dead darkness lay on all the landscape, |
|
dead darkness added its own hush to the hushing dust on all the roads. |
|
The burial-place had got to the pass that its little heaps of poor grass |
|
were undistinguishable from one another; the figure on the Cross might |
|
have come down, for anything that could be seen of it. In the village, |
|
taxers and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of banquets, as |
|
the starved usually do, and of ease and rest, as the driven slave and |
|
the yoked ox may, its lean inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and |
|
freed. |
|
|
|
The fountain in the village flowed unseen and unheard, and the fountain |
|
at the chateau dropped unseen and unheard--both melting away, like the |
|
minutes that were falling from the spring of Time--through three dark |
|
hours. Then, the grey water of both began to be ghostly in the light, |
|
and the eyes of the stone faces of the chateau were opened. |
|
|
|
Lighter and lighter, until at last the sun touched the tops of the still |
|
trees, and poured its radiance over the hill. In the glow, the water |
|
of the chateau fountain seemed to turn to blood, and the stone faces |
|
crimsoned. The carol of the birds was loud and high, and, on the |
|
weather-beaten sill of the great window of the bed-chamber of Monsieur |
|
the Marquis, one little bird sang its sweetest song with all its might. |
|
At this, the nearest stone face seemed to stare amazed, and, with open |
|
mouth and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken. |
|
|
|
Now, the sun was full up, and movement began in the village. Casement |
|
windows opened, crazy doors were unbarred, and people came forth |
|
shivering--chilled, as yet, by the new sweet air. Then began the rarely |
|
lightened toil of the day among the village population. Some, to the |
|
fountain; some, to the fields; men and women here, to dig and delve; men |
|
and women there, to see to the poor live stock, and lead the bony cows |
|
out, to such pasture as could be found by the roadside. In the church |
|
and at the Cross, a kneeling figure or two; attendant on the latter |
|
prayers, the led cow, trying for a breakfast among the weeds at its |
|
foot. |
|
|
|
The chateau awoke later, as became its quality, but awoke gradually and |
|
surely. First, the lonely boar-spears and knives of the chase had been |
|
reddened as of old; then, had gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine; |
|
now, doors and windows were thrown open, horses in their stables looked |
|
round over their shoulders at the light and freshness pouring in at |
|
doorways, leaves sparkled and rustled at iron-grated windows, dogs |
|
pulled hard at their chains, and reared impatient to be loosed. |
|
|
|
All these trivial incidents belonged to the routine of life, and the |
|
return of morning. Surely, not so the ringing of the great bell of the |
|
chateau, nor the running up and down the stairs; nor the hurried |
|
figures on the terrace; nor the booting and tramping here and there and |
|
everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and riding away? |
|
|
|
What winds conveyed this hurry to the grizzled mender of roads, already |
|
at work on the hill-top beyond the village, with his day’s dinner (not |
|
much to carry) lying in a bundle that it was worth no crow’s while to |
|
peck at, on a heap of stones? Had the birds, carrying some grains of it |
|
to a distance, dropped one over him as they sow chance seeds? Whether or |
|
no, the mender of roads ran, on the sultry morning, as if for his life, |
|
down the hill, knee-high in dust, and never stopped till he got to the |
|
fountain. |
|
|
|
All the people of the village were at the fountain, standing about |
|
in their depressed manner, and whispering low, but showing no other |
|
emotions than grim curiosity and surprise. The led cows, hastily brought |
|
in and tethered to anything that would hold them, were looking stupidly |
|
on, or lying down chewing the cud of nothing particularly repaying their |
|
trouble, which they had picked up in their interrupted saunter. Some of |
|
the people of the chateau, and some of those of the posting-house, and |
|
all the taxing authorities, were armed more or less, and were crowded |
|
on the other side of the little street in a purposeless way, that was |
|
highly fraught with nothing. Already, the mender of roads had penetrated |
|
into the midst of a group of fifty particular friends, and was smiting |
|
himself in the breast with his blue cap. What did all this portend, |
|
and what portended the swift hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind |
|
a servant on horseback, and the conveying away of the said Gabelle |
|
(double-laden though the horse was), at a gallop, like a new version of |
|
the German ballad of Leonora? |
|
|
|
It portended that there was one stone face too many, up at the chateau. |
|
|
|
The Gorgon had surveyed the building again in the night, and had added |
|
the one stone face wanting; the stone face for which it had waited |
|
through about two hundred years. |
|
|
|
It lay back on the pillow of Monsieur the Marquis. It was like a fine |
|
mask, suddenly startled, made angry, and petrified. Driven home into the |
|
heart of the stone figure attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt |
|
was a frill of paper, on which was scrawled: |
|
|
|
“Drive him fast to his tomb. This, from Jacques.” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X. |
|
Two Promises |
|
|
|
|
|
More months, to the number of twelve, had come and gone, and Mr. Charles |
|
Darnay was established in England as a higher teacher of the French |
|
language who was conversant with French literature. In this age, he |
|
would have been a Professor; in that age, he was a Tutor. He read with |
|
young men who could find any leisure and interest for the study of a |
|
living tongue spoken all over the world, and he cultivated a taste for |
|
its stores of knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in |
|
sound English, and render them into sound English. Such masters were not |
|
at that time easily found; Princes that had been, and Kings that were |
|
to be, were not yet of the Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had |
|
dropped out of Tellson’s ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a |
|
tutor, whose attainments made the student’s way unusually pleasant and |
|
profitable, and as an elegant translator who brought something to his |
|
work besides mere dictionary knowledge, young Mr. Darnay soon became |
|
known and encouraged. He was well acquainted, more-over, with the |
|
circumstances of his country, and those were of ever-growing interest. |
|
So, with great perseverance and untiring industry, he prospered. |
|
|
|
In London, he had expected neither to walk on pavements of gold, nor |
|
to lie on beds of roses; if he had had any such exalted expectation, he |
|
would not have prospered. He had expected labour, and he found it, and |
|
did it and made the best of it. In this, his prosperity consisted. |
|
|
|
A certain portion of his time was passed at Cambridge, where he |
|
read with undergraduates as a sort of tolerated smuggler who drove a |
|
contraband trade in European languages, instead of conveying Greek |
|
and Latin through the Custom-house. The rest of his time he passed in |
|
London. |
|
|
|
Now, from the days when it was always summer in Eden, to these days |
|
when it is mostly winter in fallen latitudes, the world of a man has |
|
invariably gone one way--Charles Darnay’s way--the way of the love of a |
|
woman. |
|
|
|
He had loved Lucie Manette from the hour of his danger. He had never |
|
heard a sound so sweet and dear as the sound of her compassionate voice; |
|
he had never seen a face so tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was |
|
confronted with his own on the edge of the grave that had been dug for |
|
him. But, he had not yet spoken to her on the subject; the assassination |
|
at the deserted chateau far away beyond the heaving water and the long, |
|
long, dusty roads--the solid stone chateau which had itself become the |
|
mere mist of a dream--had been done a year, and he had never yet, by so |
|
much as a single spoken word, disclosed to her the state of his heart. |
|
|
|
That he had his reasons for this, he knew full well. It was again a |
|
summer day when, lately arrived in London from his college occupation, |
|
he turned into the quiet corner in Soho, bent on seeking an opportunity |
|
of opening his mind to Doctor Manette. It was the close of the summer |
|
day, and he knew Lucie to be out with Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
He found the Doctor reading in his arm-chair at a window. The energy |
|
which had at once supported him under his old sufferings and aggravated |
|
their sharpness, had been gradually restored to him. He was now a |
|
very energetic man indeed, with great firmness of purpose, strength |
|
of resolution, and vigour of action. In his recovered energy he was |
|
sometimes a little fitful and sudden, as he had at first been in the |
|
exercise of his other recovered faculties; but, this had never been |
|
frequently observable, and had grown more and more rare. |
|
|
|
He studied much, slept little, sustained a great deal of fatigue with |
|
ease, and was equably cheerful. To him, now entered Charles Darnay, at |
|
sight of whom he laid aside his book and held out his hand. |
|
|
|
“Charles Darnay! I rejoice to see you. We have been counting on your |
|
return these three or four days past. Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were |
|
both here yesterday, and both made you out to be more than due.” |
|
|
|
“I am obliged to them for their interest in the matter,” he answered, |
|
a little coldly as to them, though very warmly as to the Doctor. “Miss |
|
Manette--” |
|
|
|
“Is well,” said the Doctor, as he stopped short, “and your return will |
|
delight us all. She has gone out on some household matters, but will |
|
soon be home.” |
|
|
|
“Doctor Manette, I knew she was from home. I took the opportunity of her |
|
being from home, to beg to speak to you.” |
|
|
|
There was a blank silence. |
|
|
|
“Yes?” said the Doctor, with evident constraint. “Bring your chair here, |
|
and speak on.” |
|
|
|
He complied as to the chair, but appeared to find the speaking on less |
|
easy. |
|
|
|
“I have had the happiness, Doctor Manette, of being so intimate here,” |
|
so he at length began, “for some year and a half, that I hope the topic |
|
on which I am about to touch may not--” |
|
|
|
He was stayed by the Doctor’s putting out his hand to stop him. When he |
|
had kept it so a little while, he said, drawing it back: |
|
|
|
“Is Lucie the topic?” |
|
|
|
“She is.” |
|
|
|
“It is hard for me to speak of her at any time. It is very hard for me |
|
to hear her spoken of in that tone of yours, Charles Darnay.” |
|
|
|
“It is a tone of fervent admiration, true homage, and deep love, Doctor |
|
Manette!” he said deferentially. |
|
|
|
There was another blank silence before her father rejoined: |
|
|
|
“I believe it. I do you justice; I believe it.” |
|
|
|
His constraint was so manifest, and it was so manifest, too, that it |
|
originated in an unwillingness to approach the subject, that Charles |
|
Darnay hesitated. |
|
|
|
“Shall I go on, sir?” |
|
|
|
Another blank. |
|
|
|
“Yes, go on.” |
|
|
|
“You anticipate what I would say, though you cannot know how earnestly |
|
I say it, how earnestly I feel it, without knowing my secret heart, and |
|
the hopes and fears and anxieties with which it has long been |
|
laden. Dear Doctor Manette, I love your daughter fondly, dearly, |
|
disinterestedly, devotedly. If ever there were love in the world, I love |
|
her. You have loved yourself; let your old love speak for me!” |
|
|
|
The Doctor sat with his face turned away, and his eyes bent on the |
|
ground. At the last words, he stretched out his hand again, hurriedly, |
|
and cried: |
|
|
|
“Not that, sir! Let that be! I adjure you, do not recall that!” |
|
|
|
His cry was so like a cry of actual pain, that it rang in Charles |
|
Darnay’s ears long after he had ceased. He motioned with the hand he had |
|
extended, and it seemed to be an appeal to Darnay to pause. The latter |
|
so received it, and remained silent. |
|
|
|
“I ask your pardon,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, after some |
|
moments. “I do not doubt your loving Lucie; you may be satisfied of it.” |
|
|
|
He turned towards him in his chair, but did not look at him, or |
|
raise his eyes. His chin dropped upon his hand, and his white hair |
|
overshadowed his face: |
|
|
|
“Have you spoken to Lucie?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
“Nor written?” |
|
|
|
“Never.” |
|
|
|
“It would be ungenerous to affect not to know that your self-denial is |
|
to be referred to your consideration for her father. Her father thanks |
|
you.” |
|
|
|
He offered his hand; but his eyes did not go with it. |
|
|
|
“I know,” said Darnay, respectfully, “how can I fail to know, Doctor |
|
Manette, I who have seen you together from day to day, that between |
|
you and Miss Manette there is an affection so unusual, so touching, so |
|
belonging to the circumstances in which it has been nurtured, that it |
|
can have few parallels, even in the tenderness between a father and |
|
child. I know, Doctor Manette--how can I fail to know--that, mingled |
|
with the affection and duty of a daughter who has become a woman, there |
|
is, in her heart, towards you, all the love and reliance of infancy |
|
itself. I know that, as in her childhood she had no parent, so she is |
|
now devoted to you with all the constancy and fervour of her present |
|
years and character, united to the trustfulness and attachment of the |
|
early days in which you were lost to her. I know perfectly well that if |
|
you had been restored to her from the world beyond this life, you could |
|
hardly be invested, in her sight, with a more sacred character than that |
|
in which you are always with her. I know that when she is clinging to |
|
you, the hands of baby, girl, and woman, all in one, are round your |
|
neck. I know that in loving you she sees and loves her mother at her |
|
own age, sees and loves you at my age, loves her mother broken-hearted, |
|
loves you through your dreadful trial and in your blessed restoration. I |
|
have known this, night and day, since I have known you in your home.” |
|
|
|
Her father sat silent, with his face bent down. His breathing was a |
|
little quickened; but he repressed all other signs of agitation. |
|
|
|
“Dear Doctor Manette, always knowing this, always seeing her and you |
|
with this hallowed light about you, I have forborne, and forborne, as |
|
long as it was in the nature of man to do it. I have felt, and do even |
|
now feel, that to bring my love--even mine--between you, is to touch |
|
your history with something not quite so good as itself. But I love her. |
|
Heaven is my witness that I love her!” |
|
|
|
“I believe it,” answered her father, mournfully. “I have thought so |
|
before now. I believe it.” |
|
|
|
“But, do not believe,” said Darnay, upon whose ear the mournful voice |
|
struck with a reproachful sound, “that if my fortune were so cast as |
|
that, being one day so happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time |
|
put any separation between her and you, I could or would breathe a |
|
word of what I now say. Besides that I should know it to be hopeless, I |
|
should know it to be a baseness. If I had any such possibility, even at |
|
a remote distance of years, harboured in my thoughts, and hidden in my |
|
heart--if it ever had been there--if it ever could be there--I could not |
|
now touch this honoured hand.” |
|
|
|
He laid his own upon it as he spoke. |
|
|
|
“No, dear Doctor Manette. Like you, a voluntary exile from France; like |
|
you, driven from it by its distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like |
|
you, striving to live away from it by my own exertions, and trusting |
|
in a happier future; I look only to sharing your fortunes, sharing your |
|
life and home, and being faithful to you to the death. Not to divide |
|
with Lucie her privilege as your child, companion, and friend; but to |
|
come in aid of it, and bind her closer to you, if such a thing can be.” |
|
|
|
His touch still lingered on her father’s hand. Answering the touch for a |
|
moment, but not coldly, her father rested his hands upon the arms of |
|
his chair, and looked up for the first time since the beginning of the |
|
conference. A struggle was evidently in his face; a struggle with that |
|
occasional look which had a tendency in it to dark doubt and dread. |
|
|
|
“You speak so feelingly and so manfully, Charles Darnay, that I thank |
|
you with all my heart, and will open all my heart--or nearly so. Have |
|
you any reason to believe that Lucie loves you?” |
|
|
|
“None. As yet, none.” |
|
|
|
“Is it the immediate object of this confidence, that you may at once |
|
ascertain that, with my knowledge?” |
|
|
|
“Not even so. I might not have the hopefulness to do it for weeks; I |
|
might (mistaken or not mistaken) have that hopefulness to-morrow.” |
|
|
|
“Do you seek any guidance from me?” |
|
|
|
“I ask none, sir. But I have thought it possible that you might have it |
|
in your power, if you should deem it right, to give me some.” |
|
|
|
“Do you seek any promise from me?” |
|
|
|
“I do seek that.” |
|
|
|
“What is it?” |
|
|
|
“I well understand that, without you, I could have no hope. I well |
|
understand that, even if Miss Manette held me at this moment in her |
|
innocent heart--do not think I have the presumption to assume so much--I |
|
could retain no place in it against her love for her father.” |
|
|
|
“If that be so, do you see what, on the other hand, is involved in it?” |
|
|
|
“I understand equally well, that a word from her father in any suitor’s |
|
favour, would outweigh herself and all the world. For which reason, |
|
Doctor Manette,” said Darnay, modestly but firmly, “I would not ask that |
|
word, to save my life.” |
|
|
|
“I am sure of it. Charles Darnay, mysteries arise out of close love, as |
|
well as out of wide division; in the former case, they are subtle and |
|
delicate, and difficult to penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one |
|
respect, such a mystery to me; I can make no guess at the state of her |
|
heart.” |
|
|
|
“May I ask, sir, if you think she is--” As he hesitated, her father |
|
supplied the rest. |
|
|
|
“Is sought by any other suitor?” |
|
|
|
“It is what I meant to say.” |
|
|
|
Her father considered a little before he answered: |
|
|
|
“You have seen Mr. Carton here, yourself. Mr. Stryver is here too, |
|
occasionally. If it be at all, it can only be by one of these.” |
|
|
|
“Or both,” said Darnay. |
|
|
|
“I had not thought of both; I should not think either, likely. You want |
|
a promise from me. Tell me what it is.” |
|
|
|
“It is, that if Miss Manette should bring to you at any time, on her own |
|
part, such a confidence as I have ventured to lay before you, you will |
|
bear testimony to what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you |
|
may be able to think so well of me, as to urge no influence against |
|
me. I say nothing more of my stake in this; this is what I ask. The |
|
condition on which I ask it, and which you have an undoubted right to |
|
require, I will observe immediately.” |
|
|
|
“I give the promise,” said the Doctor, “without any condition. I believe |
|
your object to be, purely and truthfully, as you have stated it. I |
|
believe your intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties |
|
between me and my other and far dearer self. If she should ever tell me |
|
that you are essential to her perfect happiness, I will give her to you. |
|
If there were--Charles Darnay, if there were--” |
|
|
|
The young man had taken his hand gratefully; their hands were joined as |
|
the Doctor spoke: |
|
|
|
“--any fancies, any reasons, any apprehensions, anything whatsoever, |
|
new or old, against the man she really loved--the direct responsibility |
|
thereof not lying on his head--they should all be obliterated for her |
|
sake. She is everything to me; more to me than suffering, more to me |
|
than wrong, more to me--Well! This is idle talk.” |
|
|
|
So strange was the way in which he faded into silence, and so strange |
|
his fixed look when he had ceased to speak, that Darnay felt his own |
|
hand turn cold in the hand that slowly released and dropped it. |
|
|
|
“You said something to me,” said Doctor Manette, breaking into a smile. |
|
“What was it you said to me?” |
|
|
|
He was at a loss how to answer, until he remembered having spoken of a |
|
condition. Relieved as his mind reverted to that, he answered: |
|
|
|
“Your confidence in me ought to be returned with full confidence on my |
|
part. My present name, though but slightly changed from my mother’s, is |
|
not, as you will remember, my own. I wish to tell you what that is, and |
|
why I am in England.” |
|
|
|
“Stop!” said the Doctor of Beauvais. |
|
|
|
“I wish it, that I may the better deserve your confidence, and have no |
|
secret from you.” |
|
|
|
“Stop!” |
|
|
|
For an instant, the Doctor even had his two hands at his ears; for |
|
another instant, even had his two hands laid on Darnay’s lips. |
|
|
|
“Tell me when I ask you, not now. If your suit should prosper, if Lucie |
|
should love you, you shall tell me on your marriage morning. Do you |
|
promise?” |
|
|
|
“Willingly. |
|
|
|
“Give me your hand. She will be home directly, and it is better she |
|
should not see us together to-night. Go! God bless you!” |
|
|
|
It was dark when Charles Darnay left him, and it was an hour later and |
|
darker when Lucie came home; she hurried into the room alone--for |
|
Miss Pross had gone straight up-stairs--and was surprised to find his |
|
reading-chair empty. |
|
|
|
“My father!” she called to him. “Father dear!” |
|
|
|
Nothing was said in answer, but she heard a low hammering sound in his |
|
bedroom. Passing lightly across the intermediate room, she looked in at |
|
his door and came running back frightened, crying to herself, with her |
|
blood all chilled, “What shall I do! What shall I do!” |
|
|
|
Her uncertainty lasted but a moment; she hurried back, and tapped at |
|
his door, and softly called to him. The noise ceased at the sound of |
|
her voice, and he presently came out to her, and they walked up and down |
|
together for a long time. |
|
|
|
She came down from her bed, to look at him in his sleep that night. He |
|
slept heavily, and his tray of shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished |
|
work, were all as usual. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI. |
|
A Companion Picture |
|
|
|
|
|
“Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, on that self-same night, or morning, to his |
|
jackal; “mix another bowl of punch; I have something to say to you.” |
|
|
|
Sydney had been working double tides that night, and the night before, |
|
and the night before that, and a good many nights in succession, making |
|
a grand clearance among Mr. Stryver’s papers before the setting in |
|
of the long vacation. The clearance was effected at last; the Stryver |
|
arrears were handsomely fetched up; everything was got rid of until |
|
November should come with its fogs atmospheric, and fogs legal, and |
|
bring grist to the mill again. |
|
|
|
Sydney was none the livelier and none the soberer for so much |
|
application. It had taken a deal of extra wet-towelling to pull him |
|
through the night; a correspondingly extra quantity of wine had preceded |
|
the towelling; and he was in a very damaged condition, as he now pulled |
|
his turban off and threw it into the basin in which he had steeped it at |
|
intervals for the last six hours. |
|
|
|
“Are you mixing that other bowl of punch?” said Stryver the portly, with |
|
his hands in his waistband, glancing round from the sofa where he lay on |
|
his back. |
|
|
|
“I am.” |
|
|
|
“Now, look here! I am going to tell you something that will rather |
|
surprise you, and that perhaps will make you think me not quite as |
|
shrewd as you usually do think me. I intend to marry.” |
|
|
|
“_Do_ you?” |
|
|
|
“Yes. And not for money. What do you say now?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t feel disposed to say much. Who is she?” |
|
|
|
“Guess.” |
|
|
|
“Do I know her?” |
|
|
|
“Guess.” |
|
|
|
“I am not going to guess, at five o’clock in the morning, with my brains |
|
frying and sputtering in my head. If you want me to guess, you must ask |
|
me to dinner.” |
|
|
|
“Well then, I’ll tell you,” said Stryver, coming slowly into a sitting |
|
posture. “Sydney, I rather despair of making myself intelligible to you, |
|
because you are such an insensible dog.” |
|
|
|
“And you,” returned Sydney, busy concocting the punch, “are such a |
|
sensitive and poetical spirit--” |
|
|
|
“Come!” rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully, “though I don’t prefer |
|
any claim to being the soul of Romance (for I hope I know better), still |
|
I am a tenderer sort of fellow than _you_.” |
|
|
|
“You are a luckier, if you mean that.” |
|
|
|
“I don’t mean that. I mean I am a man of more--more--” |
|
|
|
“Say gallantry, while you are about it,” suggested Carton. |
|
|
|
“Well! I’ll say gallantry. My meaning is that I am a man,” said Stryver, |
|
inflating himself at his friend as he made the punch, “who cares more to |
|
be agreeable, who takes more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how |
|
to be agreeable, in a woman’s society, than you do.” |
|
|
|
“Go on,” said Sydney Carton. |
|
|
|
“No; but before I go on,” said Stryver, shaking his head in his bullying |
|
way, “I’ll have this out with you. You’ve been at Doctor Manette’s house |
|
as much as I have, or more than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your |
|
moroseness there! Your manners have been of that silent and sullen and |
|
hangdog kind, that, upon my life and soul, I have been ashamed of you, |
|
Sydney!” |
|
|
|
“It should be very beneficial to a man in your practice at the bar, to |
|
be ashamed of anything,” returned Sydney; “you ought to be much obliged |
|
to me.” |
|
|
|
“You shall not get off in that way,” rejoined Stryver, shouldering the |
|
rejoinder at him; “no, Sydney, it’s my duty to tell you--and I tell you |
|
to your face to do you good--that you are a devilish ill-conditioned |
|
fellow in that sort of society. You are a disagreeable fellow.” |
|
|
|
Sydney drank a bumper of the punch he had made, and laughed. |
|
|
|
“Look at me!” said Stryver, squaring himself; “I have less need to make |
|
myself agreeable than you have, being more independent in circumstances. |
|
Why do I do it?” |
|
|
|
“I never saw you do it yet,” muttered Carton. |
|
|
|
“I do it because it’s politic; I do it on principle. And look at me! I |
|
get on.” |
|
|
|
“You don’t get on with your account of your matrimonial intentions,” |
|
answered Carton, with a careless air; “I wish you would keep to that. As |
|
to me--will you never understand that I am incorrigible?” |
|
|
|
He asked the question with some appearance of scorn. |
|
|
|
“You have no business to be incorrigible,” was his friend’s answer, |
|
delivered in no very soothing tone. |
|
|
|
“I have no business to be, at all, that I know of,” said Sydney Carton. |
|
“Who is the lady?” |
|
|
|
“Now, don’t let my announcement of the name make you uncomfortable, |
|
Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, preparing him with ostentatious friendliness |
|
for the disclosure he was about to make, “because I know you don’t mean |
|
half you say; and if you meant it all, it would be of no importance. I |
|
make this little preface, because you once mentioned the young lady to |
|
me in slighting terms.” |
|
|
|
“I did?” |
|
|
|
“Certainly; and in these chambers.” |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton looked at his punch and looked at his complacent friend; |
|
drank his punch and looked at his complacent friend. |
|
|
|
“You made mention of the young lady as a golden-haired doll. The young |
|
lady is Miss Manette. If you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or |
|
delicacy of feeling in that kind of way, Sydney, I might have been a |
|
little resentful of your employing such a designation; but you are not. |
|
You want that sense altogether; therefore I am no more annoyed when I |
|
think of the expression, than I should be annoyed by a man’s opinion of |
|
a picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of a piece of music |
|
of mine, who had no ear for music.” |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton drank the punch at a great rate; drank it by bumpers, |
|
looking at his friend. |
|
|
|
“Now you know all about it, Syd,” said Mr. Stryver. “I don’t care about |
|
fortune: she is a charming creature, and I have made up my mind to |
|
please myself: on the whole, I think I can afford to please myself. She |
|
will have in me a man already pretty well off, and a rapidly rising man, |
|
and a man of some distinction: it is a piece of good fortune for her, |
|
but she is worthy of good fortune. Are you astonished?” |
|
|
|
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I be |
|
astonished?” |
|
|
|
“You approve?” |
|
|
|
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I not approve?” |
|
|
|
“Well!” said his friend Stryver, “you take it more easily than I fancied |
|
you would, and are less mercenary on my behalf than I thought you would |
|
be; though, to be sure, you know well enough by this time that your |
|
ancient chum is a man of a pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I have had |
|
enough of this style of life, with no other as a change from it; I |
|
feel that it is a pleasant thing for a man to have a home when he feels |
|
inclined to go to it (when he doesn’t, he can stay away), and I feel |
|
that Miss Manette will tell well in any station, and will always do me |
|
credit. So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney, old boy, I want to |
|
say a word to _you_ about _your_ prospects. You are in a bad way, you |
|
know; you really are in a bad way. You don’t know the value of money, |
|
you live hard, you’ll knock up one of these days, and be ill and poor; |
|
you really ought to think about a nurse.” |
|
|
|
The prosperous patronage with which he said it, made him look twice as |
|
big as he was, and four times as offensive. |
|
|
|
“Now, let me recommend you,” pursued Stryver, “to look it in the face. |
|
I have looked it in the face, in my different way; look it in the face, |
|
you, in your different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of |
|
you. Never mind your having no enjoyment of women’s society, nor |
|
understanding of it, nor tact for it. Find out somebody. Find out some |
|
respectable woman with a little property--somebody in the landlady way, |
|
or lodging-letting way--and marry her, against a rainy day. That’s the |
|
kind of thing for _you_. Now think of it, Sydney.” |
|
|
|
“I’ll think of it,” said Sydney. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII. |
|
The Fellow of Delicacy |
|
|
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver having made up his mind to that magnanimous bestowal of good |
|
fortune on the Doctor’s daughter, resolved to make her happiness known |
|
to her before he left town for the Long Vacation. After some mental |
|
debating of the point, he came to the conclusion that it would be as |
|
well to get all the preliminaries done with, and they could then arrange |
|
at their leisure whether he should give her his hand a week or two |
|
before Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation between it |
|
and Hilary. |
|
|
|
As to the strength of his case, he had not a doubt about it, but clearly |
|
saw his way to the verdict. Argued with the jury on substantial worldly |
|
grounds--the only grounds ever worth taking into account--it was a |
|
plain case, and had not a weak spot in it. He called himself for the |
|
plaintiff, there was no getting over his evidence, the counsel for |
|
the defendant threw up his brief, and the jury did not even turn to |
|
consider. After trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that no plainer |
|
case could be. |
|
|
|
Accordingly, Mr. Stryver inaugurated the Long Vacation with a formal |
|
proposal to take Miss Manette to Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to |
|
Ranelagh; that unaccountably failing too, it behoved him to present |
|
himself in Soho, and there declare his noble mind. |
|
|
|
Towards Soho, therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his way from the Temple, |
|
while the bloom of the Long Vacation’s infancy was still upon it. |
|
Anybody who had seen him projecting himself into Soho while he was yet |
|
on Saint Dunstan’s side of Temple Bar, bursting in his full-blown way |
|
along the pavement, to the jostlement of all weaker people, might have |
|
seen how safe and strong he was. |
|
|
|
His way taking him past Tellson’s, and he both banking at Tellson’s and |
|
knowing Mr. Lorry as the intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr. |
|
Stryver’s mind to enter the bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the brightness |
|
of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed open the door with the weak rattle |
|
in its throat, stumbled down the two steps, got past the two ancient |
|
cashiers, and shouldered himself into the musty back closet where Mr. |
|
Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with perpendicular iron |
|
bars to his window as if that were ruled for figures too, and everything |
|
under the clouds were a sum. |
|
|
|
“Halloa!” said Mr. Stryver. “How do you do? I hope you are well!” |
|
|
|
It was Stryver’s grand peculiarity that he always seemed too big for any |
|
place, or space. He was so much too big for Tellson’s, that old clerks |
|
in distant corners looked up with looks of remonstrance, as though he |
|
squeezed them against the wall. The House itself, magnificently reading |
|
the paper quite in the far-off perspective, lowered displeased, as if |
|
the Stryver head had been butted into its responsible waistcoat. |
|
|
|
The discreet Mr. Lorry said, in a sample tone of the voice he would |
|
recommend under the circumstances, “How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do |
|
you do, sir?” and shook hands. There was a peculiarity in his manner |
|
of shaking hands, always to be seen in any clerk at Tellson’s who shook |
|
hands with a customer when the House pervaded the air. He shook in a |
|
self-abnegating way, as one who shook for Tellson and Co. |
|
|
|
“Can I do anything for you, Mr. Stryver?” asked Mr. Lorry, in his |
|
business character. |
|
|
|
“Why, no, thank you; this is a private visit to yourself, Mr. Lorry; I |
|
have come for a private word.” |
|
|
|
“Oh indeed!” said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear, while his eye strayed |
|
to the House afar off. |
|
|
|
“I am going,” said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms confidentially on the |
|
desk: whereupon, although it was a large double one, there appeared to |
|
be not half desk enough for him: “I am going to make an offer of myself |
|
in marriage to your agreeable little friend, Miss Manette, Mr. Lorry.” |
|
|
|
“Oh dear me!” cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin, and looking at his |
|
visitor dubiously. |
|
|
|
“Oh dear me, sir?” repeated Stryver, drawing back. “Oh dear you, sir? |
|
What may your meaning be, Mr. Lorry?” |
|
|
|
“My meaning,” answered the man of business, “is, of course, friendly and |
|
appreciative, and that it does you the greatest credit, and--in short, |
|
my meaning is everything you could desire. But--really, you know, Mr. |
|
Stryver--” Mr. Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in the oddest |
|
manner, as if he were compelled against his will to add, internally, |
|
“you know there really is so much too much of you!” |
|
|
|
“Well!” said Stryver, slapping the desk with his contentious hand, |
|
opening his eyes wider, and taking a long breath, “if I understand you, |
|
Mr. Lorry, I’ll be hanged!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry adjusted his little wig at both ears as a means towards that |
|
end, and bit the feather of a pen. |
|
|
|
“D--n it all, sir!” said Stryver, staring at him, “am I not eligible?” |
|
|
|
“Oh dear yes! Yes. Oh yes, you’re eligible!” said Mr. Lorry. “If you say |
|
eligible, you are eligible.” |
|
|
|
“Am I not prosperous?” asked Stryver. |
|
|
|
“Oh! if you come to prosperous, you are prosperous,” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“And advancing?” |
|
|
|
“If you come to advancing you know,” said Mr. Lorry, delighted to be |
|
able to make another admission, “nobody can doubt that.” |
|
|
|
“Then what on earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?” demanded Stryver, |
|
perceptibly crestfallen. |
|
|
|
“Well! I--Were you going there now?” asked Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“Straight!” said Stryver, with a plump of his fist on the desk. |
|
|
|
“Then I think I wouldn’t, if I was you.” |
|
|
|
“Why?” said Stryver. “Now, I’ll put you in a corner,” forensically |
|
shaking a forefinger at him. “You are a man of business and bound to |
|
have a reason. State your reason. Why wouldn’t you go?” |
|
|
|
“Because,” said Mr. Lorry, “I wouldn’t go on such an object without |
|
having some cause to believe that I should succeed.” |
|
|
|
“D--n _me_!” cried Stryver, “but this beats everything.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and glanced at the angry |
|
Stryver. |
|
|
|
“Here’s a man of business--a man of years--a man of experience--_in_ |
|
a Bank,” said Stryver; “and having summed up three leading reasons for |
|
complete success, he says there’s no reason at all! Says it with his |
|
head on!” Mr. Stryver remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have |
|
been infinitely less remarkable if he had said it with his head off. |
|
|
|
“When I speak of success, I speak of success with the young lady; and |
|
when I speak of causes and reasons to make success probable, I speak of |
|
causes and reasons that will tell as such with the young lady. The young |
|
lady, my good sir,” said Mr. Lorry, mildly tapping the Stryver arm, “the |
|
young lady. The young lady goes before all.” |
|
|
|
“Then you mean to tell me, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver, squaring his |
|
elbows, “that it is your deliberate opinion that the young lady at |
|
present in question is a mincing Fool?” |
|
|
|
“Not exactly so. I mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver,” said Mr. Lorry, |
|
reddening, “that I will hear no disrespectful word of that young lady |
|
from any lips; and that if I knew any man--which I hope I do not--whose |
|
taste was so coarse, and whose temper was so overbearing, that he could |
|
not restrain himself from speaking disrespectfully of that young lady at |
|
this desk, not even Tellson’s should prevent my giving him a piece of my |
|
mind.” |
|
|
|
The necessity of being angry in a suppressed tone had put Mr. Stryver’s |
|
blood-vessels into a dangerous state when it was his turn to be angry; |
|
Mr. Lorry’s veins, methodical as their courses could usually be, were in |
|
no better state now it was his turn. |
|
|
|
“That is what I mean to tell you, sir,” said Mr. Lorry. “Pray let there |
|
be no mistake about it.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver sucked the end of a ruler for a little while, and then stood |
|
hitting a tune out of his teeth with it, which probably gave him the |
|
toothache. He broke the awkward silence by saying: |
|
|
|
“This is something new to me, Mr. Lorry. You deliberately advise me not |
|
to go up to Soho and offer myself--_my_self, Stryver of the King’s Bench |
|
bar?” |
|
|
|
“Do you ask me for my advice, Mr. Stryver?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, I do.” |
|
|
|
“Very good. Then I give it, and you have repeated it correctly.” |
|
|
|
“And all I can say of it is,” laughed Stryver with a vexed laugh, “that |
|
this--ha, ha!--beats everything past, present, and to come.” |
|
|
|
“Now understand me,” pursued Mr. Lorry. “As a man of business, I am |
|
not justified in saying anything about this matter, for, as a man of |
|
business, I know nothing of it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried |
|
Miss Manette in his arms, who is the trusted friend of Miss Manette and |
|
of her father too, and who has a great affection for them both, I have |
|
spoken. The confidence is not of my seeking, recollect. Now, you think I |
|
may not be right?” |
|
|
|
“Not I!” said Stryver, whistling. “I can’t undertake to find third |
|
parties in common sense; I can only find it for myself. I suppose sense |
|
in certain quarters; you suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense. It’s |
|
new to me, but you are right, I dare say.” |
|
|
|
“What I suppose, Mr. Stryver, I claim to characterise for myself--And |
|
understand me, sir,” said Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, “I |
|
will not--not even at Tellson’s--have it characterised for me by any |
|
gentleman breathing.” |
|
|
|
“There! I beg your pardon!” said Stryver. |
|
|
|
“Granted. Thank you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about to say:--it might be |
|
painful to you to find yourself mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor |
|
Manette to have the task of being explicit with you, it might be very |
|
painful to Miss Manette to have the task of being explicit with you. You |
|
know the terms upon which I have the honour and happiness to stand with |
|
the family. If you please, committing you in no way, representing you |
|
in no way, I will undertake to correct my advice by the exercise of a |
|
little new observation and judgment expressly brought to bear upon |
|
it. If you should then be dissatisfied with it, you can but test its |
|
soundness for yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied |
|
with it, and it should be what it now is, it may spare all sides what is |
|
best spared. What do you say?” |
|
|
|
“How long would you keep me in town?” |
|
|
|
“Oh! It is only a question of a few hours. I could go to Soho in the |
|
evening, and come to your chambers afterwards.” |
|
|
|
“Then I say yes,” said Stryver: “I won’t go up there now, I am not so |
|
hot upon it as that comes to; I say yes, and I shall expect you to look |
|
in to-night. Good morning.” |
|
|
|
Then Mr. Stryver turned and burst out of the Bank, causing such a |
|
concussion of air on his passage through, that to stand up against it |
|
bowing behind the two counters, required the utmost remaining strength |
|
of the two ancient clerks. Those venerable and feeble persons were |
|
always seen by the public in the act of bowing, and were popularly |
|
believed, when they had bowed a customer out, still to keep on bowing in |
|
the empty office until they bowed another customer in. |
|
|
|
The barrister was keen enough to divine that the banker would not have |
|
gone so far in his expression of opinion on any less solid ground than |
|
moral certainty. Unprepared as he was for the large pill he had to |
|
swallow, he got it down. “And now,” said Mr. Stryver, shaking his |
|
forensic forefinger at the Temple in general, when it was down, “my way |
|
out of this, is, to put you all in the wrong.” |
|
|
|
It was a bit of the art of an Old Bailey tactician, in which he found |
|
great relief. “You shall not put me in the wrong, young lady,” said Mr. |
|
Stryver; “I’ll do that for you.” |
|
|
|
Accordingly, when Mr. Lorry called that night as late as ten o’clock, |
|
Mr. Stryver, among a quantity of books and papers littered out for the |
|
purpose, seemed to have nothing less on his mind than the subject of |
|
the morning. He even showed surprise when he saw Mr. Lorry, and was |
|
altogether in an absent and preoccupied state. |
|
|
|
“Well!” said that good-natured emissary, after a full half-hour of |
|
bootless attempts to bring him round to the question. “I have been to |
|
Soho.” |
|
|
|
“To Soho?” repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. “Oh, to be sure! What am I |
|
thinking of!” |
|
|
|
“And I have no doubt,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was right in the |
|
conversation we had. My opinion is confirmed, and I reiterate my |
|
advice.” |
|
|
|
“I assure you,” returned Mr. Stryver, in the friendliest way, “that I |
|
am sorry for it on your account, and sorry for it on the poor father’s |
|
account. I know this must always be a sore subject with the family; let |
|
us say no more about it.” |
|
|
|
“I don’t understand you,” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“I dare say not,” rejoined Stryver, nodding his head in a smoothing and |
|
final way; “no matter, no matter.” |
|
|
|
“But it does matter,” Mr. Lorry urged. |
|
|
|
“No it doesn’t; I assure you it doesn’t. Having supposed that there was |
|
sense where there is no sense, and a laudable ambition where there is |
|
not a laudable ambition, I am well out of my mistake, and no harm is |
|
done. Young women have committed similar follies often before, and have |
|
repented them in poverty and obscurity often before. In an unselfish |
|
aspect, I am sorry that the thing is dropped, because it would have been |
|
a bad thing for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish aspect, I am |
|
glad that the thing has dropped, because it would have been a bad thing |
|
for me in a worldly point of view--it is hardly necessary to say I could |
|
have gained nothing by it. There is no harm at all done. I have not |
|
proposed to the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means |
|
certain, on reflection, that I ever should have committed myself to |
|
that extent. Mr. Lorry, you cannot control the mincing vanities and |
|
giddinesses of empty-headed girls; you must not expect to do it, or you |
|
will always be disappointed. Now, pray say no more about it. I tell you, |
|
I regret it on account of others, but I am satisfied on my own account. |
|
And I am really very much obliged to you for allowing me to sound you, |
|
and for giving me your advice; you know the young lady better than I do; |
|
you were right, it never would have done.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry was so taken aback, that he looked quite stupidly at Mr. |
|
Stryver shouldering him towards the door, with an appearance of |
|
showering generosity, forbearance, and goodwill, on his erring head. |
|
“Make the best of it, my dear sir,” said Stryver; “say no more about it; |
|
thank you again for allowing me to sound you; good night!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry was out in the night, before he knew where he was. Mr. Stryver |
|
was lying back on his sofa, winking at his ceiling. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII. |
|
The Fellow of No Delicacy |
|
|
|
|
|
If Sydney Carton ever shone anywhere, he certainly never shone in the |
|
house of Doctor Manette. He had been there often, during a whole year, |
|
and had always been the same moody and morose lounger there. When he |
|
cared to talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of caring for nothing, |
|
which overshadowed him with such a fatal darkness, was very rarely |
|
pierced by the light within him. |
|
|
|
And yet he did care something for the streets that environed that house, |
|
and for the senseless stones that made their pavements. Many a night |
|
he vaguely and unhappily wandered there, when wine had brought no |
|
transitory gladness to him; many a dreary daybreak revealed his solitary |
|
figure lingering there, and still lingering there when the first beams |
|
of the sun brought into strong relief, removed beauties of architecture |
|
in spires of churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps the quiet time |
|
brought some sense of better things, else forgotten and unattainable, |
|
into his mind. Of late, the neglected bed in the Temple Court had known |
|
him more scantily than ever; and often when he had thrown himself upon |
|
it no longer than a few minutes, he had got up again, and haunted that |
|
neighbourhood. |
|
|
|
On a day in August, when Mr. Stryver (after notifying to his jackal |
|
that “he had thought better of that marrying matter”) had carried his |
|
delicacy into Devonshire, and when the sight and scent of flowers in the |
|
City streets had some waifs of goodness in them for the worst, of health |
|
for the sickliest, and of youth for the oldest, Sydney’s feet still trod |
|
those stones. From being irresolute and purposeless, his feet became |
|
animated by an intention, and, in the working out of that intention, |
|
they took him to the Doctor’s door. |
|
|
|
He was shown up-stairs, and found Lucie at her work, alone. She had |
|
never been quite at her ease with him, and received him with some little |
|
embarrassment as he seated himself near her table. But, looking up at |
|
his face in the interchange of the first few common-places, she observed |
|
a change in it. |
|
|
|
“I fear you are not well, Mr. Carton!” |
|
|
|
“No. But the life I lead, Miss Manette, is not conducive to health. What |
|
is to be expected of, or by, such profligates?” |
|
|
|
“Is it not--forgive me; I have begun the question on my lips--a pity to |
|
live no better life?” |
|
|
|
“God knows it is a shame!” |
|
|
|
“Then why not change it?” |
|
|
|
Looking gently at him again, she was surprised and saddened to see that |
|
there were tears in his eyes. There were tears in his voice too, as he |
|
answered: |
|
|
|
“It is too late for that. I shall never be better than I am. I shall |
|
sink lower, and be worse.” |
|
|
|
He leaned an elbow on her table, and covered his eyes with his hand. The |
|
table trembled in the silence that followed. |
|
|
|
She had never seen him softened, and was much distressed. He knew her to |
|
be so, without looking at her, and said: |
|
|
|
“Pray forgive me, Miss Manette. I break down before the knowledge of |
|
what I want to say to you. Will you hear me?” |
|
|
|
“If it will do you any good, Mr. Carton, if it would make you happier, |
|
it would make me very glad!” |
|
|
|
“God bless you for your sweet compassion!” |
|
|
|
He unshaded his face after a little while, and spoke steadily. |
|
|
|
“Don’t be afraid to hear me. Don’t shrink from anything I say. I am like |
|
one who died young. All my life might have been.” |
|
|
|
“No, Mr. Carton. I am sure that the best part of it might still be; I am |
|
sure that you might be much, much worthier of yourself.” |
|
|
|
“Say of you, Miss Manette, and although I know better--although in the |
|
mystery of my own wretched heart I know better--I shall never forget |
|
it!” |
|
|
|
She was pale and trembling. He came to her relief with a fixed despair |
|
of himself which made the interview unlike any other that could have |
|
been holden. |
|
|
|
“If it had been possible, Miss Manette, that you could have returned the |
|
love of the man you see before yourself--flung away, wasted, drunken, |
|
poor creature of misuse as you know him to be--he would have been |
|
conscious this day and hour, in spite of his happiness, that he would |
|
bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow and repentance, blight you, |
|
disgrace you, pull you down with him. I know very well that you can have |
|
no tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful that it cannot |
|
be.” |
|
|
|
“Without it, can I not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I not recall |
|
you--forgive me again!--to a better course? Can I in no way repay your |
|
confidence? I know this is a confidence,” she modestly said, after a |
|
little hesitation, and in earnest tears, “I know you would say this to |
|
no one else. Can I turn it to no good account for yourself, Mr. Carton?” |
|
|
|
He shook his head. |
|
|
|
“To none. No, Miss Manette, to none. If you will hear me through a very |
|
little more, all you can ever do for me is done. I wish you to know that |
|
you have been the last dream of my soul. In my degradation I have not |
|
been so degraded but that the sight of you with your father, and of this |
|
home made such a home by you, has stirred old shadows that I thought had |
|
died out of me. Since I knew you, I have been troubled by a remorse that |
|
I thought would never reproach me again, and have heard whispers from |
|
old voices impelling me upward, that I thought were silent for ever. I |
|
have had unformed ideas of striving afresh, beginning anew, shaking off |
|
sloth and sensuality, and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all |
|
a dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where he lay down, |
|
but I wish you to know that you inspired it.” |
|
|
|
“Will nothing of it remain? O Mr. Carton, think again! Try again!” |
|
|
|
“No, Miss Manette; all through it, I have known myself to be quite |
|
undeserving. And yet I have had the weakness, and have still the |
|
weakness, to wish you to know with what a sudden mastery you kindled me, |
|
heap of ashes that I am, into fire--a fire, however, inseparable in |
|
its nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting nothing, doing no |
|
service, idly burning away.” |
|
|
|
“Since it is my misfortune, Mr. Carton, to have made you more unhappy |
|
than you were before you knew me--” |
|
|
|
“Don’t say that, Miss Manette, for you would have reclaimed me, if |
|
anything could. You will not be the cause of my becoming worse.” |
|
|
|
“Since the state of your mind that you describe, is, at all events, |
|
attributable to some influence of mine--this is what I mean, if I can |
|
make it plain--can I use no influence to serve you? Have I no power for |
|
good, with you, at all?” |
|
|
|
“The utmost good that I am capable of now, Miss Manette, I have come |
|
here to realise. Let me carry through the rest of my misdirected life, |
|
the remembrance that I opened my heart to you, last of all the world; |
|
and that there was something left in me at this time which you could |
|
deplore and pity.” |
|
|
|
“Which I entreated you to believe, again and again, most fervently, with |
|
all my heart, was capable of better things, Mr. Carton!” |
|
|
|
“Entreat me to believe it no more, Miss Manette. I have proved myself, |
|
and I know better. I distress you; I draw fast to an end. Will you let |
|
me believe, when I recall this day, that the last confidence of my life |
|
was reposed in your pure and innocent breast, and that it lies there |
|
alone, and will be shared by no one?” |
|
|
|
“If that will be a consolation to you, yes.” |
|
|
|
“Not even by the dearest one ever to be known to you?” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Carton,” she answered, after an agitated pause, “the secret is |
|
yours, not mine; and I promise to respect it.” |
|
|
|
“Thank you. And again, God bless you.” |
|
|
|
He put her hand to his lips, and moved towards the door. |
|
|
|
“Be under no apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever resuming this |
|
conversation by so much as a passing word. I will never refer to it |
|
again. If I were dead, that could not be surer than it is henceforth. In |
|
the hour of my death, I shall hold sacred the one good remembrance--and |
|
shall thank and bless you for it--that my last avowal of myself was made |
|
to you, and that my name, and faults, and miseries were gently carried |
|
in your heart. May it otherwise be light and happy!” |
|
|
|
He was so unlike what he had ever shown himself to be, and it was so |
|
sad to think how much he had thrown away, and how much he every day kept |
|
down and perverted, that Lucie Manette wept mournfully for him as he |
|
stood looking back at her. |
|
|
|
“Be comforted!” he said, “I am not worth such feeling, Miss Manette. An |
|
hour or two hence, and the low companions and low habits that I scorn |
|
but yield to, will render me less worth such tears as those, than any |
|
wretch who creeps along the streets. Be comforted! But, within myself, I |
|
shall always be, towards you, what I am now, though outwardly I shall be |
|
what you have heretofore seen me. The last supplication but one I make |
|
to you, is, that you will believe this of me.” |
|
|
|
“I will, Mr. Carton.” |
|
|
|
“My last supplication of all, is this; and with it, I will relieve |
|
you of a visitor with whom I well know you have nothing in unison, and |
|
between whom and you there is an impassable space. It is useless to say |
|
it, I know, but it rises out of my soul. For you, and for any dear to |
|
you, I would do anything. If my career were of that better kind that |
|
there was any opportunity or capacity of sacrifice in it, I would |
|
embrace any sacrifice for you and for those dear to you. Try to hold |
|
me in your mind, at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one |
|
thing. The time will come, the time will not be long in coming, when new |
|
ties will be formed about you--ties that will bind you yet more tenderly |
|
and strongly to the home you so adorn--the dearest ties that will ever |
|
grace and gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a |
|
happy father’s face looks up in yours, when you see your own bright |
|
beauty springing up anew at your feet, think now and then that there is |
|
a man who would give his life, to keep a life you love beside you!” |
|
|
|
He said, “Farewell!” said a last “God bless you!” and left her. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV. |
|
The Honest Tradesman |
|
|
|
|
|
To the eyes of Mr. Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on his stool in |
|
Fleet-street with his grisly urchin beside him, a vast number and |
|
variety of objects in movement were every day presented. Who could sit |
|
upon anything in Fleet-street during the busy hours of the day, and |
|
not be dazed and deafened by two immense processions, one ever tending |
|
westward with the sun, the other ever tending eastward from the sun, |
|
both ever tending to the plains beyond the range of red and purple where |
|
the sun goes down! |
|
|
|
With his straw in his mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat watching the two streams, |
|
like the heathen rustic who has for several centuries been on duty |
|
watching one stream--saving that Jerry had no expectation of their ever |
|
running dry. Nor would it have been an expectation of a hopeful kind, |
|
since a small part of his income was derived from the pilotage of timid |
|
women (mostly of a full habit and past the middle term of life) from |
|
Tellson’s side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief as such |
|
companionship was in every separate instance, Mr. Cruncher never failed |
|
to become so interested in the lady as to express a strong desire to |
|
have the honour of drinking her very good health. And it was from |
|
the gifts bestowed upon him towards the execution of this benevolent |
|
purpose, that he recruited his finances, as just now observed. |
|
|
|
Time was, when a poet sat upon a stool in a public place, and mused in |
|
the sight of men. Mr. Cruncher, sitting on a stool in a public place, |
|
but not being a poet, mused as little as possible, and looked about him. |
|
|
|
It fell out that he was thus engaged in a season when crowds were |
|
few, and belated women few, and when his affairs in general were so |
|
unprosperous as to awaken a strong suspicion in his breast that Mrs. |
|
Cruncher must have been “flopping” in some pointed manner, when an |
|
unusual concourse pouring down Fleet-street westward, attracted his |
|
attention. Looking that way, Mr. Cruncher made out that some kind of |
|
funeral was coming along, and that there was popular objection to this |
|
funeral, which engendered uproar. |
|
|
|
“Young Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his offspring, “it’s a |
|
buryin’.” |
|
|
|
“Hooroar, father!” cried Young Jerry. |
|
|
|
The young gentleman uttered this exultant sound with mysterious |
|
significance. The elder gentleman took the cry so ill, that he watched |
|
his opportunity, and smote the young gentleman on the ear. |
|
|
|
“What d’ye mean? What are you hooroaring at? What do you want to conwey |
|
to your own father, you young Rip? This boy is a getting too many for |
|
_me_!” said Mr. Cruncher, surveying him. “Him and his hooroars! Don’t |
|
let me hear no more of you, or you shall feel some more of me. D’ye |
|
hear?” |
|
|
|
“I warn’t doing no harm,” Young Jerry protested, rubbing his cheek. |
|
|
|
“Drop it then,” said Mr. Cruncher; “I won’t have none of _your_ no |
|
harms. Get a top of that there seat, and look at the crowd.” |
|
|
|
His son obeyed, and the crowd approached; they were bawling and hissing |
|
round a dingy hearse and dingy mourning coach, in which mourning coach |
|
there was only one mourner, dressed in the dingy trappings that were |
|
considered essential to the dignity of the position. The position |
|
appeared by no means to please him, however, with an increasing rabble |
|
surrounding the coach, deriding him, making grimaces at him, and |
|
incessantly groaning and calling out: “Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha! Spies!” |
|
with many compliments too numerous and forcible to repeat. |
|
|
|
Funerals had at all times a remarkable attraction for Mr. Cruncher; he |
|
always pricked up his senses, and became excited, when a funeral passed |
|
Tellson’s. Naturally, therefore, a funeral with this uncommon attendance |
|
excited him greatly, and he asked of the first man who ran against him: |
|
|
|
“What is it, brother? What’s it about?” |
|
|
|
“_I_ don’t know,” said the man. “Spies! Yaha! Tst! Spies!” |
|
|
|
He asked another man. “Who is it?” |
|
|
|
“_I_ don’t know,” returned the man, clapping his hands to his mouth |
|
nevertheless, and vociferating in a surprising heat and with the |
|
greatest ardour, “Spies! Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi--ies!” |
|
|
|
At length, a person better informed on the merits of the case, tumbled |
|
against him, and from this person he learned that the funeral was the |
|
funeral of one Roger Cly. |
|
|
|
“Was he a spy?” asked Mr. Cruncher. |
|
|
|
“Old Bailey spy,” returned his informant. “Yaha! Tst! Yah! Old Bailey |
|
Spi--i--ies!” |
|
|
|
“Why, to be sure!” exclaimed Jerry, recalling the Trial at which he had |
|
assisted. “I’ve seen him. Dead, is he?” |
|
|
|
“Dead as mutton,” returned the other, “and can’t be too dead. Have ’em |
|
out, there! Spies! Pull ’em out, there! Spies!” |
|
|
|
The idea was so acceptable in the prevalent absence of any idea, |
|
that the crowd caught it up with eagerness, and loudly repeating the |
|
suggestion to have ’em out, and to pull ’em out, mobbed the two vehicles |
|
so closely that they came to a stop. On the crowd’s opening the coach |
|
doors, the one mourner scuffled out by himself and was in their hands |
|
for a moment; but he was so alert, and made such good use of his time, |
|
that in another moment he was scouring away up a bye-street, after |
|
shedding his cloak, hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and |
|
other symbolical tears. |
|
|
|
These, the people tore to pieces and scattered far and wide with great |
|
enjoyment, while the tradesmen hurriedly shut up their shops; for a |
|
crowd in those times stopped at nothing, and was a monster much dreaded. |
|
They had already got the length of opening the hearse to take the coffin |
|
out, when some brighter genius proposed instead, its being escorted to |
|
its destination amidst general rejoicing. Practical suggestions being |
|
much needed, this suggestion, too, was received with acclamation, and |
|
the coach was immediately filled with eight inside and a dozen out, |
|
while as many people got on the roof of the hearse as could by any |
|
exercise of ingenuity stick upon it. Among the first of these volunteers |
|
was Jerry Cruncher himself, who modestly concealed his spiky head from |
|
the observation of Tellson’s, in the further corner of the mourning |
|
coach. |
|
|
|
The officiating undertakers made some protest against these changes in |
|
the ceremonies; but, the river being alarmingly near, and several voices |
|
remarking on the efficacy of cold immersion in bringing refractory |
|
members of the profession to reason, the protest was faint and brief. |
|
The remodelled procession started, with a chimney-sweep driving the |
|
hearse--advised by the regular driver, who was perched beside him, under |
|
close inspection, for the purpose--and with a pieman, also attended |
|
by his cabinet minister, driving the mourning coach. A bear-leader, a |
|
popular street character of the time, was impressed as an additional |
|
ornament, before the cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his |
|
bear, who was black and very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air to |
|
that part of the procession in which he walked. |
|
|
|
Thus, with beer-drinking, pipe-smoking, song-roaring, and infinite |
|
caricaturing of woe, the disorderly procession went its way, recruiting |
|
at every step, and all the shops shutting up before it. Its destination |
|
was the old church of Saint Pancras, far off in the fields. It got there |
|
in course of time; insisted on pouring into the burial-ground; finally, |
|
accomplished the interment of the deceased Roger Cly in its own way, and |
|
highly to its own satisfaction. |
|
|
|
The dead man disposed of, and the crowd being under the necessity of |
|
providing some other entertainment for itself, another brighter |
|
genius (or perhaps the same) conceived the humour of impeaching casual |
|
passers-by, as Old Bailey spies, and wreaking vengeance on them. Chase |
|
was given to some scores of inoffensive persons who had never been near |
|
the Old Bailey in their lives, in the realisation of this fancy, and |
|
they were roughly hustled and maltreated. The transition to the sport of |
|
window-breaking, and thence to the plundering of public-houses, was easy |
|
and natural. At last, after several hours, when sundry summer-houses had |
|
been pulled down, and some area-railings had been torn up, to arm |
|
the more belligerent spirits, a rumour got about that the Guards were |
|
coming. Before this rumour, the crowd gradually melted away, and perhaps |
|
the Guards came, and perhaps they never came, and this was the usual |
|
progress of a mob. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher did not assist at the closing sports, but had remained |
|
behind in the churchyard, to confer and condole with the undertakers. |
|
The place had a soothing influence on him. He procured a pipe from a |
|
neighbouring public-house, and smoked it, looking in at the railings and |
|
maturely considering the spot. |
|
|
|
“Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself in his usual way, |
|
“you see that there Cly that day, and you see with your own eyes that he |
|
was a young ’un and a straight made ’un.” |
|
|
|
Having smoked his pipe out, and ruminated a little longer, he turned |
|
himself about, that he might appear, before the hour of closing, on his |
|
station at Tellson’s. Whether his meditations on mortality had touched |
|
his liver, or whether his general health had been previously at all |
|
amiss, or whether he desired to show a little attention to an eminent |
|
man, is not so much to the purpose, as that he made a short call upon |
|
his medical adviser--a distinguished surgeon--on his way back. |
|
|
|
Young Jerry relieved his father with dutiful interest, and reported No |
|
job in his absence. The bank closed, the ancient clerks came out, the |
|
usual watch was set, and Mr. Cruncher and his son went home to tea. |
|
|
|
“Now, I tell you where it is!” said Mr. Cruncher to his wife, on |
|
entering. “If, as a honest tradesman, my wenturs goes wrong to-night, I |
|
shall make sure that you’ve been praying again me, and I shall work you |
|
for it just the same as if I seen you do it.” |
|
|
|
The dejected Mrs. Cruncher shook her head. |
|
|
|
“Why, you’re at it afore my face!” said Mr. Cruncher, with signs of |
|
angry apprehension. |
|
|
|
“I am saying nothing.” |
|
|
|
“Well, then; don’t meditate nothing. You might as well flop as meditate. |
|
You may as well go again me one way as another. Drop it altogether.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, Jerry.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, Jerry,” repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to tea. “Ah! It _is_ |
|
yes, Jerry. That’s about it. You may say yes, Jerry.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher had no particular meaning in these sulky corroborations, |
|
but made use of them, as people not unfrequently do, to express general |
|
ironical dissatisfaction. |
|
|
|
“You and your yes, Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, taking a bite out of his |
|
bread-and-butter, and seeming to help it down with a large invisible |
|
oyster out of his saucer. “Ah! I think so. I believe you.” |
|
|
|
“You are going out to-night?” asked his decent wife, when he took |
|
another bite. |
|
|
|
“Yes, I am.” |
|
|
|
“May I go with you, father?” asked his son, briskly. |
|
|
|
“No, you mayn’t. I’m a going--as your mother knows--a fishing. That’s |
|
where I’m going to. Going a fishing.” |
|
|
|
“Your fishing-rod gets rayther rusty; don’t it, father?” |
|
|
|
“Never you mind.” |
|
|
|
“Shall you bring any fish home, father?” |
|
|
|
“If I don’t, you’ll have short commons, to-morrow,” returned that |
|
gentleman, shaking his head; “that’s questions enough for you; I ain’t a |
|
going out, till you’ve been long abed.” |
|
|
|
He devoted himself during the remainder of the evening to keeping a |
|
most vigilant watch on Mrs. Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in |
|
conversation that she might be prevented from meditating any petitions |
|
to his disadvantage. With this view, he urged his son to hold her in |
|
conversation also, and led the unfortunate woman a hard life by dwelling |
|
on any causes of complaint he could bring against her, rather than |
|
he would leave her for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest |
|
person could have rendered no greater homage to the efficacy of an |
|
honest prayer than he did in this distrust of his wife. It was as if a |
|
professed unbeliever in ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story. |
|
|
|
“And mind you!” said Mr. Cruncher. “No games to-morrow! If I, as a |
|
honest tradesman, succeed in providing a jinte of meat or two, none |
|
of your not touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest |
|
tradesman, am able to provide a little beer, none of your declaring |
|
on water. When you go to Rome, do as Rome does. Rome will be a ugly |
|
customer to you, if you don’t. _I_’m your Rome, you know.” |
|
|
|
Then he began grumbling again: |
|
|
|
“With your flying into the face of your own wittles and drink! I don’t |
|
know how scarce you mayn’t make the wittles and drink here, by your |
|
flopping tricks and your unfeeling conduct. Look at your boy: he _is_ |
|
your’n, ain’t he? He’s as thin as a lath. Do you call yourself a mother, |
|
and not know that a mother’s first duty is to blow her boy out?” |
|
|
|
This touched Young Jerry on a tender place; who adjured his mother to |
|
perform her first duty, and, whatever else she did or neglected, above |
|
all things to lay especial stress on the discharge of that maternal |
|
function so affectingly and delicately indicated by his other parent. |
|
|
|
Thus the evening wore away with the Cruncher family, until Young Jerry |
|
was ordered to bed, and his mother, laid under similar injunctions, |
|
obeyed them. Mr. Cruncher beguiled the earlier watches of the night with |
|
solitary pipes, and did not start upon his excursion until nearly one |
|
o’clock. Towards that small and ghostly hour, he rose up from his chair, |
|
took a key out of his pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought |
|
forth a sack, a crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and other |
|
fishing tackle of that nature. Disposing these articles about him |
|
in skilful manner, he bestowed a parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher, |
|
extinguished the light, and went out. |
|
|
|
Young Jerry, who had only made a feint of undressing when he went to |
|
bed, was not long after his father. Under cover of the darkness he |
|
followed out of the room, followed down the stairs, followed down the |
|
court, followed out into the streets. He was in no uneasiness concerning |
|
his getting into the house again, for it was full of lodgers, and the |
|
door stood ajar all night. |
|
|
|
Impelled by a laudable ambition to study the art and mystery of his |
|
father’s honest calling, Young Jerry, keeping as close to house fronts, |
|
walls, and doorways, as his eyes were close to one another, held his |
|
honoured parent in view. The honoured parent steering Northward, had not |
|
gone far, when he was joined by another disciple of Izaak Walton, and |
|
the two trudged on together. |
|
|
|
Within half an hour from the first starting, they were beyond the |
|
winking lamps, and the more than winking watchmen, and were out upon a |
|
lonely road. Another fisherman was picked up here--and that so silently, |
|
that if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he might have supposed the |
|
second follower of the gentle craft to have, all of a sudden, split |
|
himself into two. |
|
|
|
The three went on, and Young Jerry went on, until the three stopped |
|
under a bank overhanging the road. Upon the top of the bank was a low |
|
brick wall, surmounted by an iron railing. In the shadow of bank and |
|
wall the three turned out of the road, and up a blind lane, of which |
|
the wall--there, risen to some eight or ten feet high--formed one side. |
|
Crouching down in a corner, peeping up the lane, the next object that |
|
Young Jerry saw, was the form of his honoured parent, pretty well |
|
defined against a watery and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate. |
|
He was soon over, and then the second fisherman got over, and then the |
|
third. They all dropped softly on the ground within the gate, and lay |
|
there a little--listening perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands |
|
and knees. |
|
|
|
It was now Young Jerry’s turn to approach the gate: which he did, |
|
holding his breath. Crouching down again in a corner there, and looking |
|
in, he made out the three fishermen creeping through some rank grass! |
|
and all the gravestones in the churchyard--it was a large churchyard |
|
that they were in--looking on like ghosts in white, while the church |
|
tower itself looked on like the ghost of a monstrous giant. They did not |
|
creep far, before they stopped and stood upright. And then they began to |
|
fish. |
|
|
|
They fished with a spade, at first. Presently the honoured parent |
|
appeared to be adjusting some instrument like a great corkscrew. |
|
Whatever tools they worked with, they worked hard, until the awful |
|
striking of the church clock so terrified Young Jerry, that he made off, |
|
with his hair as stiff as his father’s. |
|
|
|
But, his long-cherished desire to know more about these matters, not |
|
only stopped him in his running away, but lured him back again. They |
|
were still fishing perseveringly, when he peeped in at the gate for |
|
the second time; but, now they seemed to have got a bite. There was a |
|
screwing and complaining sound down below, and their bent figures were |
|
strained, as if by a weight. By slow degrees the weight broke away the |
|
earth upon it, and came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what |
|
it would be; but, when he saw it, and saw his honoured parent about to |
|
wrench it open, he was so frightened, being new to the sight, that he |
|
made off again, and never stopped until he had run a mile or more. |
|
|
|
He would not have stopped then, for anything less necessary than breath, |
|
it being a spectral sort of race that he ran, and one highly desirable |
|
to get to the end of. He had a strong idea that the coffin he had seen |
|
was running after him; and, pictured as hopping on behind him, bolt |
|
upright, upon its narrow end, always on the point of overtaking him |
|
and hopping on at his side--perhaps taking his arm--it was a pursuer to |
|
shun. It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for, while it |
|
was making the whole night behind him dreadful, he darted out into the |
|
roadway to avoid dark alleys, fearful of its coming hopping out of them |
|
like a dropsical boy’s kite without tail and wings. It hid in doorways |
|
too, rubbing its horrible shoulders against doors, and drawing them up |
|
to its ears, as if it were laughing. It got into shadows on the road, |
|
and lay cunningly on its back to trip him up. All this time it was |
|
incessantly hopping on behind and gaining on him, so that when the boy |
|
got to his own door he had reason for being half dead. And even then |
|
it would not leave him, but followed him upstairs with a bump on every |
|
stair, scrambled into bed with him, and bumped down, dead and heavy, on |
|
his breast when he fell asleep. |
|
|
|
From his oppressed slumber, Young Jerry in his closet was awakened after |
|
daybreak and before sunrise, by the presence of his father in the |
|
family room. Something had gone wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry |
|
inferred, from the circumstance of his holding Mrs. Cruncher by the |
|
ears, and knocking the back of her head against the head-board of the |
|
bed. |
|
|
|
“I told you I would,” said Mr. Cruncher, “and I did.” |
|
|
|
“Jerry, Jerry, Jerry!” his wife implored. |
|
|
|
“You oppose yourself to the profit of the business,” said Jerry, “and me |
|
and my partners suffer. You was to honour and obey; why the devil don’t |
|
you?” |
|
|
|
“I try to be a good wife, Jerry,” the poor woman protested, with tears. |
|
|
|
“Is it being a good wife to oppose your husband’s business? Is it |
|
honouring your husband to dishonour his business? Is it obeying your |
|
husband to disobey him on the wital subject of his business?” |
|
|
|
“You hadn’t taken to the dreadful business then, Jerry.” |
|
|
|
“It’s enough for you,” retorted Mr. Cruncher, “to be the wife of a |
|
honest tradesman, and not to occupy your female mind with calculations |
|
when he took to his trade or when he didn’t. A honouring and obeying |
|
wife would let his trade alone altogether. Call yourself a religious |
|
woman? If you’re a religious woman, give me a irreligious one! You have |
|
no more nat’ral sense of duty than the bed of this here Thames river has |
|
of a pile, and similarly it must be knocked into you.” |
|
|
|
The altercation was conducted in a low tone of voice, and terminated in |
|
the honest tradesman’s kicking off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down |
|
at his length on the floor. After taking a timid peep at him lying on |
|
his back, with his rusty hands under his head for a pillow, his son lay |
|
down too, and fell asleep again. |
|
|
|
There was no fish for breakfast, and not much of anything else. Mr. |
|
Cruncher was out of spirits, and out of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid |
|
by him as a projectile for the correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case |
|
he should observe any symptoms of her saying Grace. He was brushed |
|
and washed at the usual hour, and set off with his son to pursue his |
|
ostensible calling. |
|
|
|
Young Jerry, walking with the stool under his arm at his father’s side |
|
along sunny and crowded Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry |
|
from him of the previous night, running home through darkness and |
|
solitude from his grim pursuer. His cunning was fresh with the day, |
|
and his qualms were gone with the night--in which particulars it is not |
|
improbable that he had compeers in Fleet-street and the City of London, |
|
that fine morning. |
|
|
|
“Father,” said Young Jerry, as they walked along: taking care to keep |
|
at arm’s length and to have the stool well between them: “what’s a |
|
Resurrection-Man?” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher came to a stop on the pavement before he answered, “How |
|
should I know?” |
|
|
|
“I thought you knowed everything, father,” said the artless boy. |
|
|
|
“Hem! Well,” returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again, and lifting off his |
|
hat to give his spikes free play, “he’s a tradesman.” |
|
|
|
“What’s his goods, father?” asked the brisk Young Jerry. |
|
|
|
“His goods,” said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it over in his mind, “is a |
|
branch of Scientific goods.” |
|
|
|
“Persons’ bodies, ain’t it, father?” asked the lively boy. |
|
|
|
“I believe it is something of that sort,” said Mr. Cruncher. |
|
|
|
“Oh, father, I should so like to be a Resurrection-Man when I’m quite |
|
growed up!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher was soothed, but shook his head in a dubious and moral way. |
|
“It depends upon how you dewelop your talents. Be careful to dewelop |
|
your talents, and never to say no more than you can help to nobody, and |
|
there’s no telling at the present time what you may not come to be fit |
|
for.” As Young Jerry, thus encouraged, went on a few yards in advance, |
|
to plant the stool in the shadow of the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to |
|
himself: “Jerry, you honest tradesman, there’s hopes wot that boy will |
|
yet be a blessing to you, and a recompense to you for his mother!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV. |
|
Knitting |
|
|
|
|
|
There had been earlier drinking than usual in the wine-shop of Monsieur |
|
Defarge. As early as six o’clock in the morning, sallow faces peeping |
|
through its barred windows had descried other faces within, bending over |
|
measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge sold a very thin wine at the best |
|
of times, but it would seem to have been an unusually thin wine that |
|
he sold at this time. A sour wine, moreover, or a souring, for its |
|
influence on the mood of those who drank it was to make them gloomy. No |
|
vivacious Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed grape of Monsieur |
|
Defarge: but, a smouldering fire that burnt in the dark, lay hidden in |
|
the dregs of it. |
|
|
|
This had been the third morning in succession, on which there had been |
|
early drinking at the wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. It had begun |
|
on Monday, and here was Wednesday come. There had been more of early |
|
brooding than drinking; for, many men had listened and whispered and |
|
slunk about there from the time of the opening of the door, who could |
|
not have laid a piece of money on the counter to save their souls. These |
|
were to the full as interested in the place, however, as if they could |
|
have commanded whole barrels of wine; and they glided from seat to seat, |
|
and from corner to corner, swallowing talk in lieu of drink, with greedy |
|
looks. |
|
|
|
Notwithstanding an unusual flow of company, the master of the wine-shop |
|
was not visible. He was not missed; for, nobody who crossed the |
|
threshold looked for him, nobody asked for him, nobody wondered to see |
|
only Madame Defarge in her seat, presiding over the distribution of |
|
wine, with a bowl of battered small coins before her, as much defaced |
|
and beaten out of their original impress as the small coinage of |
|
humanity from whose ragged pockets they had come. |
|
|
|
A suspended interest and a prevalent absence of mind, were perhaps |
|
observed by the spies who looked in at the wine-shop, as they looked in |
|
at every place, high and low, from the king’s palace to the criminal’s |
|
gaol. Games at cards languished, players at dominoes musingly built |
|
towers with them, drinkers drew figures on the tables with spilt drops |
|
of wine, Madame Defarge herself picked out the pattern on her sleeve |
|
with her toothpick, and saw and heard something inaudible and invisible |
|
a long way off. |
|
|
|
Thus, Saint Antoine in this vinous feature of his, until midday. It was |
|
high noontide, when two dusty men passed through his streets and under |
|
his swinging lamps: of whom, one was Monsieur Defarge: the other a |
|
mender of roads in a blue cap. All adust and athirst, the two entered |
|
the wine-shop. Their arrival had lighted a kind of fire in the breast |
|
of Saint Antoine, fast spreading as they came along, which stirred and |
|
flickered in flames of faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one had |
|
followed them, and no man spoke when they entered the wine-shop, though |
|
the eyes of every man there were turned upon them. |
|
|
|
“Good day, gentlemen!” said Monsieur Defarge. |
|
|
|
It may have been a signal for loosening the general tongue. It elicited |
|
an answering chorus of “Good day!” |
|
|
|
“It is bad weather, gentlemen,” said Defarge, shaking his head. |
|
|
|
Upon which, every man looked at his neighbour, and then all cast down |
|
their eyes and sat silent. Except one man, who got up and went out. |
|
|
|
“My wife,” said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame Defarge: “I have |
|
travelled certain leagues with this good mender of roads, called |
|
Jacques. I met him--by accident--a day and half’s journey out of Paris. |
|
He is a good child, this mender of roads, called Jacques. Give him to |
|
drink, my wife!” |
|
|
|
A second man got up and went out. Madame Defarge set wine before the |
|
mender of roads called Jacques, who doffed his blue cap to the company, |
|
and drank. In the breast of his blouse he carried some coarse dark |
|
bread; he ate of this between whiles, and sat munching and drinking near |
|
Madame Defarge’s counter. A third man got up and went out. |
|
|
|
Defarge refreshed himself with a draught of wine--but, he took less |
|
than was given to the stranger, as being himself a man to whom it was no |
|
rarity--and stood waiting until the countryman had made his breakfast. |
|
He looked at no one present, and no one now looked at him; not even |
|
Madame Defarge, who had taken up her knitting, and was at work. |
|
|
|
“Have you finished your repast, friend?” he asked, in due season. |
|
|
|
“Yes, thank you.” |
|
|
|
“Come, then! You shall see the apartment that I told you you could |
|
occupy. It will suit you to a marvel.” |
|
|
|
Out of the wine-shop into the street, out of the street into a |
|
courtyard, out of the courtyard up a steep staircase, out of the |
|
staircase into a garret--formerly the garret where a white-haired man |
|
sat on a low bench, stooping forward and very busy, making shoes. |
|
|
|
No white-haired man was there now; but, the three men were there who had |
|
gone out of the wine-shop singly. And between them and the white-haired |
|
man afar off, was the one small link, that they had once looked in at |
|
him through the chinks in the wall. |
|
|
|
Defarge closed the door carefully, and spoke in a subdued voice: |
|
|
|
“Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is the witness |
|
encountered by appointment, by me, Jacques Four. He will tell you all. |
|
Speak, Jacques Five!” |
|
|
|
The mender of roads, blue cap in hand, wiped his swarthy forehead with |
|
it, and said, “Where shall I commence, monsieur?” |
|
|
|
“Commence,” was Monsieur Defarge’s not unreasonable reply, “at the |
|
commencement.” |
|
|
|
“I saw him then, messieurs,” began the mender of roads, “a year ago this |
|
running summer, underneath the carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the |
|
chain. Behold the manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun |
|
going to bed, the carriage of the Marquis slowly ascending the hill, he |
|
hanging by the chain--like this.” |
|
|
|
Again the mender of roads went through the whole performance; in which |
|
he ought to have been perfect by that time, seeing that it had been |
|
the infallible resource and indispensable entertainment of his village |
|
during a whole year. |
|
|
|
Jacques One struck in, and asked if he had ever seen the man before? |
|
|
|
“Never,” answered the mender of roads, recovering his perpendicular. |
|
|
|
Jacques Three demanded how he afterwards recognised him then? |
|
|
|
“By his tall figure,” said the mender of roads, softly, and with his |
|
finger at his nose. “When Monsieur the Marquis demands that evening, |
|
‘Say, what is he like?’ I make response, ‘Tall as a spectre.’” |
|
|
|
“You should have said, short as a dwarf,” returned Jacques Two. |
|
|
|
“But what did I know? The deed was not then accomplished, neither did he |
|
confide in me. Observe! Under those circumstances even, I do not |
|
offer my testimony. Monsieur the Marquis indicates me with his finger, |
|
standing near our little fountain, and says, ‘To me! Bring that rascal!’ |
|
My faith, messieurs, I offer nothing.” |
|
|
|
“He is right there, Jacques,” murmured Defarge, to him who had |
|
interrupted. “Go on!” |
|
|
|
“Good!” said the mender of roads, with an air of mystery. “The tall man |
|
is lost, and he is sought--how many months? Nine, ten, eleven?” |
|
|
|
“No matter, the number,” said Defarge. “He is well hidden, but at last |
|
he is unluckily found. Go on!” |
|
|
|
“I am again at work upon the hill-side, and the sun is again about to |
|
go to bed. I am collecting my tools to descend to my cottage down in the |
|
village below, where it is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see |
|
coming over the hill six soldiers. In the midst of them is a tall man |
|
with his arms bound--tied to his sides--like this!” |
|
|
|
With the aid of his indispensable cap, he represented a man with his |
|
elbows bound fast at his hips, with cords that were knotted behind him. |
|
|
|
“I stand aside, messieurs, by my heap of stones, to see the soldiers |
|
and their prisoner pass (for it is a solitary road, that, where any |
|
spectacle is well worth looking at), and at first, as they approach, I |
|
see no more than that they are six soldiers with a tall man bound, and |
|
that they are almost black to my sight--except on the side of the sun |
|
going to bed, where they have a red edge, messieurs. Also, I see that |
|
their long shadows are on the hollow ridge on the opposite side of the |
|
road, and are on the hill above it, and are like the shadows of giants. |
|
Also, I see that they are covered with dust, and that the dust moves |
|
with them as they come, tramp, tramp! But when they advance quite near |
|
to me, I recognise the tall man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would |
|
be well content to precipitate himself over the hill-side once again, as |
|
on the evening when he and I first encountered, close to the same spot!” |
|
|
|
He described it as if he were there, and it was evident that he saw it |
|
vividly; perhaps he had not seen much in his life. |
|
|
|
“I do not show the soldiers that I recognise the tall man; he does not |
|
show the soldiers that he recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with |
|
our eyes. ‘Come on!’ says the chief of that company, pointing to the |
|
village, ‘bring him fast to his tomb!’ and they bring him faster. I |
|
follow. His arms are swelled because of being bound so tight, his wooden |
|
shoes are large and clumsy, and he is lame. Because he is lame, and |
|
consequently slow, they drive him with their guns--like this!” |
|
|
|
He imitated the action of a man’s being impelled forward by the |
|
butt-ends of muskets. |
|
|
|
“As they descend the hill like madmen running a race, he falls. They |
|
laugh and pick him up again. His face is bleeding and covered with dust, |
|
but he cannot touch it; thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into |
|
the village; all the village runs to look; they take him past the mill, |
|
and up to the prison; all the village sees the prison gate open in the |
|
darkness of the night, and swallow him--like this!” |
|
|
|
He opened his mouth as wide as he could, and shut it with a sounding |
|
snap of his teeth. Observant of his unwillingness to mar the effect by |
|
opening it again, Defarge said, “Go on, Jacques.” |
|
|
|
“All the village,” pursued the mender of roads, on tiptoe and in a low |
|
voice, “withdraws; all the village whispers by the fountain; all the |
|
village sleeps; all the village dreams of that unhappy one, within the |
|
locks and bars of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of it, |
|
except to perish. In the morning, with my tools upon my shoulder, eating |
|
my morsel of black bread as I go, I make a circuit by the prison, on |
|
my way to my work. There I see him, high up, behind the bars of a lofty |
|
iron cage, bloody and dusty as last night, looking through. He has no |
|
hand free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he regards me like a |
|
dead man.” |
|
|
|
Defarge and the three glanced darkly at one another. The looks of all |
|
of them were dark, repressed, and revengeful, as they listened to the |
|
countryman’s story; the manner of all of them, while it was secret, was |
|
authoritative too. They had the air of a rough tribunal; Jacques One |
|
and Two sitting on the old pallet-bed, each with his chin resting on |
|
his hand, and his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques Three, equally |
|
intent, on one knee behind them, with his agitated hand always gliding |
|
over the network of fine nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge |
|
standing between them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the |
|
light of the window, by turns looking from him to them, and from them to |
|
him. |
|
|
|
“Go on, Jacques,” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
“He remains up there in his iron cage some days. The village looks |
|
at him by stealth, for it is afraid. But it always looks up, from a |
|
distance, at the prison on the crag; and in the evening, when the work |
|
of the day is achieved and it assembles to gossip at the fountain, all |
|
faces are turned towards the prison. Formerly, they were turned towards |
|
the posting-house; now, they are turned towards the prison. They |
|
whisper at the fountain, that although condemned to death he will not be |
|
executed; they say that petitions have been presented in Paris, showing |
|
that he was enraged and made mad by the death of his child; they say |
|
that a petition has been presented to the King himself. What do I know? |
|
It is possible. Perhaps yes, perhaps no.” |
|
|
|
“Listen then, Jacques,” Number One of that name sternly interposed. |
|
“Know that a petition was presented to the King and Queen. All here, |
|
yourself excepted, saw the King take it, in his carriage in the street, |
|
sitting beside the Queen. It is Defarge whom you see here, who, at the |
|
hazard of his life, darted out before the horses, with the petition in |
|
his hand.” |
|
|
|
“And once again listen, Jacques!” said the kneeling Number Three: |
|
his fingers ever wandering over and over those fine nerves, with a |
|
strikingly greedy air, as if he hungered for something--that was neither |
|
food nor drink; “the guard, horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner, |
|
and struck him blows. You hear?” |
|
|
|
“I hear, messieurs.” |
|
|
|
“Go on then,” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
“Again; on the other hand, they whisper at the fountain,” resumed the |
|
countryman, “that he is brought down into our country to be executed on |
|
the spot, and that he will very certainly be executed. They even whisper |
|
that because he has slain Monseigneur, and because Monseigneur was the |
|
father of his tenants--serfs--what you will--he will be executed as a |
|
parricide. One old man says at the fountain, that his right hand, armed |
|
with the knife, will be burnt off before his face; that, into wounds |
|
which will be made in his arms, his breast, and his legs, there will be |
|
poured boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin, wax, and sulphur; finally, |
|
that he will be torn limb from limb by four strong horses. That old man |
|
says, all this was actually done to a prisoner who made an attempt on |
|
the life of the late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he lies? |
|
I am not a scholar.” |
|
|
|
“Listen once again then, Jacques!” said the man with the restless hand |
|
and the craving air. “The name of that prisoner was Damiens, and it was |
|
all done in open day, in the open streets of this city of Paris; and |
|
nothing was more noticed in the vast concourse that saw it done, than |
|
the crowd of ladies of quality and fashion, who were full of eager |
|
attention to the last--to the last, Jacques, prolonged until nightfall, |
|
when he had lost two legs and an arm, and still breathed! And it was |
|
done--why, how old are you?” |
|
|
|
“Thirty-five,” said the mender of roads, who looked sixty. |
|
|
|
“It was done when you were more than ten years old; you might have seen |
|
it.” |
|
|
|
“Enough!” said Defarge, with grim impatience. “Long live the Devil! Go |
|
on.” |
|
|
|
“Well! Some whisper this, some whisper that; they speak of nothing else; |
|
even the fountain appears to fall to that tune. At length, on Sunday |
|
night when all the village is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from |
|
the prison, and their guns ring on the stones of the little street. |
|
Workmen dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh and sing; in the morning, by |
|
the fountain, there is raised a gallows forty feet high, poisoning the |
|
water.” |
|
|
|
The mender of roads looked _through_ rather than _at_ the low ceiling, |
|
and pointed as if he saw the gallows somewhere in the sky. |
|
|
|
“All work is stopped, all assemble there, nobody leads the cows out, |
|
the cows are there with the rest. At midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers |
|
have marched into the prison in the night, and he is in the midst |
|
of many soldiers. He is bound as before, and in his mouth there is |
|
a gag--tied so, with a tight string, making him look almost as if he |
|
laughed.” He suggested it, by creasing his face with his two thumbs, |
|
from the corners of his mouth to his ears. “On the top of the gallows is |
|
fixed the knife, blade upwards, with its point in the air. He is hanged |
|
there forty feet high--and is left hanging, poisoning the water.” |
|
|
|
They looked at one another, as he used his blue cap to wipe his face, |
|
on which the perspiration had started afresh while he recalled the |
|
spectacle. |
|
|
|
“It is frightful, messieurs. How can the women and the children draw |
|
water! Who can gossip of an evening, under that shadow! Under it, have |
|
I said? When I left the village, Monday evening as the sun was going to |
|
bed, and looked back from the hill, the shadow struck across the church, |
|
across the mill, across the prison--seemed to strike across the earth, |
|
messieurs, to where the sky rests upon it!” |
|
|
|
The hungry man gnawed one of his fingers as he looked at the other |
|
three, and his finger quivered with the craving that was on him. |
|
|
|
“That’s all, messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had been warned to do), |
|
and I walked on, that night and half next day, until I met (as I was |
|
warned I should) this comrade. With him, I came on, now riding and now |
|
walking, through the rest of yesterday and through last night. And here |
|
you see me!” |
|
|
|
After a gloomy silence, the first Jacques said, “Good! You have acted |
|
and recounted faithfully. Will you wait for us a little, outside the |
|
door?” |
|
|
|
“Very willingly,” said the mender of roads. Whom Defarge escorted to the |
|
top of the stairs, and, leaving seated there, returned. |
|
|
|
The three had risen, and their heads were together when he came back to |
|
the garret. |
|
|
|
“How say you, Jacques?” demanded Number One. “To be registered?” |
|
|
|
“To be registered, as doomed to destruction,” returned Defarge. |
|
|
|
“Magnificent!” croaked the man with the craving. |
|
|
|
“The chateau, and all the race?” inquired the first. |
|
|
|
“The chateau and all the race,” returned Defarge. “Extermination.” |
|
|
|
The hungry man repeated, in a rapturous croak, “Magnificent!” and began |
|
gnawing another finger. |
|
|
|
“Are you sure,” asked Jacques Two, of Defarge, “that no embarrassment |
|
can arise from our manner of keeping the register? Without doubt it is |
|
safe, for no one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always |
|
be able to decipher it--or, I ought to say, will she?” |
|
|
|
“Jacques,” returned Defarge, drawing himself up, “if madame my wife |
|
undertook to keep the register in her memory alone, she would not lose |
|
a word of it--not a syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and her |
|
own symbols, it will always be as plain to her as the sun. Confide in |
|
Madame Defarge. It would be easier for the weakest poltroon that lives, |
|
to erase himself from existence, than to erase one letter of his name or |
|
crimes from the knitted register of Madame Defarge.” |
|
|
|
There was a murmur of confidence and approval, and then the man who |
|
hungered, asked: “Is this rustic to be sent back soon? I hope so. He is |
|
very simple; is he not a little dangerous?” |
|
|
|
“He knows nothing,” said Defarge; “at least nothing more than would |
|
easily elevate himself to a gallows of the same height. I charge myself |
|
with him; let him remain with me; I will take care of him, and set him |
|
on his road. He wishes to see the fine world--the King, the Queen, and |
|
Court; let him see them on Sunday.” |
|
|
|
“What?” exclaimed the hungry man, staring. “Is it a good sign, that he |
|
wishes to see Royalty and Nobility?” |
|
|
|
“Jacques,” said Defarge; “judiciously show a cat milk, if you wish her |
|
to thirst for it. Judiciously show a dog his natural prey, if you wish |
|
him to bring it down one day.” |
|
|
|
Nothing more was said, and the mender of roads, being found already |
|
dozing on the topmost stair, was advised to lay himself down on the |
|
pallet-bed and take some rest. He needed no persuasion, and was soon |
|
asleep. |
|
|
|
Worse quarters than Defarge’s wine-shop, could easily have been found |
|
in Paris for a provincial slave of that degree. Saving for a mysterious |
|
dread of madame by which he was constantly haunted, his life was very |
|
new and agreeable. But, madame sat all day at her counter, so expressly |
|
unconscious of him, and so particularly determined not to perceive that |
|
his being there had any connection with anything below the surface, that |
|
he shook in his wooden shoes whenever his eye lighted on her. For, he |
|
contended with himself that it was impossible to foresee what that lady |
|
might pretend next; and he felt assured that if she should take it |
|
into her brightly ornamented head to pretend that she had seen him do a |
|
murder and afterwards flay the victim, she would infallibly go through |
|
with it until the play was played out. |
|
|
|
Therefore, when Sunday came, the mender of roads was not enchanted |
|
(though he said he was) to find that madame was to accompany monsieur |
|
and himself to Versailles. It was additionally disconcerting to have |
|
madame knitting all the way there, in a public conveyance; it was |
|
additionally disconcerting yet, to have madame in the crowd in the |
|
afternoon, still with her knitting in her hands as the crowd waited to |
|
see the carriage of the King and Queen. |
|
|
|
“You work hard, madame,” said a man near her. |
|
|
|
“Yes,” answered Madame Defarge; “I have a good deal to do.” |
|
|
|
“What do you make, madame?” |
|
|
|
“Many things.” |
|
|
|
“For instance--” |
|
|
|
“For instance,” returned Madame Defarge, composedly, “shrouds.” |
|
|
|
The man moved a little further away, as soon as he could, and the mender |
|
of roads fanned himself with his blue cap: feeling it mightily close |
|
and oppressive. If he needed a King and Queen to restore him, he was |
|
fortunate in having his remedy at hand; for, soon the large-faced King |
|
and the fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach, attended by the |
|
shining Bull’s Eye of their Court, a glittering multitude of laughing |
|
ladies and fine lords; and in jewels and silks and powder and splendour |
|
and elegantly spurning figures and handsomely disdainful faces of both |
|
sexes, the mender of roads bathed himself, so much to his temporary |
|
intoxication, that he cried Long live the King, Long live the Queen, |
|
Long live everybody and everything! as if he had never heard of |
|
ubiquitous Jacques in his time. Then, there were gardens, courtyards, |
|
terraces, fountains, green banks, more King and Queen, more Bull’s Eye, |
|
more lords and ladies, more Long live they all! until he absolutely wept |
|
with sentiment. During the whole of this scene, which lasted some three |
|
hours, he had plenty of shouting and weeping and sentimental company, |
|
and throughout Defarge held him by the collar, as if to restrain him |
|
from flying at the objects of his brief devotion and tearing them to |
|
pieces. |
|
|
|
“Bravo!” said Defarge, clapping him on the back when it was over, like a |
|
patron; “you are a good boy!” |
|
|
|
The mender of roads was now coming to himself, and was mistrustful of |
|
having made a mistake in his late demonstrations; but no. |
|
|
|
“You are the fellow we want,” said Defarge, in his ear; “you make |
|
these fools believe that it will last for ever. Then, they are the more |
|
insolent, and it is the nearer ended.” |
|
|
|
“Hey!” cried the mender of roads, reflectively; “that’s true.” |
|
|
|
“These fools know nothing. While they despise your breath, and would |
|
stop it for ever and ever, in you or in a hundred like you rather than |
|
in one of their own horses or dogs, they only know what your breath |
|
tells them. Let it deceive them, then, a little longer; it cannot |
|
deceive them too much.” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge looked superciliously at the client, and nodded in |
|
confirmation. |
|
|
|
“As to you,” said she, “you would shout and shed tears for anything, if |
|
it made a show and a noise. Say! Would you not?” |
|
|
|
“Truly, madame, I think so. For the moment.” |
|
|
|
“If you were shown a great heap of dolls, and were set upon them to |
|
pluck them to pieces and despoil them for your own advantage, you would |
|
pick out the richest and gayest. Say! Would you not?” |
|
|
|
“Truly yes, madame.” |
|
|
|
“Yes. And if you were shown a flock of birds, unable to fly, and were |
|
set upon them to strip them of their feathers for your own advantage, |
|
you would set upon the birds of the finest feathers; would you not?” |
|
|
|
“It is true, madame.” |
|
|
|
“You have seen both dolls and birds to-day,” said Madame Defarge, with |
|
a wave of her hand towards the place where they had last been apparent; |
|
“now, go home!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI. |
|
Still Knitting |
|
|
|
|
|
Madame Defarge and monsieur her husband returned amicably to the |
|
bosom of Saint Antoine, while a speck in a blue cap toiled through the |
|
darkness, and through the dust, and down the weary miles of avenue by |
|
the wayside, slowly tending towards that point of the compass where |
|
the chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave, listened to |
|
the whispering trees. Such ample leisure had the stone faces, now, |
|
for listening to the trees and to the fountain, that the few village |
|
scarecrows who, in their quest for herbs to eat and fragments of dead |
|
stick to burn, strayed within sight of the great stone courtyard and |
|
terrace staircase, had it borne in upon their starved fancy that |
|
the expression of the faces was altered. A rumour just lived in the |
|
village--had a faint and bare existence there, as its people had--that |
|
when the knife struck home, the faces changed, from faces of pride to |
|
faces of anger and pain; also, that when that dangling figure was hauled |
|
up forty feet above the fountain, they changed again, and bore a cruel |
|
look of being avenged, which they would henceforth bear for ever. In the |
|
stone face over the great window of the bed-chamber where the murder |
|
was done, two fine dints were pointed out in the sculptured nose, which |
|
everybody recognised, and which nobody had seen of old; and on the |
|
scarce occasions when two or three ragged peasants emerged from the |
|
crowd to take a hurried peep at Monsieur the Marquis petrified, a |
|
skinny finger would not have pointed to it for a minute, before they all |
|
started away among the moss and leaves, like the more fortunate hares |
|
who could find a living there. |
|
|
|
Chateau and hut, stone face and dangling figure, the red stain on the |
|
stone floor, and the pure water in the village well--thousands of acres |
|
of land--a whole province of France--all France itself--lay under the |
|
night sky, concentrated into a faint hair-breadth line. So does a whole |
|
world, with all its greatnesses and littlenesses, lie in a twinkling |
|
star. And as mere human knowledge can split a ray of light and analyse |
|
the manner of its composition, so, sublimer intelligences may read in |
|
the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every thought and act, every |
|
vice and virtue, of every responsible creature on it. |
|
|
|
The Defarges, husband and wife, came lumbering under the starlight, |
|
in their public vehicle, to that gate of Paris whereunto their |
|
journey naturally tended. There was the usual stoppage at the barrier |
|
guardhouse, and the usual lanterns came glancing forth for the usual |
|
examination and inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted; knowing one or two |
|
of the soldiery there, and one of the police. The latter he was intimate |
|
with, and affectionately embraced. |
|
|
|
When Saint Antoine had again enfolded the Defarges in his dusky wings, |
|
and they, having finally alighted near the Saint’s boundaries, were |
|
picking their way on foot through the black mud and offal of his |
|
streets, Madame Defarge spoke to her husband: |
|
|
|
“Say then, my friend; what did Jacques of the police tell thee?” |
|
|
|
“Very little to-night, but all he knows. There is another spy |
|
commissioned for our quarter. There may be many more, for all that he |
|
can say, but he knows of one.” |
|
|
|
“Eh well!” said Madame Defarge, raising her eyebrows with a cool |
|
business air. “It is necessary to register him. How do they call that |
|
man?” |
|
|
|
“He is English.” |
|
|
|
“So much the better. His name?” |
|
|
|
“Barsad,” said Defarge, making it French by pronunciation. But, he had |
|
been so careful to get it accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect |
|
correctness. |
|
|
|
“Barsad,” repeated madame. “Good. Christian name?” |
|
|
|
“John.” |
|
|
|
“John Barsad,” repeated madame, after murmuring it once to herself. |
|
“Good. His appearance; is it known?” |
|
|
|
“Age, about forty years; height, about five feet nine; black hair; |
|
complexion dark; generally, rather handsome visage; eyes dark, face |
|
thin, long, and sallow; nose aquiline, but not straight, having a |
|
peculiar inclination towards the left cheek; expression, therefore, |
|
sinister.” |
|
|
|
“Eh my faith. It is a portrait!” said madame, laughing. “He shall be |
|
registered to-morrow.” |
|
|
|
They turned into the wine-shop, which was closed (for it was midnight), |
|
and where Madame Defarge immediately took her post at her desk, counted |
|
the small moneys that had been taken during her absence, examined the |
|
stock, went through the entries in the book, made other entries of |
|
her own, checked the serving man in every possible way, and finally |
|
dismissed him to bed. Then she turned out the contents of the bowl |
|
of money for the second time, and began knotting them up in her |
|
handkerchief, in a chain of separate knots, for safe keeping through the |
|
night. All this while, Defarge, with his pipe in his mouth, walked |
|
up and down, complacently admiring, but never interfering; in which |
|
condition, indeed, as to the business and his domestic affairs, he |
|
walked up and down through life. |
|
|
|
The night was hot, and the shop, close shut and surrounded by so foul a |
|
neighbourhood, was ill-smelling. Monsieur Defarge’s olfactory sense was |
|
by no means delicate, but the stock of wine smelt much stronger than |
|
it ever tasted, and so did the stock of rum and brandy and aniseed. He |
|
whiffed the compound of scents away, as he put down his smoked-out pipe. |
|
|
|
“You are fatigued,” said madame, raising her glance as she knotted the |
|
money. “There are only the usual odours.” |
|
|
|
“I am a little tired,” her husband acknowledged. |
|
|
|
“You are a little depressed, too,” said madame, whose quick eyes had |
|
never been so intent on the accounts, but they had had a ray or two for |
|
him. “Oh, the men, the men!” |
|
|
|
“But my dear!” began Defarge. |
|
|
|
“But my dear!” repeated madame, nodding firmly; “but my dear! You are |
|
faint of heart to-night, my dear!” |
|
|
|
“Well, then,” said Defarge, as if a thought were wrung out of his |
|
breast, “it _is_ a long time.” |
|
|
|
“It is a long time,” repeated his wife; “and when is it not a long time? |
|
Vengeance and retribution require a long time; it is the rule.” |
|
|
|
“It does not take a long time to strike a man with Lightning,” said |
|
Defarge. |
|
|
|
“How long,” demanded madame, composedly, “does it take to make and store |
|
the lightning? Tell me.” |
|
|
|
Defarge raised his head thoughtfully, as if there were something in that |
|
too. |
|
|
|
“It does not take a long time,” said madame, “for an earthquake to |
|
swallow a town. Eh well! Tell me how long it takes to prepare the |
|
earthquake?” |
|
|
|
“A long time, I suppose,” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
“But when it is ready, it takes place, and grinds to pieces everything |
|
before it. In the meantime, it is always preparing, though it is not |
|
seen or heard. That is your consolation. Keep it.” |
|
|
|
She tied a knot with flashing eyes, as if it throttled a foe. |
|
|
|
“I tell thee,” said madame, extending her right hand, for emphasis, |
|
“that although it is a long time on the road, it is on the road and |
|
coming. I tell thee it never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it |
|
is always advancing. Look around and consider the lives of all the world |
|
that we know, consider the faces of all the world that we know, consider |
|
the rage and discontent to which the Jacquerie addresses itself with |
|
more and more of certainty every hour. Can such things last? Bah! I mock |
|
you.” |
|
|
|
“My brave wife,” returned Defarge, standing before her with his head |
|
a little bent, and his hands clasped at his back, like a docile and |
|
attentive pupil before his catechist, “I do not question all this. But |
|
it has lasted a long time, and it is possible--you know well, my wife, |
|
it is possible--that it may not come, during our lives.” |
|
|
|
“Eh well! How then?” demanded madame, tying another knot, as if there |
|
were another enemy strangled. |
|
|
|
“Well!” said Defarge, with a half complaining and half apologetic shrug. |
|
“We shall not see the triumph.” |
|
|
|
“We shall have helped it,” returned madame, with her extended hand in |
|
strong action. “Nothing that we do, is done in vain. I believe, with all |
|
my soul, that we shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew |
|
certainly not, show me the neck of an aristocrat and tyrant, and still I |
|
would--” |
|
|
|
Then madame, with her teeth set, tied a very terrible knot indeed. |
|
|
|
“Hold!” cried Defarge, reddening a little as if he felt charged with |
|
cowardice; “I too, my dear, will stop at nothing.” |
|
|
|
“Yes! But it is your weakness that you sometimes need to see your victim |
|
and your opportunity, to sustain you. Sustain yourself without that. |
|
When the time comes, let loose a tiger and a devil; but wait for the |
|
time with the tiger and the devil chained--not shown--yet always ready.” |
|
|
|
Madame enforced the conclusion of this piece of advice by striking her |
|
little counter with her chain of money as if she knocked its brains |
|
out, and then gathering the heavy handkerchief under her arm in a serene |
|
manner, and observing that it was time to go to bed. |
|
|
|
Next noontide saw the admirable woman in her usual place in the |
|
wine-shop, knitting away assiduously. A rose lay beside her, and if she |
|
now and then glanced at the flower, it was with no infraction of her |
|
usual preoccupied air. There were a few customers, drinking or not |
|
drinking, standing or seated, sprinkled about. The day was very hot, |
|
and heaps of flies, who were extending their inquisitive and adventurous |
|
perquisitions into all the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell |
|
dead at the bottom. Their decease made no impression on the other flies |
|
out promenading, who looked at them in the coolest manner (as if they |
|
themselves were elephants, or something as far removed), until they met |
|
the same fate. Curious to consider how heedless flies are!--perhaps they |
|
thought as much at Court that sunny summer day. |
|
|
|
A figure entering at the door threw a shadow on Madame Defarge which she |
|
felt to be a new one. She laid down her knitting, and began to pin her |
|
rose in her head-dress, before she looked at the figure. |
|
|
|
It was curious. The moment Madame Defarge took up the rose, the |
|
customers ceased talking, and began gradually to drop out of the |
|
wine-shop. |
|
|
|
“Good day, madame,” said the new-comer. |
|
|
|
“Good day, monsieur.” |
|
|
|
She said it aloud, but added to herself, as she resumed her knitting: |
|
“Hah! Good day, age about forty, height about five feet nine, black |
|
hair, generally rather handsome visage, complexion dark, eyes dark, |
|
thin, long and sallow face, aquiline nose but not straight, having a |
|
peculiar inclination towards the left cheek which imparts a sinister |
|
expression! Good day, one and all!” |
|
|
|
“Have the goodness to give me a little glass of old cognac, and a |
|
mouthful of cool fresh water, madame.” |
|
|
|
Madame complied with a polite air. |
|
|
|
“Marvellous cognac this, madame!” |
|
|
|
It was the first time it had ever been so complimented, and Madame |
|
Defarge knew enough of its antecedents to know better. She said, |
|
however, that the cognac was flattered, and took up her knitting. The |
|
visitor watched her fingers for a few moments, and took the opportunity |
|
of observing the place in general. |
|
|
|
“You knit with great skill, madame.” |
|
|
|
“I am accustomed to it.” |
|
|
|
“A pretty pattern too!” |
|
|
|
“_You_ think so?” said madame, looking at him with a smile. |
|
|
|
“Decidedly. May one ask what it is for?” |
|
|
|
“Pastime,” said madame, still looking at him with a smile while her |
|
fingers moved nimbly. |
|
|
|
“Not for use?” |
|
|
|
“That depends. I may find a use for it one day. If I do--Well,” said |
|
madame, drawing a breath and nodding her head with a stern kind of |
|
coquetry, “I’ll use it!” |
|
|
|
It was remarkable; but, the taste of Saint Antoine seemed to be |
|
decidedly opposed to a rose on the head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two |
|
men had entered separately, and had been about to order drink, when, |
|
catching sight of that novelty, they faltered, made a pretence of |
|
looking about as if for some friend who was not there, and went away. |
|
Nor, of those who had been there when this visitor entered, was there |
|
one left. They had all dropped off. The spy had kept his eyes open, |
|
but had been able to detect no sign. They had lounged away in a |
|
poverty-stricken, purposeless, accidental manner, quite natural and |
|
unimpeachable. |
|
|
|
“_John_,” thought madame, checking off her work as her fingers knitted, |
|
and her eyes looked at the stranger. “Stay long enough, and I shall knit |
|
‘BARSAD’ before you go.” |
|
|
|
“You have a husband, madame?” |
|
|
|
“I have.” |
|
|
|
“Children?” |
|
|
|
“No children.” |
|
|
|
“Business seems bad?” |
|
|
|
“Business is very bad; the people are so poor.” |
|
|
|
“Ah, the unfortunate, miserable people! So oppressed, too--as you say.” |
|
|
|
“As _you_ say,” madame retorted, correcting him, and deftly knitting an |
|
extra something into his name that boded him no good. |
|
|
|
“Pardon me; certainly it was I who said so, but you naturally think so. |
|
Of course.” |
|
|
|
“_I_ think?” returned madame, in a high voice. “I and my husband have |
|
enough to do to keep this wine-shop open, without thinking. All we |
|
think, here, is how to live. That is the subject _we_ think of, and |
|
it gives us, from morning to night, enough to think about, without |
|
embarrassing our heads concerning others. _I_ think for others? No, no.” |
|
|
|
The spy, who was there to pick up any crumbs he could find or make, did |
|
not allow his baffled state to express itself in his sinister face; but, |
|
stood with an air of gossiping gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame |
|
Defarge’s little counter, and occasionally sipping his cognac. |
|
|
|
“A bad business this, madame, of Gaspard’s execution. Ah! the poor |
|
Gaspard!” With a sigh of great compassion. |
|
|
|
“My faith!” returned madame, coolly and lightly, “if people use knives |
|
for such purposes, they have to pay for it. He knew beforehand what the |
|
price of his luxury was; he has paid the price.” |
|
|
|
“I believe,” said the spy, dropping his soft voice to a tone |
|
that invited confidence, and expressing an injured revolutionary |
|
susceptibility in every muscle of his wicked face: “I believe there |
|
is much compassion and anger in this neighbourhood, touching the poor |
|
fellow? Between ourselves.” |
|
|
|
“Is there?” asked madame, vacantly. |
|
|
|
“Is there not?” |
|
|
|
“--Here is my husband!” said Madame Defarge. |
|
|
|
As the keeper of the wine-shop entered at the door, the spy saluted |
|
him by touching his hat, and saying, with an engaging smile, “Good day, |
|
Jacques!” Defarge stopped short, and stared at him. |
|
|
|
“Good day, Jacques!” the spy repeated; with not quite so much |
|
confidence, or quite so easy a smile under the stare. |
|
|
|
“You deceive yourself, monsieur,” returned the keeper of the wine-shop. |
|
“You mistake me for another. That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge.” |
|
|
|
“It is all the same,” said the spy, airily, but discomfited too: “good |
|
day!” |
|
|
|
“Good day!” answered Defarge, drily. |
|
|
|
“I was saying to madame, with whom I had the pleasure of chatting when |
|
you entered, that they tell me there is--and no wonder!--much sympathy |
|
and anger in Saint Antoine, touching the unhappy fate of poor Gaspard.” |
|
|
|
“No one has told me so,” said Defarge, shaking his head. “I know nothing |
|
of it.” |
|
|
|
Having said it, he passed behind the little counter, and stood with his |
|
hand on the back of his wife’s chair, looking over that barrier at the |
|
person to whom they were both opposed, and whom either of them would |
|
have shot with the greatest satisfaction. |
|
|
|
The spy, well used to his business, did not change his unconscious |
|
attitude, but drained his little glass of cognac, took a sip of fresh |
|
water, and asked for another glass of cognac. Madame Defarge poured it |
|
out for him, took to her knitting again, and hummed a little song over |
|
it. |
|
|
|
“You seem to know this quarter well; that is to say, better than I do?” |
|
observed Defarge. |
|
|
|
“Not at all, but I hope to know it better. I am so profoundly interested |
|
in its miserable inhabitants.” |
|
|
|
“Hah!” muttered Defarge. |
|
|
|
“The pleasure of conversing with you, Monsieur Defarge, recalls to me,” |
|
pursued the spy, “that I have the honour of cherishing some interesting |
|
associations with your name.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed!” said Defarge, with much indifference. |
|
|
|
“Yes, indeed. When Doctor Manette was released, you, his old domestic, |
|
had the charge of him, I know. He was delivered to you. You see I am |
|
informed of the circumstances?” |
|
|
|
“Such is the fact, certainly,” said Defarge. He had had it conveyed |
|
to him, in an accidental touch of his wife’s elbow as she knitted and |
|
warbled, that he would do best to answer, but always with brevity. |
|
|
|
“It was to you,” said the spy, “that his daughter came; and it was |
|
from your care that his daughter took him, accompanied by a neat brown |
|
monsieur; how is he called?--in a little wig--Lorry--of the bank of |
|
Tellson and Company--over to England.” |
|
|
|
“Such is the fact,” repeated Defarge. |
|
|
|
“Very interesting remembrances!” said the spy. “I have known Doctor |
|
Manette and his daughter, in England.” |
|
|
|
“Yes?” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
“You don’t hear much about them now?” said the spy. |
|
|
|
“No,” said Defarge. |
|
|
|
“In effect,” madame struck in, looking up from her work and her little |
|
song, “we never hear about them. We received the news of their safe |
|
arrival, and perhaps another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then, |
|
they have gradually taken their road in life--we, ours--and we have held |
|
no correspondence.” |
|
|
|
“Perfectly so, madame,” replied the spy. “She is going to be married.” |
|
|
|
“Going?” echoed madame. “She was pretty enough to have been married long |
|
ago. You English are cold, it seems to me.” |
|
|
|
“Oh! You know I am English.” |
|
|
|
“I perceive your tongue is,” returned madame; “and what the tongue is, I |
|
suppose the man is.” |
|
|
|
He did not take the identification as a compliment; but he made the best |
|
of it, and turned it off with a laugh. After sipping his cognac to the |
|
end, he added: |
|
|
|
“Yes, Miss Manette is going to be married. But not to an Englishman; to |
|
one who, like herself, is French by birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah, |
|
poor Gaspard! It was cruel, cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is |
|
going to marry the nephew of Monsieur the Marquis, for whom Gaspard |
|
was exalted to that height of so many feet; in other words, the present |
|
Marquis. But he lives unknown in England, he is no Marquis there; he is |
|
Mr. Charles Darnay. D’Aulnais is the name of his mother’s family.” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge knitted steadily, but the intelligence had a palpable |
|
effect upon her husband. Do what he would, behind the little counter, |
|
as to the striking of a light and the lighting of his pipe, he was |
|
troubled, and his hand was not trustworthy. The spy would have been no |
|
spy if he had failed to see it, or to record it in his mind. |
|
|
|
Having made, at least, this one hit, whatever it might prove to be |
|
worth, and no customers coming in to help him to any other, Mr. Barsad |
|
paid for what he had drunk, and took his leave: taking occasion to say, |
|
in a genteel manner, before he departed, that he looked forward to the |
|
pleasure of seeing Monsieur and Madame Defarge again. For some minutes |
|
after he had emerged into the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the |
|
husband and wife remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should |
|
come back. |
|
|
|
“Can it be true,” said Defarge, in a low voice, looking down at his wife |
|
as he stood smoking with his hand on the back of her chair: “what he has |
|
said of Ma’amselle Manette?” |
|
|
|
“As he has said it,” returned madame, lifting her eyebrows a little, “it |
|
is probably false. But it may be true.” |
|
|
|
“If it is--” Defarge began, and stopped. |
|
|
|
“If it is?” repeated his wife. |
|
|
|
“--And if it does come, while we live to see it triumph--I hope, for her |
|
sake, Destiny will keep her husband out of France.” |
|
|
|
“Her husband’s destiny,” said Madame Defarge, with her usual composure, |
|
“will take him where he is to go, and will lead him to the end that is |
|
to end him. That is all I know.” |
|
|
|
“But it is very strange--now, at least, is it not very strange”--said |
|
Defarge, rather pleading with his wife to induce her to admit it, |
|
“that, after all our sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her |
|
husband’s name should be proscribed under your hand at this moment, by |
|
the side of that infernal dog’s who has just left us?” |
|
|
|
“Stranger things than that will happen when it does come,” answered |
|
madame. “I have them both here, of a certainty; and they are both here |
|
for their merits; that is enough.” |
|
|
|
She rolled up her knitting when she had said those words, and presently |
|
took the rose out of the handkerchief that was wound about her head. |
|
Either Saint Antoine had an instinctive sense that the objectionable |
|
decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine was on the watch for its |
|
disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to lounge in, very |
|
shortly afterwards, and the wine-shop recovered its habitual aspect. |
|
|
|
In the evening, at which season of all others Saint Antoine turned |
|
himself inside out, and sat on door-steps and window-ledges, and came |
|
to the corners of vile streets and courts, for a breath of air, Madame |
|
Defarge with her work in her hand was accustomed to pass from place |
|
to place and from group to group: a Missionary--there were many like |
|
her--such as the world will do well never to breed again. All the women |
|
knitted. They knitted worthless things; but, the mechanical work was a |
|
mechanical substitute for eating and drinking; the hands moved for the |
|
jaws and the digestive apparatus: if the bony fingers had been still, |
|
the stomachs would have been more famine-pinched. |
|
|
|
But, as the fingers went, the eyes went, and the thoughts. And as Madame |
|
Defarge moved on from group to group, all three went quicker and fiercer |
|
among every little knot of women that she had spoken with, and left |
|
behind. |
|
|
|
Her husband smoked at his door, looking after her with admiration. “A |
|
great woman,” said he, “a strong woman, a grand woman, a frightfully |
|
grand woman!” |
|
|
|
Darkness closed around, and then came the ringing of church bells and |
|
the distant beating of the military drums in the Palace Courtyard, as |
|
the women sat knitting, knitting. Darkness encompassed them. Another |
|
darkness was closing in as surely, when the church bells, then ringing |
|
pleasantly in many an airy steeple over France, should be melted into |
|
thundering cannon; when the military drums should be beating to drown a |
|
wretched voice, that night all potent as the voice of Power and Plenty, |
|
Freedom and Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat |
|
knitting, knitting, that they their very selves were closing in around |
|
a structure yet unbuilt, where they were to sit knitting, knitting, |
|
counting dropping heads. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII. |
|
One Night |
|
|
|
|
|
Never did the sun go down with a brighter glory on the quiet corner in |
|
Soho, than one memorable evening when the Doctor and his daughter sat |
|
under the plane-tree together. Never did the moon rise with a milder |
|
radiance over great London, than on that night when it found them still |
|
seated under the tree, and shone upon their faces through its leaves. |
|
|
|
Lucie was to be married to-morrow. She had reserved this last evening |
|
for her father, and they sat alone under the plane-tree. |
|
|
|
“You are happy, my dear father?” |
|
|
|
“Quite, my child.” |
|
|
|
They had said little, though they had been there a long time. When it |
|
was yet light enough to work and read, she had neither engaged herself |
|
in her usual work, nor had she read to him. She had employed herself in |
|
both ways, at his side under the tree, many and many a time; but, this |
|
time was not quite like any other, and nothing could make it so. |
|
|
|
“And I am very happy to-night, dear father. I am deeply happy in the |
|
love that Heaven has so blessed--my love for Charles, and Charles’s love |
|
for me. But, if my life were not to be still consecrated to you, or |
|
if my marriage were so arranged as that it would part us, even by |
|
the length of a few of these streets, I should be more unhappy and |
|
self-reproachful now than I can tell you. Even as it is--” |
|
|
|
Even as it was, she could not command her voice. |
|
|
|
In the sad moonlight, she clasped him by the neck, and laid her face |
|
upon his breast. In the moonlight which is always sad, as the light of |
|
the sun itself is--as the light called human life is--at its coming and |
|
its going. |
|
|
|
“Dearest dear! Can you tell me, this last time, that you feel quite, |
|
quite sure, no new affections of mine, and no new duties of mine, will |
|
ever interpose between us? _I_ know it well, but do you know it? In your |
|
own heart, do you feel quite certain?” |
|
|
|
Her father answered, with a cheerful firmness of conviction he could |
|
scarcely have assumed, “Quite sure, my darling! More than that,” he |
|
added, as he tenderly kissed her: “my future is far brighter, Lucie, |
|
seen through your marriage, than it could have been--nay, than it ever |
|
was--without it.” |
|
|
|
“If I could hope _that_, my father!--” |
|
|
|
“Believe it, love! Indeed it is so. Consider how natural and how plain |
|
it is, my dear, that it should be so. You, devoted and young, cannot |
|
fully appreciate the anxiety I have felt that your life should not be |
|
wasted--” |
|
|
|
She moved her hand towards his lips, but he took it in his, and repeated |
|
the word. |
|
|
|
“--wasted, my child--should not be wasted, struck aside from the |
|
natural order of things--for my sake. Your unselfishness cannot entirely |
|
comprehend how much my mind has gone on this; but, only ask yourself, |
|
how could my happiness be perfect, while yours was incomplete?” |
|
|
|
“If I had never seen Charles, my father, I should have been quite happy |
|
with you.” |
|
|
|
He smiled at her unconscious admission that she would have been unhappy |
|
without Charles, having seen him; and replied: |
|
|
|
“My child, you did see him, and it is Charles. If it had not been |
|
Charles, it would have been another. Or, if it had been no other, I |
|
should have been the cause, and then the dark part of my life would have |
|
cast its shadow beyond myself, and would have fallen on you.” |
|
|
|
It was the first time, except at the trial, of her ever hearing him |
|
refer to the period of his suffering. It gave her a strange and new |
|
sensation while his words were in her ears; and she remembered it long |
|
afterwards. |
|
|
|
“See!” said the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his hand towards the moon. |
|
“I have looked at her from my prison-window, when I could not bear her |
|
light. I have looked at her when it has been such torture to me to think |
|
of her shining upon what I had lost, that I have beaten my head against |
|
my prison-walls. I have looked at her, in a state so dull and lethargic, |
|
that I have thought of nothing but the number of horizontal lines I |
|
could draw across her at the full, and the number of perpendicular lines |
|
with which I could intersect them.” He added in his inward and pondering |
|
manner, as he looked at the moon, “It was twenty either way, I remember, |
|
and the twentieth was difficult to squeeze in.” |
|
|
|
The strange thrill with which she heard him go back to that time, |
|
deepened as he dwelt upon it; but, there was nothing to shock her in |
|
the manner of his reference. He only seemed to contrast his present |
|
cheerfulness and felicity with the dire endurance that was over. |
|
|
|
“I have looked at her, speculating thousands of times upon the unborn |
|
child from whom I had been rent. Whether it was alive. Whether it had |
|
been born alive, or the poor mother’s shock had killed it. Whether it |
|
was a son who would some day avenge his father. (There was a time in my |
|
imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance was unbearable.) Whether it |
|
was a son who would never know his father’s story; who might even live |
|
to weigh the possibility of his father’s having disappeared of his own |
|
will and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to be a woman.” |
|
|
|
She drew closer to him, and kissed his cheek and his hand. |
|
|
|
“I have pictured my daughter, to myself, as perfectly forgetful of |
|
me--rather, altogether ignorant of me, and unconscious of me. I have |
|
cast up the years of her age, year after year. I have seen her married |
|
to a man who knew nothing of my fate. I have altogether perished from |
|
the remembrance of the living, and in the next generation my place was a |
|
blank.” |
|
|
|
“My father! Even to hear that you had such thoughts of a daughter who |
|
never existed, strikes to my heart as if I had been that child.” |
|
|
|
“You, Lucie? It is out of the Consolation and restoration you have |
|
brought to me, that these remembrances arise, and pass between us and |
|
the moon on this last night.--What did I say just now?” |
|
|
|
“She knew nothing of you. She cared nothing for you.” |
|
|
|
“So! But on other moonlight nights, when the sadness and the silence |
|
have touched me in a different way--have affected me with something as |
|
like a sorrowful sense of peace, as any emotion that had pain for its |
|
foundations could--I have imagined her as coming to me in my cell, and |
|
leading me out into the freedom beyond the fortress. I have seen her |
|
image in the moonlight often, as I now see you; except that I never held |
|
her in my arms; it stood between the little grated window and the door. |
|
But, you understand that that was not the child I am speaking of?” |
|
|
|
“The figure was not; the--the--image; the fancy?” |
|
|
|
“No. That was another thing. It stood before my disturbed sense of |
|
sight, but it never moved. The phantom that my mind pursued, was another |
|
and more real child. Of her outward appearance I know no more than |
|
that she was like her mother. The other had that likeness too--as you |
|
have--but was not the same. Can you follow me, Lucie? Hardly, I think? |
|
I doubt you must have been a solitary prisoner to understand these |
|
perplexed distinctions.” |
|
|
|
His collected and calm manner could not prevent her blood from running |
|
cold, as he thus tried to anatomise his old condition. |
|
|
|
“In that more peaceful state, I have imagined her, in the moonlight, |
|
coming to me and taking me out to show me that the home of her married |
|
life was full of her loving remembrance of her lost father. My picture |
|
was in her room, and I was in her prayers. Her life was active, |
|
cheerful, useful; but my poor history pervaded it all.” |
|
|
|
“I was that child, my father, I was not half so good, but in my love |
|
that was I.” |
|
|
|
“And she showed me her children,” said the Doctor of Beauvais, “and |
|
they had heard of me, and had been taught to pity me. When they passed |
|
a prison of the State, they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked |
|
up at its bars, and spoke in whispers. She could never deliver me; I |
|
imagined that she always brought me back after showing me such things. |
|
But then, blessed with the relief of tears, I fell upon my knees, and |
|
blessed her.” |
|
|
|
“I am that child, I hope, my father. O my dear, my dear, will you bless |
|
me as fervently to-morrow?” |
|
|
|
“Lucie, I recall these old troubles in the reason that I have to-night |
|
for loving you better than words can tell, and thanking God for my great |
|
happiness. My thoughts, when they were wildest, never rose near the |
|
happiness that I have known with you, and that we have before us.” |
|
|
|
He embraced her, solemnly commended her to Heaven, and humbly thanked |
|
Heaven for having bestowed her on him. By-and-bye, they went into the |
|
house. |
|
|
|
There was no one bidden to the marriage but Mr. Lorry; there was even to |
|
be no bridesmaid but the gaunt Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no |
|
change in their place of residence; they had been able to extend it, |
|
by taking to themselves the upper rooms formerly belonging to the |
|
apocryphal invisible lodger, and they desired nothing more. |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette was very cheerful at the little supper. They were only |
|
three at table, and Miss Pross made the third. He regretted that Charles |
|
was not there; was more than half disposed to object to the loving |
|
little plot that kept him away; and drank to him affectionately. |
|
|
|
So, the time came for him to bid Lucie good night, and they separated. |
|
But, in the stillness of the third hour of the morning, Lucie came |
|
downstairs again, and stole into his room; not free from unshaped fears, |
|
beforehand. |
|
|
|
All things, however, were in their places; all was quiet; and he lay |
|
asleep, his white hair picturesque on the untroubled pillow, and his |
|
hands lying quiet on the coverlet. She put her needless candle in the |
|
shadow at a distance, crept up to his bed, and put her lips to his; |
|
then, leaned over him, and looked at him. |
|
|
|
Into his handsome face, the bitter waters of captivity had worn; but, he |
|
covered up their tracks with a determination so strong, that he held the |
|
mastery of them even in his sleep. A more remarkable face in its quiet, |
|
resolute, and guarded struggle with an unseen assailant, was not to be |
|
beheld in all the wide dominions of sleep, that night. |
|
|
|
She timidly laid her hand on his dear breast, and put up a prayer that |
|
she might ever be as true to him as her love aspired to be, and as his |
|
sorrows deserved. Then, she withdrew her hand, and kissed his lips once |
|
more, and went away. So, the sunrise came, and the shadows of the leaves |
|
of the plane-tree moved upon his face, as softly as her lips had moved |
|
in praying for him. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII. |
|
Nine Days |
|
|
|
|
|
The marriage-day was shining brightly, and they were ready outside the |
|
closed door of the Doctor’s room, where he was speaking with Charles |
|
Darnay. They were ready to go to church; the beautiful bride, Mr. |
|
Lorry, and Miss Pross--to whom the event, through a gradual process of |
|
reconcilement to the inevitable, would have been one of absolute bliss, |
|
but for the yet lingering consideration that her brother Solomon should |
|
have been the bridegroom. |
|
|
|
“And so,” said Mr. Lorry, who could not sufficiently admire the bride, |
|
and who had been moving round her to take in every point of her quiet, |
|
pretty dress; “and so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I brought |
|
you across the Channel, such a baby! Lord bless me! How little I thought |
|
what I was doing! How lightly I valued the obligation I was conferring |
|
on my friend Mr. Charles!” |
|
|
|
“You didn’t mean it,” remarked the matter-of-fact Miss Pross, “and |
|
therefore how could you know it? Nonsense!” |
|
|
|
“Really? Well; but don’t cry,” said the gentle Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“I am not crying,” said Miss Pross; “_you_ are.” |
|
|
|
“I, my Pross?” (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be pleasant with her, |
|
on occasion.) |
|
|
|
“You were, just now; I saw you do it, and I don’t wonder at it. Such |
|
a present of plate as you have made ’em, is enough to bring tears into |
|
anybody’s eyes. There’s not a fork or a spoon in the collection,” said |
|
Miss Pross, “that I didn’t cry over, last night after the box came, till |
|
I couldn’t see it.” |
|
|
|
“I am highly gratified,” said Mr. Lorry, “though, upon my honour, I |
|
had no intention of rendering those trifling articles of remembrance |
|
invisible to any one. Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man |
|
speculate on all he has lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there |
|
might have been a Mrs. Lorry, any time these fifty years almost!” |
|
|
|
“Not at all!” From Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“You think there never might have been a Mrs. Lorry?” asked the |
|
gentleman of that name. |
|
|
|
“Pooh!” rejoined Miss Pross; “you were a bachelor in your cradle.” |
|
|
|
“Well!” observed Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his little wig, “that |
|
seems probable, too.” |
|
|
|
“And you were cut out for a bachelor,” pursued Miss Pross, “before you |
|
were put in your cradle.” |
|
|
|
“Then, I think,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was very unhandsomely dealt |
|
with, and that I ought to have had a voice in the selection of my |
|
pattern. Enough! Now, my dear Lucie,” drawing his arm soothingly round |
|
her waist, “I hear them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and |
|
I, as two formal folks of business, are anxious not to lose the final |
|
opportunity of saying something to you that you wish to hear. You leave |
|
your good father, my dear, in hands as earnest and as loving as your |
|
own; he shall be taken every conceivable care of; during the next |
|
fortnight, while you are in Warwickshire and thereabouts, even Tellson’s |
|
shall go to the wall (comparatively speaking) before him. And when, at |
|
the fortnight’s end, he comes to join you and your beloved husband, on |
|
your other fortnight’s trip in Wales, you shall say that we have sent |
|
him to you in the best health and in the happiest frame. Now, I hear |
|
Somebody’s step coming to the door. Let me kiss my dear girl with an |
|
old-fashioned bachelor blessing, before Somebody comes to claim his |
|
own.” |
|
|
|
For a moment, he held the fair face from him to look at the |
|
well-remembered expression on the forehead, and then laid the bright |
|
golden hair against his little brown wig, with a genuine tenderness and |
|
delicacy which, if such things be old-fashioned, were as old as Adam. |
|
|
|
The door of the Doctor’s room opened, and he came out with Charles |
|
Darnay. He was so deadly pale--which had not been the case when they |
|
went in together--that no vestige of colour was to be seen in his face. |
|
But, in the composure of his manner he was unaltered, except that to the |
|
shrewd glance of Mr. Lorry it disclosed some shadowy indication that the |
|
old air of avoidance and dread had lately passed over him, like a cold |
|
wind. |
|
|
|
He gave his arm to his daughter, and took her down-stairs to the chariot |
|
which Mr. Lorry had hired in honour of the day. The rest followed in |
|
another carriage, and soon, in a neighbouring church, where no strange |
|
eyes looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette were happily married. |
|
|
|
Besides the glancing tears that shone among the smiles of the little |
|
group when it was done, some diamonds, very bright and sparkling, |
|
glanced on the bride’s hand, which were newly released from the |
|
dark obscurity of one of Mr. Lorry’s pockets. They returned home to |
|
breakfast, and all went well, and in due course the golden hair that had |
|
mingled with the poor shoemaker’s white locks in the Paris garret, were |
|
mingled with them again in the morning sunlight, on the threshold of the |
|
door at parting. |
|
|
|
It was a hard parting, though it was not for long. But her father |
|
cheered her, and said at last, gently disengaging himself from her |
|
enfolding arms, “Take her, Charles! She is yours!” |
|
|
|
And her agitated hand waved to them from a chaise window, and she was |
|
gone. |
|
|
|
The corner being out of the way of the idle and curious, and the |
|
preparations having been very simple and few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry, |
|
and Miss Pross, were left quite alone. It was when they turned into |
|
the welcome shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry observed a great |
|
change to have come over the Doctor; as if the golden arm uplifted |
|
there, had struck him a poisoned blow. |
|
|
|
He had naturally repressed much, and some revulsion might have been |
|
expected in him when the occasion for repression was gone. But, it was |
|
the old scared lost look that troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent |
|
manner of clasping his head and drearily wandering away into his own |
|
room when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry was reminded of Defarge the |
|
wine-shop keeper, and the starlight ride. |
|
|
|
“I think,” he whispered to Miss Pross, after anxious consideration, “I |
|
think we had best not speak to him just now, or at all disturb him. |
|
I must look in at Tellson’s; so I will go there at once and come back |
|
presently. Then, we will take him a ride into the country, and dine |
|
there, and all will be well.” |
|
|
|
It was easier for Mr. Lorry to look in at Tellson’s, than to look out of |
|
Tellson’s. He was detained two hours. When he came back, he ascended the |
|
old staircase alone, having asked no question of the servant; going thus |
|
into the Doctor’s rooms, he was stopped by a low sound of knocking. |
|
|
|
“Good God!” he said, with a start. “What’s that?” |
|
|
|
Miss Pross, with a terrified face, was at his ear. “O me, O me! All is |
|
lost!” cried she, wringing her hands. “What is to be told to Ladybird? |
|
He doesn’t know me, and is making shoes!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry said what he could to calm her, and went himself into the |
|
Doctor’s room. The bench was turned towards the light, as it had been |
|
when he had seen the shoemaker at his work before, and his head was bent |
|
down, and he was very busy. |
|
|
|
“Doctor Manette. My dear friend, Doctor Manette!” |
|
|
|
The Doctor looked at him for a moment--half inquiringly, half as if he |
|
were angry at being spoken to--and bent over his work again. |
|
|
|
He had laid aside his coat and waistcoat; his shirt was open at the |
|
throat, as it used to be when he did that work; and even the old |
|
haggard, faded surface of face had come back to him. He worked |
|
hard--impatiently--as if in some sense of having been interrupted. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry glanced at the work in his hand, and observed that it was a |
|
shoe of the old size and shape. He took up another that was lying by |
|
him, and asked what it was. |
|
|
|
“A young lady’s walking shoe,” he muttered, without looking up. “It |
|
ought to have been finished long ago. Let it be.” |
|
|
|
“But, Doctor Manette. Look at me!” |
|
|
|
He obeyed, in the old mechanically submissive manner, without pausing in |
|
his work. |
|
|
|
“You know me, my dear friend? Think again. This is not your proper |
|
occupation. Think, dear friend!” |
|
|
|
Nothing would induce him to speak more. He looked up, for an instant at |
|
a time, when he was requested to do so; but, no persuasion would extract |
|
a word from him. He worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and |
|
words fell on him as they would have fallen on an echoless wall, or on |
|
the air. The only ray of hope that Mr. Lorry could discover, was, that |
|
he sometimes furtively looked up without being asked. In that, there |
|
seemed a faint expression of curiosity or perplexity--as though he were |
|
trying to reconcile some doubts in his mind. |
|
|
|
Two things at once impressed themselves on Mr. Lorry, as important above |
|
all others; the first, that this must be kept secret from Lucie; |
|
the second, that it must be kept secret from all who knew him. In |
|
conjunction with Miss Pross, he took immediate steps towards the latter |
|
precaution, by giving out that the Doctor was not well, and required a |
|
few days of complete rest. In aid of the kind deception to be practised |
|
on his daughter, Miss Pross was to write, describing his having been |
|
called away professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter of |
|
two or three hurried lines in his own hand, represented to have been |
|
addressed to her by the same post. |
|
|
|
These measures, advisable to be taken in any case, Mr. Lorry took in |
|
the hope of his coming to himself. If that should happen soon, he kept |
|
another course in reserve; which was, to have a certain opinion that he |
|
thought the best, on the Doctor’s case. |
|
|
|
In the hope of his recovery, and of resort to this third course |
|
being thereby rendered practicable, Mr. Lorry resolved to watch him |
|
attentively, with as little appearance as possible of doing so. He |
|
therefore made arrangements to absent himself from Tellson’s for the |
|
first time in his life, and took his post by the window in the same |
|
room. |
|
|
|
He was not long in discovering that it was worse than useless to speak |
|
to him, since, on being pressed, he became worried. He abandoned that |
|
attempt on the first day, and resolved merely to keep himself always |
|
before him, as a silent protest against the delusion into which he had |
|
fallen, or was falling. He remained, therefore, in his seat near the |
|
window, reading and writing, and expressing in as many pleasant and |
|
natural ways as he could think of, that it was a free place. |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette took what was given him to eat and drink, and worked on, |
|
that first day, until it was too dark to see--worked on, half an hour |
|
after Mr. Lorry could not have seen, for his life, to read or write. |
|
When he put his tools aside as useless, until morning, Mr. Lorry rose |
|
and said to him: |
|
|
|
“Will you go out?” |
|
|
|
He looked down at the floor on either side of him in the old manner, |
|
looked up in the old manner, and repeated in the old low voice: |
|
|
|
“Out?” |
|
|
|
“Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?” |
|
|
|
He made no effort to say why not, and said not a word more. But, Mr. |
|
Lorry thought he saw, as he leaned forward on his bench in the dusk, |
|
with his elbows on his knees and his head in his hands, that he was in |
|
some misty way asking himself, “Why not?” The sagacity of the man of |
|
business perceived an advantage here, and determined to hold it. |
|
|
|
Miss Pross and he divided the night into two watches, and observed him |
|
at intervals from the adjoining room. He paced up and down for a long |
|
time before he lay down; but, when he did finally lay himself down, he |
|
fell asleep. In the morning, he was up betimes, and went straight to his |
|
bench and to work. |
|
|
|
On this second day, Mr. Lorry saluted him cheerfully by his name, |
|
and spoke to him on topics that had been of late familiar to them. He |
|
returned no reply, but it was evident that he heard what was said, and |
|
that he thought about it, however confusedly. This encouraged Mr. Lorry |
|
to have Miss Pross in with her work, several times during the day; |
|
at those times, they quietly spoke of Lucie, and of her father then |
|
present, precisely in the usual manner, and as if there were nothing |
|
amiss. This was done without any demonstrative accompaniment, not long |
|
enough, or often enough to harass him; and it lightened Mr. Lorry’s |
|
friendly heart to believe that he looked up oftener, and that he |
|
appeared to be stirred by some perception of inconsistencies surrounding |
|
him. |
|
|
|
When it fell dark again, Mr. Lorry asked him as before: |
|
|
|
“Dear Doctor, will you go out?” |
|
|
|
As before, he repeated, “Out?” |
|
|
|
“Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?” |
|
|
|
This time, Mr. Lorry feigned to go out when he could extract no answer |
|
from him, and, after remaining absent for an hour, returned. In the |
|
meanwhile, the Doctor had removed to the seat in the window, and had |
|
sat there looking down at the plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry’s return, he |
|
slipped away to his bench. |
|
|
|
The time went very slowly on, and Mr. Lorry’s hope darkened, and his |
|
heart grew heavier again, and grew yet heavier and heavier every day. |
|
The third day came and went, the fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days, |
|
seven days, eight days, nine days. |
|
|
|
With a hope ever darkening, and with a heart always growing heavier and |
|
heavier, Mr. Lorry passed through this anxious time. The secret was |
|
well kept, and Lucie was unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to |
|
observe that the shoemaker, whose hand had been a little out at first, |
|
was growing dreadfully skilful, and that he had never been so intent on |
|
his work, and that his hands had never been so nimble and expert, as in |
|
the dusk of the ninth evening. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX. |
|
An Opinion |
|
|
|
|
|
Worn out by anxious watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep at his post. On the |
|
tenth morning of his suspense, he was startled by the shining of the sun |
|
into the room where a heavy slumber had overtaken him when it was dark |
|
night. |
|
|
|
He rubbed his eyes and roused himself; but he doubted, when he had |
|
done so, whether he was not still asleep. For, going to the door of the |
|
Doctor’s room and looking in, he perceived that the shoemaker’s bench |
|
and tools were put aside again, and that the Doctor himself sat reading |
|
at the window. He was in his usual morning dress, and his face (which |
|
Mr. Lorry could distinctly see), though still very pale, was calmly |
|
studious and attentive. |
|
|
|
Even when he had satisfied himself that he was awake, Mr. Lorry felt |
|
giddily uncertain for some few moments whether the late shoemaking might |
|
not be a disturbed dream of his own; for, did not his eyes show him his |
|
friend before him in his accustomed clothing and aspect, and employed |
|
as usual; and was there any sign within their range, that the change of |
|
which he had so strong an impression had actually happened? |
|
|
|
It was but the inquiry of his first confusion and astonishment, the |
|
answer being obvious. If the impression were not produced by a real |
|
corresponding and sufficient cause, how came he, Jarvis Lorry, there? |
|
How came he to have fallen asleep, in his clothes, on the sofa in Doctor |
|
Manette’s consulting-room, and to be debating these points outside the |
|
Doctor’s bedroom door in the early morning? |
|
|
|
Within a few minutes, Miss Pross stood whispering at his side. If he |
|
had had any particle of doubt left, her talk would of necessity have |
|
resolved it; but he was by that time clear-headed, and had none. |
|
He advised that they should let the time go by until the regular |
|
breakfast-hour, and should then meet the Doctor as if nothing unusual |
|
had occurred. If he appeared to be in his customary state of mind, Mr. |
|
Lorry would then cautiously proceed to seek direction and guidance from |
|
the opinion he had been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain. |
|
|
|
Miss Pross, submitting herself to his judgment, the scheme was worked |
|
out with care. Having abundance of time for his usual methodical |
|
toilette, Mr. Lorry presented himself at the breakfast-hour in his usual |
|
white linen, and with his usual neat leg. The Doctor was summoned in the |
|
usual way, and came to breakfast. |
|
|
|
So far as it was possible to comprehend him without overstepping those |
|
delicate and gradual approaches which Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe |
|
advance, he at first supposed that his daughter’s marriage had taken |
|
place yesterday. An incidental allusion, purposely thrown out, to |
|
the day of the week, and the day of the month, set him thinking and |
|
counting, and evidently made him uneasy. In all other respects, however, |
|
he was so composedly himself, that Mr. Lorry determined to have the aid |
|
he sought. And that aid was his own. |
|
|
|
Therefore, when the breakfast was done and cleared away, and he and the |
|
Doctor were left together, Mr. Lorry said, feelingly: |
|
|
|
“My dear Manette, I am anxious to have your opinion, in confidence, on a |
|
very curious case in which I am deeply interested; that is to say, it is |
|
very curious to me; perhaps, to your better information it may be less |
|
so.” |
|
|
|
Glancing at his hands, which were discoloured by his late work, the |
|
Doctor looked troubled, and listened attentively. He had already glanced |
|
at his hands more than once. |
|
|
|
“Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, touching him affectionately on the |
|
arm, “the case is the case of a particularly dear friend of mine. Pray |
|
give your mind to it, and advise me well for his sake--and above all, |
|
for his daughter’s--his daughter’s, my dear Manette.” |
|
|
|
“If I understand,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, “some mental |
|
shock--?” |
|
|
|
“Yes!” |
|
|
|
“Be explicit,” said the Doctor. “Spare no detail.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry saw that they understood one another, and proceeded. |
|
|
|
“My dear Manette, it is the case of an old and a prolonged shock, |
|
of great acuteness and severity to the affections, the feelings, |
|
the--the--as you express it--the mind. The mind. It is the case of a |
|
shock under which the sufferer was borne down, one cannot say for how |
|
long, because I believe he cannot calculate the time himself, and there |
|
are no other means of getting at it. It is the case of a shock from |
|
which the sufferer recovered, by a process that he cannot trace |
|
himself--as I once heard him publicly relate in a striking manner. It is |
|
the case of a shock from which he has recovered, so completely, as to |
|
be a highly intelligent man, capable of close application of mind, and |
|
great exertion of body, and of constantly making fresh additions to his |
|
stock of knowledge, which was already very large. But, unfortunately, |
|
there has been,” he paused and took a deep breath--“a slight relapse.” |
|
|
|
The Doctor, in a low voice, asked, “Of how long duration?” |
|
|
|
“Nine days and nights.” |
|
|
|
“How did it show itself? I infer,” glancing at his hands again, “in the |
|
resumption of some old pursuit connected with the shock?” |
|
|
|
“That is the fact.” |
|
|
|
“Now, did you ever see him,” asked the Doctor, distinctly and |
|
collectedly, though in the same low voice, “engaged in that pursuit |
|
originally?” |
|
|
|
“Once.” |
|
|
|
“And when the relapse fell on him, was he in most respects--or in all |
|
respects--as he was then?” |
|
|
|
“I think in all respects.” |
|
|
|
“You spoke of his daughter. Does his daughter know of the relapse?” |
|
|
|
“No. It has been kept from her, and I hope will always be kept from her. |
|
It is known only to myself, and to one other who may be trusted.” |
|
|
|
The Doctor grasped his hand, and murmured, “That was very kind. That was |
|
very thoughtful!” Mr. Lorry grasped his hand in return, and neither of |
|
the two spoke for a little while. |
|
|
|
“Now, my dear Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, at length, in his most |
|
considerate and most affectionate way, “I am a mere man of business, |
|
and unfit to cope with such intricate and difficult matters. I do not |
|
possess the kind of information necessary; I do not possess the kind of |
|
intelligence; I want guiding. There is no man in this world on whom |
|
I could so rely for right guidance, as on you. Tell me, how does this |
|
relapse come about? Is there danger of another? Could a repetition of it |
|
be prevented? How should a repetition of it be treated? How does it come |
|
about at all? What can I do for my friend? No man ever can have been |
|
more desirous in his heart to serve a friend, than I am to serve mine, |
|
if I knew how. |
|
|
|
“But I don’t know how to originate, in such a case. If your sagacity, |
|
knowledge, and experience, could put me on the right track, I might be |
|
able to do so much; unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little. |
|
Pray discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little more clearly, |
|
and teach me how to be a little more useful.” |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette sat meditating after these earnest words were spoken, and |
|
Mr. Lorry did not press him. |
|
|
|
“I think it probable,” said the Doctor, breaking silence with an effort, |
|
“that the relapse you have described, my dear friend, was not quite |
|
unforeseen by its subject.” |
|
|
|
“Was it dreaded by him?” Mr. Lorry ventured to ask. |
|
|
|
“Very much.” He said it with an involuntary shudder. |
|
|
|
“You have no idea how such an apprehension weighs on the sufferer’s |
|
mind, and how difficult--how almost impossible--it is, for him to force |
|
himself to utter a word upon the topic that oppresses him.” |
|
|
|
“Would he,” asked Mr. Lorry, “be sensibly relieved if he could prevail |
|
upon himself to impart that secret brooding to any one, when it is on |
|
him?” |
|
|
|
“I think so. But it is, as I have told you, next to impossible. I even |
|
believe it--in some cases--to be quite impossible.” |
|
|
|
“Now,” said Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on the Doctor’s arm again, |
|
after a short silence on both sides, “to what would you refer this |
|
attack?” |
|
|
|
“I believe,” returned Doctor Manette, “that there had been a strong and |
|
extraordinary revival of the train of thought and remembrance that |
|
was the first cause of the malady. Some intense associations of a most |
|
distressing nature were vividly recalled, I think. It is probable that |
|
there had long been a dread lurking in his mind, that those associations |
|
would be recalled--say, under certain circumstances--say, on a |
|
particular occasion. He tried to prepare himself in vain; perhaps the |
|
effort to prepare himself made him less able to bear it.” |
|
|
|
“Would he remember what took place in the relapse?” asked Mr. Lorry, |
|
with natural hesitation. |
|
|
|
The Doctor looked desolately round the room, shook his head, and |
|
answered, in a low voice, “Not at all.” |
|
|
|
“Now, as to the future,” hinted Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“As to the future,” said the Doctor, recovering firmness, “I should have |
|
great hope. As it pleased Heaven in its mercy to restore him so soon, I |
|
should have great hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated |
|
something, long dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and contended against, |
|
and recovering after the cloud had burst and passed, I should hope that |
|
the worst was over.” |
|
|
|
“Well, well! That’s good comfort. I am thankful!” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“I am thankful!” repeated the Doctor, bending his head with reverence. |
|
|
|
“There are two other points,” said Mr. Lorry, “on which I am anxious to |
|
be instructed. I may go on?” |
|
|
|
“You cannot do your friend a better service.” The Doctor gave him his |
|
hand. |
|
|
|
“To the first, then. He is of a studious habit, and unusually energetic; |
|
he applies himself with great ardour to the acquisition of professional |
|
knowledge, to the conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does |
|
he do too much?” |
|
|
|
“I think not. It may be the character of his mind, to be always in |
|
singular need of occupation. That may be, in part, natural to it; in |
|
part, the result of affliction. The less it was occupied with healthy |
|
things, the more it would be in danger of turning in the unhealthy |
|
direction. He may have observed himself, and made the discovery.” |
|
|
|
“You are sure that he is not under too great a strain?” |
|
|
|
“I think I am quite sure of it.” |
|
|
|
“My dear Manette, if he were overworked now--” |
|
|
|
“My dear Lorry, I doubt if that could easily be. There has been a |
|
violent stress in one direction, and it needs a counterweight.” |
|
|
|
“Excuse me, as a persistent man of business. Assuming for a moment, |
|
that he _was_ overworked; it would show itself in some renewal of this |
|
disorder?” |
|
|
|
“I do not think so. I do not think,” said Doctor Manette with the |
|
firmness of self-conviction, “that anything but the one train of |
|
association would renew it. I think that, henceforth, nothing but some |
|
extraordinary jarring of that chord could renew it. After what has |
|
happened, and after his recovery, I find it difficult to imagine any |
|
such violent sounding of that string again. I trust, and I almost |
|
believe, that the circumstances likely to renew it are exhausted.” |
|
|
|
He spoke with the diffidence of a man who knew how slight a thing |
|
would overset the delicate organisation of the mind, and yet with the |
|
confidence of a man who had slowly won his assurance out of personal |
|
endurance and distress. It was not for his friend to abate that |
|
confidence. He professed himself more relieved and encouraged than he |
|
really was, and approached his second and last point. He felt it to |
|
be the most difficult of all; but, remembering his old Sunday morning |
|
conversation with Miss Pross, and remembering what he had seen in the |
|
last nine days, he knew that he must face it. |
|
|
|
“The occupation resumed under the influence of this passing affliction |
|
so happily recovered from,” said Mr. Lorry, clearing his throat, “we |
|
will call--Blacksmith’s work, Blacksmith’s work. We will say, to put a |
|
case and for the sake of illustration, that he had been used, in his bad |
|
time, to work at a little forge. We will say that he was unexpectedly |
|
found at his forge again. Is it not a pity that he should keep it by |
|
him?” |
|
|
|
The Doctor shaded his forehead with his hand, and beat his foot |
|
nervously on the ground. |
|
|
|
“He has always kept it by him,” said Mr. Lorry, with an anxious look at |
|
his friend. “Now, would it not be better that he should let it go?” |
|
|
|
Still, the Doctor, with shaded forehead, beat his foot nervously on the |
|
ground. |
|
|
|
“You do not find it easy to advise me?” said Mr. Lorry. “I quite |
|
understand it to be a nice question. And yet I think--” And there he |
|
shook his head, and stopped. |
|
|
|
“You see,” said Doctor Manette, turning to him after an uneasy pause, |
|
“it is very hard to explain, consistently, the innermost workings |
|
of this poor man’s mind. He once yearned so frightfully for that |
|
occupation, and it was so welcome when it came; no doubt it relieved |
|
his pain so much, by substituting the perplexity of the fingers for |
|
the perplexity of the brain, and by substituting, as he became more |
|
practised, the ingenuity of the hands, for the ingenuity of the mental |
|
torture; that he has never been able to bear the thought of putting it |
|
quite out of his reach. Even now, when I believe he is more hopeful of |
|
himself than he has ever been, and even speaks of himself with a kind |
|
of confidence, the idea that he might need that old employment, and not |
|
find it, gives him a sudden sense of terror, like that which one may |
|
fancy strikes to the heart of a lost child.” |
|
|
|
He looked like his illustration, as he raised his eyes to Mr. Lorry’s |
|
face. |
|
|
|
“But may not--mind! I ask for information, as a plodding man of business |
|
who only deals with such material objects as guineas, shillings, and |
|
bank-notes--may not the retention of the thing involve the retention of |
|
the idea? If the thing were gone, my dear Manette, might not the fear go |
|
with it? In short, is it not a concession to the misgiving, to keep the |
|
forge?” |
|
|
|
There was another silence. |
|
|
|
“You see, too,” said the Doctor, tremulously, “it is such an old |
|
companion.” |
|
|
|
“I would not keep it,” said Mr. Lorry, shaking his head; for he gained |
|
in firmness as he saw the Doctor disquieted. “I would recommend him to |
|
sacrifice it. I only want your authority. I am sure it does no good. |
|
Come! Give me your authority, like a dear good man. For his daughter’s |
|
sake, my dear Manette!” |
|
|
|
Very strange to see what a struggle there was within him! |
|
|
|
“In her name, then, let it be done; I sanction it. But, I would not take |
|
it away while he was present. Let it be removed when he is not there; |
|
let him miss his old companion after an absence.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry readily engaged for that, and the conference was ended. They |
|
passed the day in the country, and the Doctor was quite restored. On the |
|
three following days he remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth |
|
day he went away to join Lucie and her husband. The precaution that |
|
had been taken to account for his silence, Mr. Lorry had previously |
|
explained to him, and he had written to Lucie in accordance with it, and |
|
she had no suspicions. |
|
|
|
On the night of the day on which he left the house, Mr. Lorry went into |
|
his room with a chopper, saw, chisel, and hammer, attended by Miss Pross |
|
carrying a light. There, with closed doors, and in a mysterious and |
|
guilty manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker’s bench to pieces, while |
|
Miss Pross held the candle as if she were assisting at a murder--for |
|
which, indeed, in her grimness, she was no unsuitable figure. The |
|
burning of the body (previously reduced to pieces convenient for the |
|
purpose) was commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the tools, |
|
shoes, and leather, were buried in the garden. So wicked do destruction |
|
and secrecy appear to honest minds, that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross, |
|
while engaged in the commission of their deed and in the removal of its |
|
traces, almost felt, and almost looked, like accomplices in a horrible |
|
crime. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX. |
|
A Plea |
|
|
|
|
|
When the newly-married pair came home, the first person who appeared, to |
|
offer his congratulations, was Sydney Carton. They had not been at home |
|
many hours, when he presented himself. He was not improved in habits, or |
|
in looks, or in manner; but there was a certain rugged air of fidelity |
|
about him, which was new to the observation of Charles Darnay. |
|
|
|
He watched his opportunity of taking Darnay aside into a window, and of |
|
speaking to him when no one overheard. |
|
|
|
“Mr. Darnay,” said Carton, “I wish we might be friends.” |
|
|
|
“We are already friends, I hope.” |
|
|
|
“You are good enough to say so, as a fashion of speech; but, I don’t |
|
mean any fashion of speech. Indeed, when I say I wish we might be |
|
friends, I scarcely mean quite that, either.” |
|
|
|
Charles Darnay--as was natural--asked him, in all good-humour and |
|
good-fellowship, what he did mean? |
|
|
|
“Upon my life,” said Carton, smiling, “I find that easier to comprehend |
|
in my own mind, than to convey to yours. However, let me try. You |
|
remember a certain famous occasion when I was more drunk than--than |
|
usual?” |
|
|
|
“I remember a certain famous occasion when you forced me to confess that |
|
you had been drinking.” |
|
|
|
“I remember it too. The curse of those occasions is heavy upon me, for I |
|
always remember them. I hope it may be taken into account one day, |
|
when all days are at an end for me! Don’t be alarmed; I am not going to |
|
preach.” |
|
|
|
“I am not at all alarmed. Earnestness in you, is anything but alarming |
|
to me.” |
|
|
|
“Ah!” said Carton, with a careless wave of his hand, as if he waved that |
|
away. “On the drunken occasion in question (one of a large number, as |
|
you know), I was insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I |
|
wish you would forget it.” |
|
|
|
“I forgot it long ago.” |
|
|
|
“Fashion of speech again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion is not so easy to |
|
me, as you represent it to be to you. I have by no means forgotten it, |
|
and a light answer does not help me to forget it.” |
|
|
|
“If it was a light answer,” returned Darnay, “I beg your forgiveness |
|
for it. I had no other object than to turn a slight thing, which, to my |
|
surprise, seems to trouble you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the |
|
faith of a gentleman, that I have long dismissed it from my mind. Good |
|
Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I had nothing more important to |
|
remember, in the great service you rendered me that day?” |
|
|
|
“As to the great service,” said Carton, “I am bound to avow to you, when |
|
you speak of it in that way, that it was mere professional claptrap, I |
|
don’t know that I cared what became of you, when I rendered it.--Mind! I |
|
say when I rendered it; I am speaking of the past.” |
|
|
|
“You make light of the obligation,” returned Darnay, “but I will not |
|
quarrel with _your_ light answer.” |
|
|
|
“Genuine truth, Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone aside from my purpose; |
|
I was speaking about our being friends. Now, you know me; you know I am |
|
incapable of all the higher and better flights of men. If you doubt it, |
|
ask Stryver, and he’ll tell you so.” |
|
|
|
“I prefer to form my own opinion, without the aid of his.” |
|
|
|
“Well! At any rate you know me as a dissolute dog, who has never done |
|
any good, and never will.” |
|
|
|
“I don’t know that you ‘never will.’” |
|
|
|
“But I do, and you must take my word for it. Well! If you could endure |
|
to have such a worthless fellow, and a fellow of such indifferent |
|
reputation, coming and going at odd times, I should ask that I might be |
|
permitted to come and go as a privileged person here; that I might |
|
be regarded as an useless (and I would add, if it were not for the |
|
resemblance I detected between you and me, an unornamental) piece of |
|
furniture, tolerated for its old service, and taken no notice of. I |
|
doubt if I should abuse the permission. It is a hundred to one if I |
|
should avail myself of it four times in a year. It would satisfy me, I |
|
dare say, to know that I had it.” |
|
|
|
“Will you try?” |
|
|
|
“That is another way of saying that I am placed on the footing I have |
|
indicated. I thank you, Darnay. I may use that freedom with your name?” |
|
|
|
“I think so, Carton, by this time.” |
|
|
|
They shook hands upon it, and Sydney turned away. Within a minute |
|
afterwards, he was, to all outward appearance, as unsubstantial as ever. |
|
|
|
When he was gone, and in the course of an evening passed with Miss |
|
Pross, the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry, Charles Darnay made some mention of |
|
this conversation in general terms, and spoke of Sydney Carton as a |
|
problem of carelessness and recklessness. He spoke of him, in short, not |
|
bitterly or meaning to bear hard upon him, but as anybody might who saw |
|
him as he showed himself. |
|
|
|
He had no idea that this could dwell in the thoughts of his fair young |
|
wife; but, when he afterwards joined her in their own rooms, he found |
|
her waiting for him with the old pretty lifting of the forehead strongly |
|
marked. |
|
|
|
“We are thoughtful to-night!” said Darnay, drawing his arm about her. |
|
|
|
“Yes, dearest Charles,” with her hands on his breast, and the inquiring |
|
and attentive expression fixed upon him; “we are rather thoughtful |
|
to-night, for we have something on our mind to-night.” |
|
|
|
“What is it, my Lucie?” |
|
|
|
“Will you promise not to press one question on me, if I beg you not to |
|
ask it?” |
|
|
|
“Will I promise? What will I not promise to my Love?” |
|
|
|
What, indeed, with his hand putting aside the golden hair from the |
|
cheek, and his other hand against the heart that beat for him! |
|
|
|
“I think, Charles, poor Mr. Carton deserves more consideration and |
|
respect than you expressed for him to-night.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed, my own? Why so?” |
|
|
|
“That is what you are not to ask me. But I think--I know--he does.” |
|
|
|
“If you know it, it is enough. What would you have me do, my Life?” |
|
|
|
“I would ask you, dearest, to be very generous with him always, and very |
|
lenient on his faults when he is not by. I would ask you to believe that |
|
he has a heart he very, very seldom reveals, and that there are deep |
|
wounds in it. My dear, I have seen it bleeding.” |
|
|
|
“It is a painful reflection to me,” said Charles Darnay, quite |
|
astounded, “that I should have done him any wrong. I never thought this |
|
of him.” |
|
|
|
“My husband, it is so. I fear he is not to be reclaimed; there is |
|
scarcely a hope that anything in his character or fortunes is reparable |
|
now. But, I am sure that he is capable of good things, gentle things, |
|
even magnanimous things.” |
|
|
|
She looked so beautiful in the purity of her faith in this lost man, |
|
that her husband could have looked at her as she was for hours. |
|
|
|
“And, O my dearest Love!” she urged, clinging nearer to him, laying her |
|
head upon his breast, and raising her eyes to his, “remember how strong |
|
we are in our happiness, and how weak he is in his misery!” |
|
|
|
The supplication touched him home. “I will always remember it, dear |
|
Heart! I will remember it as long as I live.” |
|
|
|
He bent over the golden head, and put the rosy lips to his, and folded |
|
her in his arms. If one forlorn wanderer then pacing the dark streets, |
|
could have heard her innocent disclosure, and could have seen the drops |
|
of pity kissed away by her husband from the soft blue eyes so loving of |
|
that husband, he might have cried to the night--and the words would not |
|
have parted from his lips for the first time-- |
|
|
|
“God bless her for her sweet compassion!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI. |
|
Echoing Footsteps |
|
|
|
|
|
A wonderful corner for echoes, it has been remarked, that corner where |
|
the Doctor lived. Ever busily winding the golden thread which bound |
|
her husband, and her father, and herself, and her old directress and |
|
companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in the still house in |
|
the tranquilly resounding corner, listening to the echoing footsteps of |
|
years. |
|
|
|
At first, there were times, though she was a perfectly happy young wife, |
|
when her work would slowly fall from her hands, and her eyes would be |
|
dimmed. For, there was something coming in the echoes, something light, |
|
afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that stirred her heart too much. |
|
Fluttering hopes and doubts--hopes, of a love as yet unknown to her: |
|
doubts, of her remaining upon earth, to enjoy that new delight--divided |
|
her breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the sound of |
|
footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts of the husband who would |
|
be left so desolate, and who would mourn for her so much, swelled to her |
|
eyes, and broke like waves. |
|
|
|
That time passed, and her little Lucie lay on her bosom. Then, among the |
|
advancing echoes, there was the tread of her tiny feet and the sound of |
|
her prattling words. Let greater echoes resound as they would, the young |
|
mother at the cradle side could always hear those coming. They came, and |
|
the shady house was sunny with a child’s laugh, and the Divine friend of |
|
children, to whom in her trouble she had confided hers, seemed to take |
|
her child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and made it a sacred |
|
joy to her. |
|
|
|
Ever busily winding the golden thread that bound them all together, |
|
weaving the service of her happy influence through the tissue of all |
|
their lives, and making it predominate nowhere, Lucie heard in the |
|
echoes of years none but friendly and soothing sounds. Her husband’s |
|
step was strong and prosperous among them; her father’s firm and equal. |
|
Lo, Miss Pross, in harness of string, awakening the echoes, as an |
|
unruly charger, whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the |
|
plane-tree in the garden! |
|
|
|
Even when there were sounds of sorrow among the rest, they were not |
|
harsh nor cruel. Even when golden hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a |
|
pillow round the worn face of a little boy, and he said, with a radiant |
|
smile, “Dear papa and mamma, I am very sorry to leave you both, and to |
|
leave my pretty sister; but I am called, and I must go!” those were not |
|
tears all of agony that wetted his young mother’s cheek, as the spirit |
|
departed from her embrace that had been entrusted to it. Suffer them and |
|
forbid them not. They see my Father’s face. O Father, blessed words! |
|
|
|
Thus, the rustling of an Angel’s wings got blended with the other |
|
echoes, and they were not wholly of earth, but had in them that breath |
|
of Heaven. Sighs of the winds that blew over a little garden-tomb were |
|
mingled with them also, and both were audible to Lucie, in a hushed |
|
murmur--like the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a sandy shore--as |
|
the little Lucie, comically studious at the task of the morning, or |
|
dressing a doll at her mother’s footstool, chattered in the tongues of |
|
the Two Cities that were blended in her life. |
|
|
|
The Echoes rarely answered to the actual tread of Sydney Carton. Some |
|
half-dozen times a year, at most, he claimed his privilege of coming in |
|
uninvited, and would sit among them through the evening, as he had once |
|
done often. He never came there heated with wine. And one other thing |
|
regarding him was whispered in the echoes, which has been whispered by |
|
all true echoes for ages and ages. |
|
|
|
No man ever really loved a woman, lost her, and knew her with a |
|
blameless though an unchanged mind, when she was a wife and a mother, |
|
but her children had a strange sympathy with him--an instinctive |
|
delicacy of pity for him. What fine hidden sensibilities are touched in |
|
such a case, no echoes tell; but it is so, and it was so here. Carton |
|
was the first stranger to whom little Lucie held out her chubby arms, |
|
and he kept his place with her as she grew. The little boy had spoken of |
|
him, almost at the last. “Poor Carton! Kiss him for me!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Stryver shouldered his way through the law, like some great engine |
|
forcing itself through turbid water, and dragged his useful friend in |
|
his wake, like a boat towed astern. As the boat so favoured is usually |
|
in a rough plight, and mostly under water, so, Sydney had a swamped |
|
life of it. But, easy and strong custom, unhappily so much easier and |
|
stronger in him than any stimulating sense of desert or disgrace, made |
|
it the life he was to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from his |
|
state of lion’s jackal, than any real jackal may be supposed to think of |
|
rising to be a lion. Stryver was rich; had married a florid widow with |
|
property and three boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them |
|
but the straight hair of their dumpling heads. |
|
|
|
These three young gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding patronage of the most |
|
offensive quality from every pore, had walked before him like three |
|
sheep to the quiet corner in Soho, and had offered as pupils to |
|
Lucie’s husband: delicately saying “Halloa! here are three lumps of |
|
bread-and-cheese towards your matrimonial picnic, Darnay!” The polite |
|
rejection of the three lumps of bread-and-cheese had quite bloated Mr. |
|
Stryver with indignation, which he afterwards turned to account in the |
|
training of the young gentlemen, by directing them to beware of the |
|
pride of Beggars, like that tutor-fellow. He was also in the habit of |
|
declaiming to Mrs. Stryver, over his full-bodied wine, on the arts |
|
Mrs. Darnay had once put in practice to “catch” him, and on the |
|
diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself, madam, which had rendered him “not |
|
to be caught.” Some of his King’s Bench familiars, who were occasionally |
|
parties to the full-bodied wine and the lie, excused him for the |
|
latter by saying that he had told it so often, that he believed |
|
it himself--which is surely such an incorrigible aggravation of an |
|
originally bad offence, as to justify any such offender’s being carried |
|
off to some suitably retired spot, and there hanged out of the way. |
|
|
|
These were among the echoes to which Lucie, sometimes pensive, sometimes |
|
amused and laughing, listened in the echoing corner, until her little |
|
daughter was six years old. How near to her heart the echoes of her |
|
child’s tread came, and those of her own dear father’s, always active |
|
and self-possessed, and those of her dear husband’s, need not be told. |
|
Nor, how the lightest echo of their united home, directed by herself |
|
with such a wise and elegant thrift that it was more abundant than any |
|
waste, was music to her. Nor, how there were echoes all about her, sweet |
|
in her ears, of the many times her father had told her that he found her |
|
more devoted to him married (if that could be) than single, and of the |
|
many times her husband had said to her that no cares and duties seemed |
|
to divide her love for him or her help to him, and asked her “What is |
|
the magic secret, my darling, of your being everything to all of us, |
|
as if there were only one of us, yet never seeming to be hurried, or to |
|
have too much to do?” |
|
|
|
But, there were other echoes, from a distance, that rumbled menacingly |
|
in the corner all through this space of time. And it was now, about |
|
little Lucie’s sixth birthday, that they began to have an awful sound, |
|
as of a great storm in France with a dreadful sea rising. |
|
|
|
On a night in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and eighty-nine, Mr. |
|
Lorry came in late, from Tellson’s, and sat himself down by Lucie and |
|
her husband in the dark window. It was a hot, wild night, and they were |
|
all three reminded of the old Sunday night when they had looked at the |
|
lightning from the same place. |
|
|
|
“I began to think,” said Mr. Lorry, pushing his brown wig back, “that |
|
I should have to pass the night at Tellson’s. We have been so full of |
|
business all day, that we have not known what to do first, or which way |
|
to turn. There is such an uneasiness in Paris, that we have actually a |
|
run of confidence upon us! Our customers over there, seem not to be able |
|
to confide their property to us fast enough. There is positively a mania |
|
among some of them for sending it to England.” |
|
|
|
“That has a bad look,” said Darnay-- |
|
|
|
“A bad look, you say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we don’t know what reason |
|
there is in it. People are so unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson’s are |
|
getting old, and we really can’t be troubled out of the ordinary course |
|
without due occasion.” |
|
|
|
“Still,” said Darnay, “you know how gloomy and threatening the sky is.” |
|
|
|
“I know that, to be sure,” assented Mr. Lorry, trying to persuade |
|
himself that his sweet temper was soured, and that he grumbled, “but I |
|
am determined to be peevish after my long day’s botheration. Where is |
|
Manette?” |
|
|
|
“Here he is,” said the Doctor, entering the dark room at the moment. |
|
|
|
“I am quite glad you are at home; for these hurries and forebodings by |
|
which I have been surrounded all day long, have made me nervous without |
|
reason. You are not going out, I hope?” |
|
|
|
“No; I am going to play backgammon with you, if you like,” said the |
|
Doctor. |
|
|
|
“I don’t think I do like, if I may speak my mind. I am not fit to be |
|
pitted against you to-night. Is the teaboard still there, Lucie? I can’t |
|
see.” |
|
|
|
“Of course, it has been kept for you.” |
|
|
|
“Thank ye, my dear. The precious child is safe in bed?” |
|
|
|
“And sleeping soundly.” |
|
|
|
“That’s right; all safe and well! I don’t know why anything should be |
|
otherwise than safe and well here, thank God; but I have been so put out |
|
all day, and I am not as young as I was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now, |
|
come and take your place in the circle, and let us sit quiet, and hear |
|
the echoes about which you have your theory.” |
|
|
|
“Not a theory; it was a fancy.” |
|
|
|
“A fancy, then, my wise pet,” said Mr. Lorry, patting her hand. “They |
|
are very numerous and very loud, though, are they not? Only hear them!” |
|
|
|
Headlong, mad, and dangerous footsteps to force their way into anybody’s |
|
life, footsteps not easily made clean again if once stained red, the |
|
footsteps raging in Saint Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in |
|
the dark London window. |
|
|
|
Saint Antoine had been, that morning, a vast dusky mass of scarecrows |
|
heaving to and fro, with frequent gleams of light above the billowy |
|
heads, where steel blades and bayonets shone in the sun. A tremendous |
|
roar arose from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a forest of naked arms |
|
struggled in the air like shrivelled branches of trees in a winter wind: |
|
all the fingers convulsively clutching at every weapon or semblance of a |
|
weapon that was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how far off. |
|
|
|
Who gave them out, whence they last came, where they began, through what |
|
agency they crookedly quivered and jerked, scores at a time, over the |
|
heads of the crowd, like a kind of lightning, no eye in the throng could |
|
have told; but, muskets were being distributed--so were cartridges, |
|
powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood, knives, axes, pikes, every |
|
weapon that distracted ingenuity could discover or devise. People who |
|
could lay hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding hands to |
|
force stones and bricks out of their places in walls. Every pulse and |
|
heart in Saint Antoine was on high-fever strain and at high-fever heat. |
|
Every living creature there held life as of no account, and was demented |
|
with a passionate readiness to sacrifice it. |
|
|
|
As a whirlpool of boiling waters has a centre point, so, all this raging |
|
circled round Defarge’s wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron |
|
had a tendency to be sucked towards the vortex where Defarge himself, |
|
already begrimed with gunpowder and sweat, issued orders, issued arms, |
|
thrust this man back, dragged this man forward, disarmed one to arm |
|
another, laboured and strove in the thickest of the uproar. |
|
|
|
“Keep near to me, Jacques Three,” cried Defarge; “and do you, Jacques |
|
One and Two, separate and put yourselves at the head of as many of these |
|
patriots as you can. Where is my wife?” |
|
|
|
“Eh, well! Here you see me!” said madame, composed as ever, but not |
|
knitting to-day. Madame’s resolute right hand was occupied with an axe, |
|
in place of the usual softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol |
|
and a cruel knife. |
|
|
|
“Where do you go, my wife?” |
|
|
|
“I go,” said madame, “with you at present. You shall see me at the head |
|
of women, by-and-bye.” |
|
|
|
“Come, then!” cried Defarge, in a resounding voice. “Patriots and |
|
friends, we are ready! The Bastille!” |
|
|
|
With a roar that sounded as if all the breath in France had been shaped |
|
into the detested word, the living sea rose, wave on wave, depth on |
|
depth, and overflowed the city to that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums |
|
beating, the sea raging and thundering on its new beach, the attack |
|
began. |
|
|
|
Deep ditches, double drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great |
|
towers, cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. Through the fire and through |
|
the smoke--in the fire and in the smoke, for the sea cast him up against |
|
a cannon, and on the instant he became a cannonier--Defarge of the |
|
wine-shop worked like a manful soldier, Two fierce hours. |
|
|
|
Deep ditch, single drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers, |
|
cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. One drawbridge down! “Work, comrades |
|
all, work! Work, Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques |
|
Two Thousand, Jacques Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name of all |
|
the Angels or the Devils--which you prefer--work!” Thus Defarge of the |
|
wine-shop, still at his gun, which had long grown hot. |
|
|
|
“To me, women!” cried madame his wife. “What! We can kill as well as |
|
the men when the place is taken!” And to her, with a shrill thirsty |
|
cry, trooping women variously armed, but all armed alike in hunger and |
|
revenge. |
|
|
|
Cannon, muskets, fire and smoke; but, still the deep ditch, the single |
|
drawbridge, the massive stone walls, and the eight great towers. Slight |
|
displacements of the raging sea, made by the falling wounded. Flashing |
|
weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads of wet straw, hard work |
|
at neighbouring barricades in all directions, shrieks, volleys, |
|
execrations, bravery without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the |
|
furious sounding of the living sea; but, still the deep ditch, and the |
|
single drawbridge, and the massive stone walls, and the eight great |
|
towers, and still Defarge of the wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot |
|
by the service of Four fierce hours. |
|
|
|
A white flag from within the fortress, and a parley--this dimly |
|
perceptible through the raging storm, nothing audible in it--suddenly |
|
the sea rose immeasurably wider and higher, and swept Defarge of the |
|
wine-shop over the lowered drawbridge, past the massive stone outer |
|
walls, in among the eight great towers surrendered! |
|
|
|
So resistless was the force of the ocean bearing him on, that even to |
|
draw his breath or turn his head was as impracticable as if he had been |
|
struggling in the surf at the South Sea, until he was landed in the |
|
outer courtyard of the Bastille. There, against an angle of a wall, he |
|
made a struggle to look about him. Jacques Three was nearly at his side; |
|
Madame Defarge, still heading some of her women, was visible in the |
|
inner distance, and her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was tumult, |
|
exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment, astounding noise, yet |
|
furious dumb-show. |
|
|
|
“The Prisoners!” |
|
|
|
“The Records!” |
|
|
|
“The secret cells!” |
|
|
|
“The instruments of torture!” |
|
|
|
“The Prisoners!” |
|
|
|
Of all these cries, and ten thousand incoherences, “The Prisoners!” was |
|
the cry most taken up by the sea that rushed in, as if there were an |
|
eternity of people, as well as of time and space. When the foremost |
|
billows rolled past, bearing the prison officers with them, and |
|
threatening them all with instant death if any secret nook remained |
|
undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand on the breast of one of |
|
these men--a man with a grey head, who had a lighted torch in his |
|
hand--separated him from the rest, and got him between himself and the |
|
wall. |
|
|
|
“Show me the North Tower!” said Defarge. “Quick!” |
|
|
|
“I will faithfully,” replied the man, “if you will come with me. But |
|
there is no one there.” |
|
|
|
“What is the meaning of One Hundred and Five, North Tower?” asked |
|
Defarge. “Quick!” |
|
|
|
“The meaning, monsieur?” |
|
|
|
“Does it mean a captive, or a place of captivity? Or do you mean that I |
|
shall strike you dead?” |
|
|
|
“Kill him!” croaked Jacques Three, who had come close up. |
|
|
|
“Monsieur, it is a cell.” |
|
|
|
“Show it me!” |
|
|
|
“Pass this way, then.” |
|
|
|
Jacques Three, with his usual craving on him, and evidently disappointed |
|
by the dialogue taking a turn that did not seem to promise bloodshed, |
|
held by Defarge’s arm as he held by the turnkey’s. Their three heads had |
|
been close together during this brief discourse, and it had been as much |
|
as they could do to hear one another, even then: so tremendous was the |
|
noise of the living ocean, in its irruption into the Fortress, and |
|
its inundation of the courts and passages and staircases. All around |
|
outside, too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar, from which, |
|
occasionally, some partial shouts of tumult broke and leaped into the |
|
air like spray. |
|
|
|
Through gloomy vaults where the light of day had never shone, past |
|
hideous doors of dark dens and cages, down cavernous flights of steps, |
|
and again up steep rugged ascents of stone and brick, more like dry |
|
waterfalls than staircases, Defarge, the turnkey, and Jacques Three, |
|
linked hand and arm, went with all the speed they could make. Here and |
|
there, especially at first, the inundation started on them and swept by; |
|
but when they had done descending, and were winding and climbing up a |
|
tower, they were alone. Hemmed in here by the massive thickness of walls |
|
and arches, the storm within the fortress and without was only audible |
|
to them in a dull, subdued way, as if the noise out of which they had |
|
come had almost destroyed their sense of hearing. |
|
|
|
The turnkey stopped at a low door, put a key in a clashing lock, swung |
|
the door slowly open, and said, as they all bent their heads and passed |
|
in: |
|
|
|
“One hundred and five, North Tower!” |
|
|
|
There was a small, heavily-grated, unglazed window high in the wall, |
|
with a stone screen before it, so that the sky could be only seen by |
|
stooping low and looking up. There was a small chimney, heavily barred |
|
across, a few feet within. There was a heap of old feathery wood-ashes |
|
on the hearth. There was a stool, and table, and a straw bed. There were |
|
the four blackened walls, and a rusted iron ring in one of them. |
|
|
|
“Pass that torch slowly along these walls, that I may see them,” said |
|
Defarge to the turnkey. |
|
|
|
The man obeyed, and Defarge followed the light closely with his eyes. |
|
|
|
“Stop!--Look here, Jacques!” |
|
|
|
“A. M.!” croaked Jacques Three, as he read greedily. |
|
|
|
“Alexandre Manette,” said Defarge in his ear, following the letters |
|
with his swart forefinger, deeply engrained with gunpowder. “And here he |
|
wrote ‘a poor physician.’ And it was he, without doubt, who scratched |
|
a calendar on this stone. What is that in your hand? A crowbar? Give it |
|
me!” |
|
|
|
He had still the linstock of his gun in his own hand. He made a sudden |
|
exchange of the two instruments, and turning on the worm-eaten stool and |
|
table, beat them to pieces in a few blows. |
|
|
|
“Hold the light higher!” he said, wrathfully, to the turnkey. “Look |
|
among those fragments with care, Jacques. And see! Here is my knife,” |
|
throwing it to him; “rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the |
|
light higher, you!” |
|
|
|
With a menacing look at the turnkey he crawled upon the hearth, and, |
|
peering up the chimney, struck and prised at its sides with the crowbar, |
|
and worked at the iron grating across it. In a few minutes, some mortar |
|
and dust came dropping down, which he averted his face to avoid; and |
|
in it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a crevice in the chimney |
|
into which his weapon had slipped or wrought itself, he groped with a |
|
cautious touch. |
|
|
|
“Nothing in the wood, and nothing in the straw, Jacques?” |
|
|
|
“Nothing.” |
|
|
|
“Let us collect them together, in the middle of the cell. So! Light |
|
them, you!” |
|
|
|
The turnkey fired the little pile, which blazed high and hot. Stooping |
|
again to come out at the low-arched door, they left it burning, and |
|
retraced their way to the courtyard; seeming to recover their sense |
|
of hearing as they came down, until they were in the raging flood once |
|
more. |
|
|
|
They found it surging and tossing, in quest of Defarge himself. Saint |
|
Antoine was clamorous to have its wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard |
|
upon the governor who had defended the Bastille and shot the people. |
|
Otherwise, the governor would not be marched to the Hotel de Ville for |
|
judgment. Otherwise, the governor would escape, and the people’s |
|
blood (suddenly of some value, after many years of worthlessness) be |
|
unavenged. |
|
|
|
In the howling universe of passion and contention that seemed to |
|
encompass this grim old officer conspicuous in his grey coat and red |
|
decoration, there was but one quite steady figure, and that was a |
|
woman’s. “See, there is my husband!” she cried, pointing him out. |
|
“See Defarge!” She stood immovable close to the grim old officer, and |
|
remained immovable close to him; remained immovable close to him through |
|
the streets, as Defarge and the rest bore him along; remained immovable |
|
close to him when he was got near his destination, and began to |
|
be struck at from behind; remained immovable close to him when the |
|
long-gathering rain of stabs and blows fell heavy; was so close to him |
|
when he dropped dead under it, that, suddenly animated, she put her foot |
|
upon his neck, and with her cruel knife--long ready--hewed off his head. |
|
|
|
The hour was come, when Saint Antoine was to execute his horrible idea |
|
of hoisting up men for lamps to show what he could be and do. Saint |
|
Antoine’s blood was up, and the blood of tyranny and domination by the |
|
iron hand was down--down on the steps of the Hotel de Ville where the |
|
governor’s body lay--down on the sole of the shoe of Madame Defarge |
|
where she had trodden on the body to steady it for mutilation. “Lower |
|
the lamp yonder!” cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for a new |
|
means of death; “here is one of his soldiers to be left on guard!” The |
|
swinging sentinel was posted, and the sea rushed on. |
|
|
|
The sea of black and threatening waters, and of destructive upheaving |
|
of wave against wave, whose depths were yet unfathomed and whose forces |
|
were yet unknown. The remorseless sea of turbulently swaying shapes, |
|
voices of vengeance, and faces hardened in the furnaces of suffering |
|
until the touch of pity could make no mark on them. |
|
|
|
But, in the ocean of faces where every fierce and furious expression was |
|
in vivid life, there were two groups of faces--each seven in number--so |
|
fixedly contrasting with the rest, that never did sea roll which bore |
|
more memorable wrecks with it. Seven faces of prisoners, suddenly |
|
released by the storm that had burst their tomb, were carried high |
|
overhead: all scared, all lost, all wondering and amazed, as if the Last |
|
Day were come, and those who rejoiced around them were lost spirits. |
|
Other seven faces there were, carried higher, seven dead faces, whose |
|
drooping eyelids and half-seen eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive |
|
faces, yet with a suspended--not an abolished--expression on them; |
|
faces, rather, in a fearful pause, as having yet to raise the dropped |
|
lids of the eyes, and bear witness with the bloodless lips, “THOU DIDST |
|
IT!” |
|
|
|
Seven prisoners released, seven gory heads on pikes, the keys of the |
|
accursed fortress of the eight strong towers, some discovered letters |
|
and other memorials of prisoners of old time, long dead of broken |
|
hearts,--such, and such--like, the loudly echoing footsteps of Saint |
|
Antoine escort through the Paris streets in mid-July, one thousand seven |
|
hundred and eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the fancy of Lucie Darnay, |
|
and keep these feet far out of her life! For, they are headlong, mad, |
|
and dangerous; and in the years so long after the breaking of the cask |
|
at Defarge’s wine-shop door, they are not easily purified when once |
|
stained red. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII. |
|
The Sea Still Rises |
|
|
|
|
|
Haggard Saint Antoine had had only one exultant week, in which to soften |
|
his modicum of hard and bitter bread to such extent as he could, with |
|
the relish of fraternal embraces and congratulations, when Madame |
|
Defarge sat at her counter, as usual, presiding over the customers. |
|
Madame Defarge wore no rose in her head, for the great brotherhood of |
|
Spies had become, even in one short week, extremely chary of trusting |
|
themselves to the saint’s mercies. The lamps across his streets had a |
|
portentously elastic swing with them. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge, with her arms folded, sat in the morning light and heat, |
|
contemplating the wine-shop and the street. In both, there were several |
|
knots of loungers, squalid and miserable, but now with a manifest sense |
|
of power enthroned on their distress. The raggedest nightcap, awry on |
|
the wretchedest head, had this crooked significance in it: “I know how |
|
hard it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to support life in myself; |
|
but do you know how easy it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to |
|
destroy life in you?” Every lean bare arm, that had been without work |
|
before, had this work always ready for it now, that it could strike. |
|
The fingers of the knitting women were vicious, with the experience that |
|
they could tear. There was a change in the appearance of Saint Antoine; |
|
the image had been hammering into this for hundreds of years, and the |
|
last finishing blows had told mightily on the expression. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge sat observing it, with such suppressed approval as was |
|
to be desired in the leader of the Saint Antoine women. One of her |
|
sisterhood knitted beside her. The short, rather plump wife of a starved |
|
grocer, and the mother of two children withal, this lieutenant had |
|
already earned the complimentary name of The Vengeance. |
|
|
|
“Hark!” said The Vengeance. “Listen, then! Who comes?” |
|
|
|
As if a train of powder laid from the outermost bound of Saint Antoine |
|
Quarter to the wine-shop door, had been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading |
|
murmur came rushing along. |
|
|
|
“It is Defarge,” said madame. “Silence, patriots!” |
|
|
|
Defarge came in breathless, pulled off a red cap he wore, and looked |
|
around him! “Listen, everywhere!” said madame again. “Listen to him!” |
|
Defarge stood, panting, against a background of eager eyes and open |
|
mouths, formed outside the door; all those within the wine-shop had |
|
sprung to their feet. |
|
|
|
“Say then, my husband. What is it?” |
|
|
|
“News from the other world!” |
|
|
|
“How, then?” cried madame, contemptuously. “The other world?” |
|
|
|
“Does everybody here recall old Foulon, who told the famished people |
|
that they might eat grass, and who died, and went to Hell?” |
|
|
|
“Everybody!” from all throats. |
|
|
|
“The news is of him. He is among us!” |
|
|
|
“Among us!” from the universal throat again. “And dead?” |
|
|
|
“Not dead! He feared us so much--and with reason--that he caused himself |
|
to be represented as dead, and had a grand mock-funeral. But they have |
|
found him alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I have |
|
seen him but now, on his way to the Hotel de Ville, a prisoner. I have |
|
said that he had reason to fear us. Say all! _Had_ he reason?” |
|
|
|
Wretched old sinner of more than threescore years and ten, if he had |
|
never known it yet, he would have known it in his heart of hearts if he |
|
could have heard the answering cry. |
|
|
|
A moment of profound silence followed. Defarge and his wife looked |
|
steadfastly at one another. The Vengeance stooped, and the jar of a drum |
|
was heard as she moved it at her feet behind the counter. |
|
|
|
“Patriots!” said Defarge, in a determined voice, “are we ready?” |
|
|
|
Instantly Madame Defarge’s knife was in her girdle; the drum was beating |
|
in the streets, as if it and a drummer had flown together by magic; and |
|
The Vengeance, uttering terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about |
|
her head like all the forty Furies at once, was tearing from house to |
|
house, rousing the women. |
|
|
|
The men were terrible, in the bloody-minded anger with which they looked |
|
from windows, caught up what arms they had, and came pouring down into |
|
the streets; but, the women were a sight to chill the boldest. From |
|
such household occupations as their bare poverty yielded, from their |
|
children, from their aged and their sick crouching on the bare ground |
|
famished and naked, they ran out with streaming hair, urging one |
|
another, and themselves, to madness with the wildest cries and actions. |
|
Villain Foulon taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother! Miscreant |
|
Foulon taken, my daughter! Then, a score of others ran into the midst of |
|
these, beating their breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon |
|
alive! Foulon who told the starving people they might eat grass! Foulon |
|
who told my old father that he might eat grass, when I had no bread |
|
to give him! Foulon who told my baby it might suck grass, when these |
|
breasts were dry with want! O mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our |
|
suffering! Hear me, my dead baby and my withered father: I swear on my |
|
knees, on these stones, to avenge you on Foulon! Husbands, and brothers, |
|
and young men, Give us the blood of Foulon, Give us the head of Foulon, |
|
Give us the heart of Foulon, Give us the body and soul of Foulon, Rend |
|
Foulon to pieces, and dig him into the ground, that grass may grow from |
|
him! With these cries, numbers of the women, lashed into blind frenzy, |
|
whirled about, striking and tearing at their own friends until they |
|
dropped into a passionate swoon, and were only saved by the men |
|
belonging to them from being trampled under foot. |
|
|
|
Nevertheless, not a moment was lost; not a moment! This Foulon was at |
|
the Hotel de Ville, and might be loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew |
|
his own sufferings, insults, and wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out |
|
of the Quarter so fast, and drew even these last dregs after them with |
|
such a force of suction, that within a quarter of an hour there was not |
|
a human creature in Saint Antoine’s bosom but a few old crones and the |
|
wailing children. |
|
|
|
No. They were all by that time choking the Hall of Examination where |
|
this old man, ugly and wicked, was, and overflowing into the adjacent |
|
open space and streets. The Defarges, husband and wife, The Vengeance, |
|
and Jacques Three, were in the first press, and at no great distance |
|
from him in the Hall. |
|
|
|
“See!” cried madame, pointing with her knife. “See the old villain bound |
|
with ropes. That was well done to tie a bunch of grass upon his back. |
|
Ha, ha! That was well done. Let him eat it now!” Madame put her knife |
|
under her arm, and clapped her hands as at a play. |
|
|
|
The people immediately behind Madame Defarge, explaining the cause of |
|
her satisfaction to those behind them, and those again explaining to |
|
others, and those to others, the neighbouring streets resounded with the |
|
clapping of hands. Similarly, during two or three hours of drawl, |
|
and the winnowing of many bushels of words, Madame Defarge’s frequent |
|
expressions of impatience were taken up, with marvellous quickness, at |
|
a distance: the more readily, because certain men who had by some |
|
wonderful exercise of agility climbed up the external architecture |
|
to look in from the windows, knew Madame Defarge well, and acted as a |
|
telegraph between her and the crowd outside the building. |
|
|
|
At length the sun rose so high that it struck a kindly ray as of hope or |
|
protection, directly down upon the old prisoner’s head. The favour was |
|
too much to bear; in an instant the barrier of dust and chaff that had |
|
stood surprisingly long, went to the winds, and Saint Antoine had got |
|
him! |
|
|
|
It was known directly, to the furthest confines of the crowd. Defarge |
|
had but sprung over a railing and a table, and folded the miserable |
|
wretch in a deadly embrace--Madame Defarge had but followed and turned |
|
her hand in one of the ropes with which he was tied--The Vengeance and |
|
Jacques Three were not yet up with them, and the men at the windows |
|
had not yet swooped into the Hall, like birds of prey from their high |
|
perches--when the cry seemed to go up, all over the city, “Bring him |
|
out! Bring him to the lamp!” |
|
|
|
Down, and up, and head foremost on the steps of the building; now, on |
|
his knees; now, on his feet; now, on his back; dragged, and struck at, |
|
and stifled by the bunches of grass and straw that were thrust into his |
|
face by hundreds of hands; torn, bruised, panting, bleeding, yet always |
|
entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full of vehement agony of |
|
action, with a small clear space about him as the people drew one |
|
another back that they might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through |
|
a forest of legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where one |
|
of the fatal lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge let him go--as a cat |
|
might have done to a mouse--and silently and composedly looked at him |
|
while they made ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately |
|
screeching at him all the time, and the men sternly calling out to have |
|
him killed with grass in his mouth. Once, he went aloft, and the rope |
|
broke, and they caught him shrieking; twice, he went aloft, and the rope |
|
broke, and they caught him shrieking; then, the rope was merciful, and |
|
held him, and his head was soon upon a pike, with grass enough in the |
|
mouth for all Saint Antoine to dance at the sight of. |
|
|
|
Nor was this the end of the day’s bad work, for Saint Antoine so shouted |
|
and danced his angry blood up, that it boiled again, on hearing when |
|
the day closed in that the son-in-law of the despatched, another of the |
|
people’s enemies and insulters, was coming into Paris under a guard |
|
five hundred strong, in cavalry alone. Saint Antoine wrote his crimes |
|
on flaring sheets of paper, seized him--would have torn him out of the |
|
breast of an army to bear Foulon company--set his head and heart on |
|
pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in Wolf-procession |
|
through the streets. |
|
|
|
Not before dark night did the men and women come back to the children, |
|
wailing and breadless. Then, the miserable bakers’ shops were beset by |
|
long files of them, patiently waiting to buy bad bread; and while |
|
they waited with stomachs faint and empty, they beguiled the time by |
|
embracing one another on the triumphs of the day, and achieving them |
|
again in gossip. Gradually, these strings of ragged people shortened and |
|
frayed away; and then poor lights began to shine in high windows, and |
|
slender fires were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in |
|
common, afterwards supping at their doors. |
|
|
|
Scanty and insufficient suppers those, and innocent of meat, as of |
|
most other sauce to wretched bread. Yet, human fellowship infused |
|
some nourishment into the flinty viands, and struck some sparks of |
|
cheerfulness out of them. Fathers and mothers who had had their full |
|
share in the worst of the day, played gently with their meagre children; |
|
and lovers, with such a world around them and before them, loved and |
|
hoped. |
|
|
|
It was almost morning, when Defarge’s wine-shop parted with its last |
|
knot of customers, and Monsieur Defarge said to madame his wife, in |
|
husky tones, while fastening the door: |
|
|
|
“At last it is come, my dear!” |
|
|
|
“Eh well!” returned madame. “Almost.” |
|
|
|
Saint Antoine slept, the Defarges slept: even The Vengeance slept with |
|
her starved grocer, and the drum was at rest. The drum’s was the |
|
only voice in Saint Antoine that blood and hurry had not changed. The |
|
Vengeance, as custodian of the drum, could have wakened him up and had |
|
the same speech out of him as before the Bastille fell, or old Foulon |
|
was seized; not so with the hoarse tones of the men and women in Saint |
|
Antoine’s bosom. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII. |
|
Fire Rises |
|
|
|
|
|
There was a change on the village where the fountain fell, and where |
|
the mender of roads went forth daily to hammer out of the stones on the |
|
highway such morsels of bread as might serve for patches to hold his |
|
poor ignorant soul and his poor reduced body together. The prison on the |
|
crag was not so dominant as of yore; there were soldiers to guard it, |
|
but not many; there were officers to guard the soldiers, but not one of |
|
them knew what his men would do--beyond this: that it would probably not |
|
be what he was ordered. |
|
|
|
Far and wide lay a ruined country, yielding nothing but desolation. |
|
Every green leaf, every blade of grass and blade of grain, was as |
|
shrivelled and poor as the miserable people. Everything was bowed down, |
|
dejected, oppressed, and broken. Habitations, fences, domesticated |
|
animals, men, women, children, and the soil that bore them--all worn |
|
out. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur (often a most worthy individual gentleman) was a national |
|
blessing, gave a chivalrous tone to things, was a polite example of |
|
luxurious and shining life, and a great deal more to equal purpose; |
|
nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow or other, brought |
|
things to this. Strange that Creation, designed expressly for |
|
Monseigneur, should be so soon wrung dry and squeezed out! There must |
|
be something short-sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus it |
|
was, however; and the last drop of blood having been extracted from the |
|
flints, and the last screw of the rack having been turned so often that |
|
its purchase crumbled, and it now turned and turned with nothing |
|
to bite, Monseigneur began to run away from a phenomenon so low and |
|
unaccountable. |
|
|
|
But, this was not the change on the village, and on many a village like |
|
it. For scores of years gone by, Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung |
|
it, and had seldom graced it with his presence except for the pleasures |
|
of the chase--now, found in hunting the people; now, found in hunting |
|
the beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur made edifying spaces |
|
of barbarous and barren wilderness. No. The change consisted in |
|
the appearance of strange faces of low caste, rather than in the |
|
disappearance of the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and |
|
beautifying features of Monseigneur. |
|
|
|
For, in these times, as the mender of roads worked, solitary, in the |
|
dust, not often troubling himself to reflect that dust he was and |
|
to dust he must return, being for the most part too much occupied in |
|
thinking how little he had for supper and how much more he would eat if |
|
he had it--in these times, as he raised his eyes from his lonely labour, |
|
and viewed the prospect, he would see some rough figure approaching on |
|
foot, the like of which was once a rarity in those parts, but was now |
|
a frequent presence. As it advanced, the mender of roads would discern |
|
without surprise, that it was a shaggy-haired man, of almost barbarian |
|
aspect, tall, in wooden shoes that were clumsy even to the eyes of a |
|
mender of roads, grim, rough, swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many |
|
highways, dank with the marshy moisture of many low grounds, sprinkled |
|
with the thorns and leaves and moss of many byways through woods. |
|
|
|
Such a man came upon him, like a ghost, at noon in the July weather, |
|
as he sat on his heap of stones under a bank, taking such shelter as he |
|
could get from a shower of hail. |
|
|
|
The man looked at him, looked at the village in the hollow, at the mill, |
|
and at the prison on the crag. When he had identified these objects |
|
in what benighted mind he had, he said, in a dialect that was just |
|
intelligible: |
|
|
|
“How goes it, Jacques?” |
|
|
|
“All well, Jacques.” |
|
|
|
“Touch then!” |
|
|
|
They joined hands, and the man sat down on the heap of stones. |
|
|
|
“No dinner?” |
|
|
|
“Nothing but supper now,” said the mender of roads, with a hungry face. |
|
|
|
“It is the fashion,” growled the man. “I meet no dinner anywhere.” |
|
|
|
He took out a blackened pipe, filled it, lighted it with flint and |
|
steel, pulled at it until it was in a bright glow: then, suddenly held |
|
it from him and dropped something into it from between his finger and |
|
thumb, that blazed and went out in a puff of smoke. |
|
|
|
“Touch then.” It was the turn of the mender of roads to say it this |
|
time, after observing these operations. They again joined hands. |
|
|
|
“To-night?” said the mender of roads. |
|
|
|
“To-night,” said the man, putting the pipe in his mouth. |
|
|
|
“Where?” |
|
|
|
“Here.” |
|
|
|
He and the mender of roads sat on the heap of stones looking silently at |
|
one another, with the hail driving in between them like a pigmy charge |
|
of bayonets, until the sky began to clear over the village. |
|
|
|
“Show me!” said the traveller then, moving to the brow of the hill. |
|
|
|
“See!” returned the mender of roads, with extended finger. “You go down |
|
here, and straight through the street, and past the fountain--” |
|
|
|
“To the Devil with all that!” interrupted the other, rolling his eye |
|
over the landscape. “_I_ go through no streets and past no fountains. |
|
Well?” |
|
|
|
“Well! About two leagues beyond the summit of that hill above the |
|
village.” |
|
|
|
“Good. When do you cease to work?” |
|
|
|
“At sunset.” |
|
|
|
“Will you wake me, before departing? I have walked two nights without |
|
resting. Let me finish my pipe, and I shall sleep like a child. Will you |
|
wake me?” |
|
|
|
“Surely.” |
|
|
|
The wayfarer smoked his pipe out, put it in his breast, slipped off his |
|
great wooden shoes, and lay down on his back on the heap of stones. He |
|
was fast asleep directly. |
|
|
|
As the road-mender plied his dusty labour, and the hail-clouds, rolling |
|
away, revealed bright bars and streaks of sky which were responded to |
|
by silver gleams upon the landscape, the little man (who wore a red cap |
|
now, in place of his blue one) seemed fascinated by the figure on the |
|
heap of stones. His eyes were so often turned towards it, that he used |
|
his tools mechanically, and, one would have said, to very poor account. |
|
The bronze face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse woollen |
|
red cap, the rough medley dress of home-spun stuff and hairy skins of |
|
beasts, the powerful frame attenuated by spare living, and the sullen |
|
and desperate compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender |
|
of roads with awe. The traveller had travelled far, and his feet were |
|
footsore, and his ankles chafed and bleeding; his great shoes, stuffed |
|
with leaves and grass, had been heavy to drag over the many long |
|
leagues, and his clothes were chafed into holes, as he himself was into |
|
sores. Stooping down beside him, the road-mender tried to get a peep at |
|
secret weapons in his breast or where not; but, in vain, for he slept |
|
with his arms crossed upon him, and set as resolutely as his lips. |
|
Fortified towns with their stockades, guard-houses, gates, trenches, and |
|
drawbridges, seemed to the mender of roads, to be so much air as against |
|
this figure. And when he lifted his eyes from it to the horizon and |
|
looked around, he saw in his small fancy similar figures, stopped by no |
|
obstacle, tending to centres all over France. |
|
|
|
The man slept on, indifferent to showers of hail and intervals of |
|
brightness, to sunshine on his face and shadow, to the paltering lumps |
|
of dull ice on his body and the diamonds into which the sun changed |
|
them, until the sun was low in the west, and the sky was glowing. Then, |
|
the mender of roads having got his tools together and all things ready |
|
to go down into the village, roused him. |
|
|
|
“Good!” said the sleeper, rising on his elbow. “Two leagues beyond the |
|
summit of the hill?” |
|
|
|
“About.” |
|
|
|
“About. Good!” |
|
|
|
The mender of roads went home, with the dust going on before him |
|
according to the set of the wind, and was soon at the fountain, |
|
squeezing himself in among the lean kine brought there to drink, and |
|
appearing even to whisper to them in his whispering to all the village. |
|
When the village had taken its poor supper, it did not creep to bed, |
|
as it usually did, but came out of doors again, and remained there. A |
|
curious contagion of whispering was upon it, and also, when it gathered |
|
together at the fountain in the dark, another curious contagion of |
|
looking expectantly at the sky in one direction only. Monsieur Gabelle, |
|
chief functionary of the place, became uneasy; went out on his house-top |
|
alone, and looked in that direction too; glanced down from behind his |
|
chimneys at the darkening faces by the fountain below, and sent word to |
|
the sacristan who kept the keys of the church, that there might be need |
|
to ring the tocsin by-and-bye. |
|
|
|
The night deepened. The trees environing the old chateau, keeping its |
|
solitary state apart, moved in a rising wind, as though they threatened |
|
the pile of building massive and dark in the gloom. Up the two terrace |
|
flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at the great door, like a |
|
swift messenger rousing those within; uneasy rushes of wind went through |
|
the hall, among the old spears and knives, and passed lamenting up the |
|
stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the last Marquis |
|
had slept. East, West, North, and South, through the woods, four |
|
heavy-treading, unkempt figures crushed the high grass and cracked the |
|
branches, striding on cautiously to come together in the courtyard. Four |
|
lights broke out there, and moved away in different directions, and all |
|
was black again. |
|
|
|
But, not for long. Presently, the chateau began to make itself strangely |
|
visible by some light of its own, as though it were growing luminous. |
|
Then, a flickering streak played behind the architecture of the front, |
|
picking out transparent places, and showing where balustrades, arches, |
|
and windows were. Then it soared higher, and grew broader and brighter. |
|
Soon, from a score of the great windows, flames burst forth, and the |
|
stone faces awakened, stared out of fire. |
|
|
|
A faint murmur arose about the house from the few people who were left |
|
there, and there was a saddling of a horse and riding away. There was |
|
spurring and splashing through the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the |
|
space by the village fountain, and the horse in a foam stood at Monsieur |
|
Gabelle’s door. “Help, Gabelle! Help, every one!” The tocsin rang |
|
impatiently, but other help (if that were any) there was none. The |
|
mender of roads, and two hundred and fifty particular friends, stood |
|
with folded arms at the fountain, looking at the pillar of fire in the |
|
sky. “It must be forty feet high,” said they, grimly; and never moved. |
|
|
|
The rider from the chateau, and the horse in a foam, clattered away |
|
through the village, and galloped up the stony steep, to the prison on |
|
the crag. At the gate, a group of officers were looking at the fire; |
|
removed from them, a group of soldiers. “Help, gentlemen--officers! The |
|
chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be saved from the flames by |
|
timely aid! Help, help!” The officers looked towards the soldiers who |
|
looked at the fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs and biting |
|
of lips, “It must burn.” |
|
|
|
As the rider rattled down the hill again and through the street, the |
|
village was illuminating. The mender of roads, and the two hundred and |
|
fifty particular friends, inspired as one man and woman by the idea of |
|
lighting up, had darted into their houses, and were putting candles in |
|
every dull little pane of glass. The general scarcity of everything, |
|
occasioned candles to be borrowed in a rather peremptory manner of |
|
Monsieur Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on |
|
that functionary’s part, the mender of roads, once so submissive to |
|
authority, had remarked that carriages were good to make bonfires with, |
|
and that post-horses would roast. |
|
|
|
The chateau was left to itself to flame and burn. In the roaring and |
|
raging of the conflagration, a red-hot wind, driving straight from the |
|
infernal regions, seemed to be blowing the edifice away. With the rising |
|
and falling of the blaze, the stone faces showed as if they were in |
|
torment. When great masses of stone and timber fell, the face with the |
|
two dints in the nose became obscured: anon struggled out of the smoke |
|
again, as if it were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the stake |
|
and contending with the fire. |
|
|
|
The chateau burned; the nearest trees, laid hold of by the fire, |
|
scorched and shrivelled; trees at a distance, fired by the four fierce |
|
figures, begirt the blazing edifice with a new forest of smoke. Molten |
|
lead and iron boiled in the marble basin of the fountain; the water ran |
|
dry; the extinguisher tops of the towers vanished like ice before the |
|
heat, and trickled down into four rugged wells of flame. Great rents and |
|
splits branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation; stupefied |
|
birds wheeled about and dropped into the furnace; four fierce figures |
|
trudged away, East, West, North, and South, along the night-enshrouded |
|
roads, guided by the beacon they had lighted, towards their next |
|
destination. The illuminated village had seized hold of the tocsin, and, |
|
abolishing the lawful ringer, rang for joy. |
|
|
|
Not only that; but the village, light-headed with famine, fire, and |
|
bell-ringing, and bethinking itself that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with |
|
the collection of rent and taxes--though it was but a small instalment |
|
of taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle had got in those latter |
|
days--became impatient for an interview with him, and, surrounding his |
|
house, summoned him to come forth for personal conference. Whereupon, |
|
Monsieur Gabelle did heavily bar his door, and retire to hold counsel |
|
with himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle again |
|
withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack of chimneys; this time |
|
resolved, if his door were broken in (he was a small Southern man |
|
of retaliative temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the |
|
parapet, and crush a man or two below. |
|
|
|
Probably, Monsieur Gabelle passed a long night up there, with the |
|
distant chateau for fire and candle, and the beating at his door, |
|
combined with the joy-ringing, for music; not to mention his having an |
|
ill-omened lamp slung across the road before his posting-house gate, |
|
which the village showed a lively inclination to displace in his favour. |
|
A trying suspense, to be passing a whole summer night on the brink of |
|
the black ocean, ready to take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur |
|
Gabelle had resolved! But, the friendly dawn appearing at last, and the |
|
rush-candles of the village guttering out, the people happily dispersed, |
|
and Monsieur Gabelle came down bringing his life with him for that |
|
while. |
|
|
|
Within a hundred miles, and in the light of other fires, there were |
|
other functionaries less fortunate, that night and other nights, whom |
|
the rising sun found hanging across once-peaceful streets, where they |
|
had been born and bred; also, there were other villagers and townspeople |
|
less fortunate than the mender of roads and his fellows, upon whom the |
|
functionaries and soldiery turned with success, and whom they strung up |
|
in their turn. But, the fierce figures were steadily wending East, West, |
|
North, and South, be that as it would; and whosoever hung, fire burned. |
|
The altitude of the gallows that would turn to water and quench it, |
|
no functionary, by any stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate |
|
successfully. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV. |
|
Drawn to the Loadstone Rock |
|
|
|
|
|
In such risings of fire and risings of sea--the firm earth shaken by |
|
the rushes of an angry ocean which had now no ebb, but was always on the |
|
flow, higher and higher, to the terror and wonder of the beholders on |
|
the shore--three years of tempest were consumed. Three more birthdays |
|
of little Lucie had been woven by the golden thread into the peaceful |
|
tissue of the life of her home. |
|
|
|
Many a night and many a day had its inmates listened to the echoes in |
|
the corner, with hearts that failed them when they heard the thronging |
|
feet. For, the footsteps had become to their minds as the footsteps of |
|
a people, tumultuous under a red flag and with their country declared in |
|
danger, changed into wild beasts, by terrible enchantment long persisted |
|
in. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur, as a class, had dissociated himself from the phenomenon of |
|
his not being appreciated: of his being so little wanted in France, as |
|
to incur considerable danger of receiving his dismissal from it, and |
|
this life together. Like the fabled rustic who raised the Devil with |
|
infinite pains, and was so terrified at the sight of him that he could |
|
ask the Enemy no question, but immediately fled; so, Monseigneur, after |
|
boldly reading the Lord’s Prayer backwards for a great number of years, |
|
and performing many other potent spells for compelling the Evil One, no |
|
sooner beheld him in his terrors than he took to his noble heels. |
|
|
|
The shining Bull’s Eye of the Court was gone, or it would have been the |
|
mark for a hurricane of national bullets. It had never been a good |
|
eye to see with--had long had the mote in it of Lucifer’s pride, |
|
Sardanapalus’s luxury, and a mole’s blindness--but it had dropped |
|
out and was gone. The Court, from that exclusive inner circle to its |
|
outermost rotten ring of intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation, was |
|
all gone together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its Palace and |
|
“suspended,” when the last tidings came over. |
|
|
|
The August of the year one thousand seven hundred and ninety-two was |
|
come, and Monseigneur was by this time scattered far and wide. |
|
|
|
As was natural, the head-quarters and great gathering-place of |
|
Monseigneur, in London, was Tellson’s Bank. Spirits are supposed to |
|
haunt the places where their bodies most resorted, and Monseigneur |
|
without a guinea haunted the spot where his guineas used to be. |
|
Moreover, it was the spot to which such French intelligence as was most |
|
to be relied upon, came quickest. Again: Tellson’s was a munificent |
|
house, and extended great liberality to old customers who had fallen |
|
from their high estate. Again: those nobles who had seen the coming |
|
storm in time, and anticipating plunder or confiscation, had made |
|
provident remittances to Tellson’s, were always to be heard of there |
|
by their needy brethren. To which it must be added that every new-comer |
|
from France reported himself and his tidings at Tellson’s, almost as |
|
a matter of course. For such variety of reasons, Tellson’s was at that |
|
time, as to French intelligence, a kind of High Exchange; and this |
|
was so well known to the public, and the inquiries made there were in |
|
consequence so numerous, that Tellson’s sometimes wrote the latest news |
|
out in a line or so and posted it in the Bank windows, for all who ran |
|
through Temple Bar to read. |
|
|
|
On a steaming, misty afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at his desk, and Charles |
|
Darnay stood leaning on it, talking with him in a low voice. The |
|
penitential den once set apart for interviews with the House, was now |
|
the news-Exchange, and was filled to overflowing. It was within half an |
|
hour or so of the time of closing. |
|
|
|
“But, although you are the youngest man that ever lived,” said Charles |
|
Darnay, rather hesitating, “I must still suggest to you--” |
|
|
|
“I understand. That I am too old?” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“Unsettled weather, a long journey, uncertain means of travelling, a |
|
disorganised country, a city that may not be even safe for you.” |
|
|
|
“My dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful confidence, “you touch |
|
some of the reasons for my going: not for my staying away. It is safe |
|
enough for me; nobody will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard |
|
upon fourscore when there are so many people there much better worth |
|
interfering with. As to its being a disorganised city, if it were not a |
|
disorganised city there would be no occasion to send somebody from our |
|
House here to our House there, who knows the city and the business, of |
|
old, and is in Tellson’s confidence. As to the uncertain travelling, the |
|
long journey, and the winter weather, if I were not prepared to submit |
|
myself to a few inconveniences for the sake of Tellson’s, after all |
|
these years, who ought to be?” |
|
|
|
“I wish I were going myself,” said Charles Darnay, somewhat restlessly, |
|
and like one thinking aloud. |
|
|
|
“Indeed! You are a pretty fellow to object and advise!” exclaimed Mr. |
|
Lorry. “You wish you were going yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You |
|
are a wise counsellor.” |
|
|
|
“My dear Mr. Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman born, that the |
|
thought (which I did not mean to utter here, however) has passed through |
|
my mind often. One cannot help thinking, having had some sympathy for |
|
the miserable people, and having abandoned something to them,” he spoke |
|
here in his former thoughtful manner, “that one might be listened to, |
|
and might have the power to persuade to some restraint. Only last night, |
|
after you had left us, when I was talking to Lucie--” |
|
|
|
“When you were talking to Lucie,” Mr. Lorry repeated. “Yes. I wonder you |
|
are not ashamed to mention the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to |
|
France at this time of day!” |
|
|
|
“However, I am not going,” said Charles Darnay, with a smile. “It is |
|
more to the purpose that you say you are.” |
|
|
|
“And I am, in plain reality. The truth is, my dear Charles,” Mr. Lorry |
|
glanced at the distant House, and lowered his voice, “you can have no |
|
conception of the difficulty with which our business is transacted, and |
|
of the peril in which our books and papers over yonder are involved. The |
|
Lord above knows what the compromising consequences would be to numbers |
|
of people, if some of our documents were seized or destroyed; and they |
|
might be, at any time, you know, for who can say that Paris is not set |
|
afire to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a judicious selection from these |
|
with the least possible delay, and the burying of them, or otherwise |
|
getting of them out of harm’s way, is within the power (without loss of |
|
precious time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any one. And shall |
|
I hang back, when Tellson’s knows this and says this--Tellson’s, whose |
|
bread I have eaten these sixty years--because I am a little stiff about |
|
the joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers here!” |
|
|
|
“How I admire the gallantry of your youthful spirit, Mr. Lorry.” |
|
|
|
“Tut! Nonsense, sir!--And, my dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, glancing at |
|
the House again, “you are to remember, that getting things out of |
|
Paris at this present time, no matter what things, is next to an |
|
impossibility. Papers and precious matters were this very day brought |
|
to us here (I speak in strict confidence; it is not business-like to |
|
whisper it, even to you), by the strangest bearers you can imagine, |
|
every one of whom had his head hanging on by a single hair as he passed |
|
the Barriers. At another time, our parcels would come and go, as easily |
|
as in business-like Old England; but now, everything is stopped.” |
|
|
|
“And do you really go to-night?” |
|
|
|
“I really go to-night, for the case has become too pressing to admit of |
|
delay.” |
|
|
|
“And do you take no one with you?” |
|
|
|
“All sorts of people have been proposed to me, but I will have nothing |
|
to say to any of them. I intend to take Jerry. Jerry has been my |
|
bodyguard on Sunday nights for a long time past and I am used to him. |
|
Nobody will suspect Jerry of being anything but an English bull-dog, or |
|
of having any design in his head but to fly at anybody who touches his |
|
master.” |
|
|
|
“I must say again that I heartily admire your gallantry and |
|
youthfulness.” |
|
|
|
“I must say again, nonsense, nonsense! When I have executed this little |
|
commission, I shall, perhaps, accept Tellson’s proposal to retire and |
|
live at my ease. Time enough, then, to think about growing old.” |
|
|
|
This dialogue had taken place at Mr. Lorry’s usual desk, with |
|
Monseigneur swarming within a yard or two of it, boastful of what he |
|
would do to avenge himself on the rascal-people before long. It was too |
|
much the way of Monseigneur under his reverses as a refugee, and it |
|
was much too much the way of native British orthodoxy, to talk of this |
|
terrible Revolution as if it were the only harvest ever known under |
|
the skies that had not been sown--as if nothing had ever been done, or |
|
omitted to be done, that had led to it--as if observers of the wretched |
|
millions in France, and of the misused and perverted resources that |
|
should have made them prosperous, had not seen it inevitably coming, |
|
years before, and had not in plain words recorded what they saw. Such |
|
vapouring, combined with the extravagant plots of Monseigneur for the |
|
restoration of a state of things that had utterly exhausted itself, |
|
and worn out Heaven and earth as well as itself, was hard to be endured |
|
without some remonstrance by any sane man who knew the truth. And it was |
|
such vapouring all about his ears, like a troublesome confusion of blood |
|
in his own head, added to a latent uneasiness in his mind, which had |
|
already made Charles Darnay restless, and which still kept him so. |
|
|
|
Among the talkers, was Stryver, of the King’s Bench Bar, far on his |
|
way to state promotion, and, therefore, loud on the theme: broaching |
|
to Monseigneur, his devices for blowing the people up and exterminating |
|
them from the face of the earth, and doing without them: and for |
|
accomplishing many similar objects akin in their nature to the abolition |
|
of eagles by sprinkling salt on the tails of the race. Him, Darnay heard |
|
with a particular feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided between |
|
going away that he might hear no more, and remaining to interpose his |
|
word, when the thing that was to be, went on to shape itself out. |
|
|
|
The House approached Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled and unopened letter |
|
before him, asked if he had yet discovered any traces of the person to |
|
whom it was addressed? The House laid the letter down so close to Darnay |
|
that he saw the direction--the more quickly because it was his own right |
|
name. The address, turned into English, ran: |
|
|
|
“Very pressing. To Monsieur heretofore the Marquis St. Evrémonde, of |
|
France. Confided to the cares of Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers, |
|
London, England.” |
|
|
|
On the marriage morning, Doctor Manette had made it his one urgent and |
|
express request to Charles Darnay, that the secret of this name should |
|
be--unless he, the Doctor, dissolved the obligation--kept inviolate |
|
between them. Nobody else knew it to be his name; his own wife had no |
|
suspicion of the fact; Mr. Lorry could have none. |
|
|
|
“No,” said Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; “I have referred it, |
|
I think, to everybody now here, and no one can tell me where this |
|
gentleman is to be found.” |
|
|
|
The hands of the clock verging upon the hour of closing the Bank, there |
|
was a general set of the current of talkers past Mr. Lorry’s desk. He |
|
held the letter out inquiringly; and Monseigneur looked at it, in the |
|
person of this plotting and indignant refugee; and Monseigneur looked at |
|
it in the person of that plotting and indignant refugee; and This, That, |
|
and The Other, all had something disparaging to say, in French or in |
|
English, concerning the Marquis who was not to be found. |
|
|
|
“Nephew, I believe--but in any case degenerate successor--of the |
|
polished Marquis who was murdered,” said one. “Happy to say, I never |
|
knew him.” |
|
|
|
“A craven who abandoned his post,” said another--this Monseigneur had |
|
been got out of Paris, legs uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of |
|
hay--“some years ago.” |
|
|
|
“Infected with the new doctrines,” said a third, eyeing the direction |
|
through his glass in passing; “set himself in opposition to the last |
|
Marquis, abandoned the estates when he inherited them, and left them to |
|
the ruffian herd. They will recompense him now, I hope, as he deserves.” |
|
|
|
“Hey?” cried the blatant Stryver. “Did he though? Is that the sort of |
|
fellow? Let us look at his infamous name. D--n the fellow!” |
|
|
|
Darnay, unable to restrain himself any longer, touched Mr. Stryver on |
|
the shoulder, and said: |
|
|
|
“I know the fellow.” |
|
|
|
“Do you, by Jupiter?” said Stryver. “I am sorry for it.” |
|
|
|
“Why?” |
|
|
|
“Why, Mr. Darnay? D’ye hear what he did? Don’t ask, why, in these |
|
times.” |
|
|
|
“But I do ask why?” |
|
|
|
“Then I tell you again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for it. I am sorry to |
|
hear you putting any such extraordinary questions. Here is a fellow, |
|
who, infected by the most pestilent and blasphemous code of devilry that |
|
ever was known, abandoned his property to the vilest scum of the earth |
|
that ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me why I am sorry that a |
|
man who instructs youth knows him? Well, but I’ll answer you. I am sorry |
|
because I believe there is contamination in such a scoundrel. That’s |
|
why.” |
|
|
|
Mindful of the secret, Darnay with great difficulty checked himself, and |
|
said: “You may not understand the gentleman.” |
|
|
|
“I understand how to put _you_ in a corner, Mr. Darnay,” said Bully |
|
Stryver, “and I’ll do it. If this fellow is a gentleman, I _don’t_ |
|
understand him. You may tell him so, with my compliments. You may also |
|
tell him, from me, that after abandoning his worldly goods and position |
|
to this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the head of them. But, no, |
|
gentlemen,” said Stryver, looking all round, and snapping his fingers, |
|
“I know something of human nature, and I tell you that you’ll never |
|
find a fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the mercies of such |
|
precious _protégés_. No, gentlemen; he’ll always show ’em a clean pair |
|
of heels very early in the scuffle, and sneak away.” |
|
|
|
With those words, and a final snap of his fingers, Mr. Stryver |
|
shouldered himself into Fleet-street, amidst the general approbation of |
|
his hearers. Mr. Lorry and Charles Darnay were left alone at the desk, |
|
in the general departure from the Bank. |
|
|
|
“Will you take charge of the letter?” said Mr. Lorry. “You know where to |
|
deliver it?” |
|
|
|
“I do.” |
|
|
|
“Will you undertake to explain, that we suppose it to have been |
|
addressed here, on the chance of our knowing where to forward it, and |
|
that it has been here some time?” |
|
|
|
“I will do so. Do you start for Paris from here?” |
|
|
|
“From here, at eight.” |
|
|
|
“I will come back, to see you off.” |
|
|
|
Very ill at ease with himself, and with Stryver and most other men, |
|
Darnay made the best of his way into the quiet of the Temple, opened the |
|
letter, and read it. These were its contents: |
|
|
|
|
|
“Prison of the Abbaye, Paris. |
|
|
|
“June 21, 1792. “MONSIEUR HERETOFORE THE MARQUIS. |
|
|
|
“After having long been in danger of my life at the hands of the |
|
village, I have been seized, with great violence and indignity, and |
|
brought a long journey on foot to Paris. On the road I have suffered a |
|
great deal. Nor is that all; my house has been destroyed--razed to the |
|
ground. |
|
|
|
“The crime for which I am imprisoned, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, |
|
and for which I shall be summoned before the tribunal, and shall lose my |
|
life (without your so generous help), is, they tell me, treason against |
|
the majesty of the people, in that I have acted against them for an |
|
emigrant. It is in vain I represent that I have acted for them, and not |
|
against, according to your commands. It is in vain I represent that, |
|
before the sequestration of emigrant property, I had remitted the |
|
imposts they had ceased to pay; that I had collected no rent; that I had |
|
had recourse to no process. The only response is, that I have acted for |
|
an emigrant, and where is that emigrant? |
|
|
|
“Ah! most gracious Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, where is that |
|
emigrant? I cry in my sleep where is he? I demand of Heaven, will he |
|
not come to deliver me? No answer. Ah Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, |
|
I send my desolate cry across the sea, hoping it may perhaps reach your |
|
ears through the great bank of Tilson known at Paris! |
|
|
|
“For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of |
|
your noble name, I supplicate you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to |
|
succour and release me. My fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh |
|
Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I pray you be you true to me! |
|
|
|
“From this prison here of horror, whence I every hour tend nearer and |
|
nearer to destruction, I send you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the |
|
assurance of my dolorous and unhappy service. |
|
|
|
“Your afflicted, |
|
|
|
“Gabelle.” |
|
|
|
|
|
The latent uneasiness in Darnay’s mind was roused to vigourous life |
|
by this letter. The peril of an old servant and a good one, whose |
|
only crime was fidelity to himself and his family, stared him so |
|
reproachfully in the face, that, as he walked to and fro in the Temple |
|
considering what to do, he almost hid his face from the passersby. |
|
|
|
He knew very well, that in his horror of the deed which had culminated |
|
the bad deeds and bad reputation of the old family house, in his |
|
resentful suspicions of his uncle, and in the aversion with which his |
|
conscience regarded the crumbling fabric that he was supposed to uphold, |
|
he had acted imperfectly. He knew very well, that in his love for Lucie, |
|
his renunciation of his social place, though by no means new to his own |
|
mind, had been hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have |
|
systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that he had meant to |
|
do it, and that it had never been done. |
|
|
|
The happiness of his own chosen English home, the necessity of being |
|
always actively employed, the swift changes and troubles of the time |
|
which had followed on one another so fast, that the events of this week |
|
annihilated the immature plans of last week, and the events of the week |
|
following made all new again; he knew very well, that to the force of |
|
these circumstances he had yielded:--not without disquiet, but still |
|
without continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had watched |
|
the times for a time of action, and that they had shifted and struggled |
|
until the time had gone by, and the nobility were trooping from |
|
France by every highway and byway, and their property was in course of |
|
confiscation and destruction, and their very names were blotting out, |
|
was as well known to himself as it could be to any new authority in |
|
France that might impeach him for it. |
|
|
|
But, he had oppressed no man, he had imprisoned no man; he was so |
|
far from having harshly exacted payment of his dues, that he had |
|
relinquished them of his own will, thrown himself on a world with no |
|
favour in it, won his own private place there, and earned his own |
|
bread. Monsieur Gabelle had held the impoverished and involved estate |
|
on written instructions, to spare the people, to give them what little |
|
there was to give--such fuel as the heavy creditors would let them have |
|
in the winter, and such produce as could be saved from the same grip in |
|
the summer--and no doubt he had put the fact in plea and proof, for his |
|
own safety, so that it could not but appear now. |
|
|
|
This favoured the desperate resolution Charles Darnay had begun to make, |
|
that he would go to Paris. |
|
|
|
Yes. Like the mariner in the old story, the winds and streams had driven |
|
him within the influence of the Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him |
|
to itself, and he must go. Everything that arose before his mind drifted |
|
him on, faster and faster, more and more steadily, to the terrible |
|
attraction. His latent uneasiness had been, that bad aims were being |
|
worked out in his own unhappy land by bad instruments, and that he who |
|
could not fail to know that he was better than they, was not there, |
|
trying to do something to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of mercy |
|
and humanity. With this uneasiness half stifled, and half reproaching |
|
him, he had been brought to the pointed comparison of himself with the |
|
brave old gentleman in whom duty was so strong; upon that comparison |
|
(injurious to himself) had instantly followed the sneers of Monseigneur, |
|
which had stung him bitterly, and those of Stryver, which above all were |
|
coarse and galling, for old reasons. Upon those, had followed Gabelle’s |
|
letter: the appeal of an innocent prisoner, in danger of death, to his |
|
justice, honour, and good name. |
|
|
|
His resolution was made. He must go to Paris. |
|
|
|
Yes. The Loadstone Rock was drawing him, and he must sail on, until he |
|
struck. He knew of no rock; he saw hardly any danger. The intention |
|
with which he had done what he had done, even although he had left |
|
it incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect that would be |
|
gratefully acknowledged in France on his presenting himself to assert |
|
it. Then, that glorious vision of doing good, which is so often the |
|
sanguine mirage of so many good minds, arose before him, and he even |
|
saw himself in the illusion with some influence to guide this raging |
|
Revolution that was running so fearfully wild. |
|
|
|
As he walked to and fro with his resolution made, he considered that |
|
neither Lucie nor her father must know of it until he was gone. |
|
Lucie should be spared the pain of separation; and her father, always |
|
reluctant to turn his thoughts towards the dangerous ground of old, |
|
should come to the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and not in |
|
the balance of suspense and doubt. How much of the incompleteness of his |
|
situation was referable to her father, through the painful anxiety |
|
to avoid reviving old associations of France in his mind, he did not |
|
discuss with himself. But, that circumstance too, had had its influence |
|
in his course. |
|
|
|
He walked to and fro, with thoughts very busy, until it was time to |
|
return to Tellson’s and take leave of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived |
|
in Paris he would present himself to this old friend, but he must say |
|
nothing of his intention now. |
|
|
|
A carriage with post-horses was ready at the Bank door, and Jerry was |
|
booted and equipped. |
|
|
|
“I have delivered that letter,” said Charles Darnay to Mr. Lorry. “I |
|
would not consent to your being charged with any written answer, but |
|
perhaps you will take a verbal one?” |
|
|
|
“That I will, and readily,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it is not dangerous.” |
|
|
|
“Not at all. Though it is to a prisoner in the Abbaye.” |
|
|
|
“What is his name?” said Mr. Lorry, with his open pocket-book in his |
|
hand. |
|
|
|
“Gabelle.” |
|
|
|
“Gabelle. And what is the message to the unfortunate Gabelle in prison?” |
|
|
|
“Simply, ‘that he has received the letter, and will come.’” |
|
|
|
“Any time mentioned?” |
|
|
|
“He will start upon his journey to-morrow night.” |
|
|
|
“Any person mentioned?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
He helped Mr. Lorry to wrap himself in a number of coats and cloaks, |
|
and went out with him from the warm atmosphere of the old Bank, into the |
|
misty air of Fleet-street. “My love to Lucie, and to little Lucie,” said |
|
Mr. Lorry at parting, “and take precious care of them till I come back.” |
|
Charles Darnay shook his head and doubtfully smiled, as the carriage |
|
rolled away. |
|
|
|
That night--it was the fourteenth of August--he sat up late, and wrote |
|
two fervent letters; one was to Lucie, explaining the strong obligation |
|
he was under to go to Paris, and showing her, at length, the reasons |
|
that he had, for feeling confident that he could become involved in no |
|
personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor, confiding Lucie and |
|
their dear child to his care, and dwelling on the same topics with the |
|
strongest assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch letters |
|
in proof of his safety, immediately after his arrival. |
|
|
|
It was a hard day, that day of being among them, with the first |
|
reservation of their joint lives on his mind. It was a hard matter to |
|
preserve the innocent deceit of which they were profoundly unsuspicious. |
|
But, an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and busy, made him |
|
resolute not to tell her what impended (he had been half moved to do it, |
|
so strange it was to him to act in anything without her quiet aid), and |
|
the day passed quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her |
|
scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would return by-and-bye |
|
(an imaginary engagement took him out, and he had secreted a valise |
|
of clothes ready), and so he emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy |
|
streets, with a heavier heart. |
|
|
|
The unseen force was drawing him fast to itself, now, and all the tides |
|
and winds were setting straight and strong towards it. He left his |
|
two letters with a trusty porter, to be delivered half an hour before |
|
midnight, and no sooner; took horse for Dover; and began his journey. |
|
“For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of |
|
your noble name!” was the poor prisoner’s cry with which he strengthened |
|
his sinking heart, as he left all that was dear on earth behind him, and |
|
floated away for the Loadstone Rock. |
|
|
|
|
|
The end of the second book. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Book the Third--the Track of a Storm |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. |
|
In Secret |
|
|
|
|
|
The traveller fared slowly on his way, who fared towards Paris from |
|
England in the autumn of the year one thousand seven hundred and |
|
ninety-two. More than enough of bad roads, bad equipages, and bad |
|
horses, he would have encountered to delay him, though the fallen and |
|
unfortunate King of France had been upon his throne in all his glory; |
|
but, the changed times were fraught with other obstacles than |
|
these. Every town-gate and village taxing-house had its band of |
|
citizen-patriots, with their national muskets in a most explosive state |
|
of readiness, who stopped all comers and goers, cross-questioned them, |
|
inspected their papers, looked for their names in lists of their own, |
|
turned them back, or sent them on, or stopped them and laid them in |
|
hold, as their capricious judgment or fancy deemed best for the dawning |
|
Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or |
|
Death. |
|
|
|
A very few French leagues of his journey were accomplished, when Charles |
|
Darnay began to perceive that for him along these country roads there |
|
was no hope of return until he should have been declared a good citizen |
|
at Paris. Whatever might befall now, he must on to his journey’s end. |
|
Not a mean village closed upon him, not a common barrier dropped across |
|
the road behind him, but he knew it to be another iron door in |
|
the series that was barred between him and England. The universal |
|
watchfulness so encompassed him, that if he had been taken in a net, |
|
or were being forwarded to his destination in a cage, he could not have |
|
felt his freedom more completely gone. |
|
|
|
This universal watchfulness not only stopped him on the highway twenty |
|
times in a stage, but retarded his progress twenty times in a day, by |
|
riding after him and taking him back, riding before him and stopping him |
|
by anticipation, riding with him and keeping him in charge. He had been |
|
days upon his journey in France alone, when he went to bed tired out, in |
|
a little town on the high road, still a long way from Paris. |
|
|
|
Nothing but the production of the afflicted Gabelle’s letter from his |
|
prison of the Abbaye would have got him on so far. His difficulty at the |
|
guard-house in this small place had been such, that he felt his journey |
|
to have come to a crisis. And he was, therefore, as little surprised as |
|
a man could be, to find himself awakened at the small inn to which he |
|
had been remitted until morning, in the middle of the night. |
|
|
|
Awakened by a timid local functionary and three armed patriots in rough |
|
red caps and with pipes in their mouths, who sat down on the bed. |
|
|
|
“Emigrant,” said the functionary, “I am going to send you on to Paris, |
|
under an escort.” |
|
|
|
“Citizen, I desire nothing more than to get to Paris, though I could |
|
dispense with the escort.” |
|
|
|
“Silence!” growled a red-cap, striking at the coverlet with the butt-end |
|
of his musket. “Peace, aristocrat!” |
|
|
|
“It is as the good patriot says,” observed the timid functionary. “You |
|
are an aristocrat, and must have an escort--and must pay for it.” |
|
|
|
“I have no choice,” said Charles Darnay. |
|
|
|
“Choice! Listen to him!” cried the same scowling red-cap. “As if it was |
|
not a favour to be protected from the lamp-iron!” |
|
|
|
“It is always as the good patriot says,” observed the functionary. “Rise |
|
and dress yourself, emigrant.” |
|
|
|
Darnay complied, and was taken back to the guard-house, where other |
|
patriots in rough red caps were smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by |
|
a watch-fire. Here he paid a heavy price for his escort, and hence he |
|
started with it on the wet, wet roads at three o’clock in the morning. |
|
|
|
The escort were two mounted patriots in red caps and tri-coloured |
|
cockades, armed with national muskets and sabres, who rode one on either |
|
side of him. |
|
|
|
The escorted governed his own horse, but a loose line was attached to |
|
his bridle, the end of which one of the patriots kept girded round his |
|
wrist. In this state they set forth with the sharp rain driving in their |
|
faces: clattering at a heavy dragoon trot over the uneven town pavement, |
|
and out upon the mire-deep roads. In this state they traversed without |
|
change, except of horses and pace, all the mire-deep leagues that lay |
|
between them and the capital. |
|
|
|
They travelled in the night, halting an hour or two after daybreak, and |
|
lying by until the twilight fell. The escort were so wretchedly clothed, |
|
that they twisted straw round their bare legs, and thatched their ragged |
|
shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart from the personal discomfort of |
|
being so attended, and apart from such considerations of present danger |
|
as arose from one of the patriots being chronically drunk, and carrying |
|
his musket very recklessly, Charles Darnay did not allow the restraint |
|
that was laid upon him to awaken any serious fears in his breast; for, |
|
he reasoned with himself that it could have no reference to the merits |
|
of an individual case that was not yet stated, and of representations, |
|
confirmable by the prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not yet made. |
|
|
|
But when they came to the town of Beauvais--which they did at eventide, |
|
when the streets were filled with people--he could not conceal from |
|
himself that the aspect of affairs was very alarming. An ominous crowd |
|
gathered to see him dismount of the posting-yard, and many voices called |
|
out loudly, “Down with the emigrant!” |
|
|
|
He stopped in the act of swinging himself out of his saddle, and, |
|
resuming it as his safest place, said: |
|
|
|
“Emigrant, my friends! Do you not see me here, in France, of my own |
|
will?” |
|
|
|
“You are a cursed emigrant,” cried a farrier, making at him in a |
|
furious manner through the press, hammer in hand; “and you are a cursed |
|
aristocrat!” |
|
|
|
The postmaster interposed himself between this man and the rider’s |
|
bridle (at which he was evidently making), and soothingly said, “Let him |
|
be; let him be! He will be judged at Paris.” |
|
|
|
“Judged!” repeated the farrier, swinging his hammer. “Ay! and condemned |
|
as a traitor.” At this the crowd roared approval. |
|
|
|
Checking the postmaster, who was for turning his horse’s head to the |
|
yard (the drunken patriot sat composedly in his saddle looking on, with |
|
the line round his wrist), Darnay said, as soon as he could make his |
|
voice heard: |
|
|
|
“Friends, you deceive yourselves, or you are deceived. I am not a |
|
traitor.” |
|
|
|
“He lies!” cried the smith. “He is a traitor since the decree. His life |
|
is forfeit to the people. His cursed life is not his own!” |
|
|
|
At the instant when Darnay saw a rush in the eyes of the crowd, which |
|
another instant would have brought upon him, the postmaster turned his |
|
horse into the yard, the escort rode in close upon his horse’s flanks, |
|
and the postmaster shut and barred the crazy double gates. The farrier |
|
struck a blow upon them with his hammer, and the crowd groaned; but, no |
|
more was done. |
|
|
|
“What is this decree that the smith spoke of?” Darnay asked the |
|
postmaster, when he had thanked him, and stood beside him in the yard. |
|
|
|
“Truly, a decree for selling the property of emigrants.” |
|
|
|
“When passed?” |
|
|
|
“On the fourteenth.” |
|
|
|
“The day I left England!” |
|
|
|
“Everybody says it is but one of several, and that there will be |
|
others--if there are not already--banishing all emigrants, and |
|
condemning all to death who return. That is what he meant when he said |
|
your life was not your own.” |
|
|
|
“But there are no such decrees yet?” |
|
|
|
“What do I know!” said the postmaster, shrugging his shoulders; “there |
|
may be, or there will be. It is all the same. What would you have?” |
|
|
|
They rested on some straw in a loft until the middle of the night, and |
|
then rode forward again when all the town was asleep. Among the many |
|
wild changes observable on familiar things which made this wild ride |
|
unreal, not the least was the seeming rarity of sleep. After long and |
|
lonely spurring over dreary roads, they would come to a cluster of poor |
|
cottages, not steeped in darkness, but all glittering with lights, and |
|
would find the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the night, |
|
circling hand in hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty, or all drawn |
|
up together singing a Liberty song. Happily, however, there was sleep in |
|
Beauvais that night to help them out of it and they passed on once more |
|
into solitude and loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and |
|
wet, among impoverished fields that had yielded no fruits of the earth |
|
that year, diversified by the blackened remains of burnt houses, and by |
|
the sudden emergence from ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their |
|
way, of patriot patrols on the watch on all the roads. |
|
|
|
Daylight at last found them before the wall of Paris. The barrier was |
|
closed and strongly guarded when they rode up to it. |
|
|
|
“Where are the papers of this prisoner?” demanded a resolute-looking man |
|
in authority, who was summoned out by the guard. |
|
|
|
Naturally struck by the disagreeable word, Charles Darnay requested the |
|
speaker to take notice that he was a free traveller and French citizen, |
|
in charge of an escort which the disturbed state of the country had |
|
imposed upon him, and which he had paid for. |
|
|
|
“Where,” repeated the same personage, without taking any heed of him |
|
whatever, “are the papers of this prisoner?” |
|
|
|
The drunken patriot had them in his cap, and produced them. Casting his |
|
eyes over Gabelle’s letter, the same personage in authority showed some |
|
disorder and surprise, and looked at Darnay with a close attention. |
|
|
|
He left escort and escorted without saying a word, however, and went |
|
into the guard-room; meanwhile, they sat upon their horses outside the |
|
gate. Looking about him while in this state of suspense, Charles |
|
Darnay observed that the gate was held by a mixed guard of soldiers and |
|
patriots, the latter far outnumbering the former; and that while ingress |
|
into the city for peasants’ carts bringing in supplies, and for similar |
|
traffic and traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the homeliest |
|
people, was very difficult. A numerous medley of men and women, not |
|
to mention beasts and vehicles of various sorts, was waiting to issue |
|
forth; but, the previous identification was so strict, that they |
|
filtered through the barrier very slowly. Some of these people knew |
|
their turn for examination to be so far off, that they lay down on the |
|
ground to sleep or smoke, while others talked together, or loitered |
|
about. The red cap and tri-colour cockade were universal, both among men |
|
and women. |
|
|
|
When he had sat in his saddle some half-hour, taking note of these |
|
things, Darnay found himself confronted by the same man in authority, |
|
who directed the guard to open the barrier. Then he delivered to the |
|
escort, drunk and sober, a receipt for the escorted, and requested him |
|
to dismount. He did so, and the two patriots, leading his tired horse, |
|
turned and rode away without entering the city. |
|
|
|
He accompanied his conductor into a guard-room, smelling of common wine |
|
and tobacco, where certain soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake, |
|
drunk and sober, and in various neutral states between sleeping and |
|
waking, drunkenness and sobriety, were standing and lying about. The |
|
light in the guard-house, half derived from the waning oil-lamps of |
|
the night, and half from the overcast day, was in a correspondingly |
|
uncertain condition. Some registers were lying open on a desk, and an |
|
officer of a coarse, dark aspect, presided over these. |
|
|
|
“Citizen Defarge,” said he to Darnay’s conductor, as he took a slip of |
|
paper to write on. “Is this the emigrant Evrémonde?” |
|
|
|
“This is the man.” |
|
|
|
“Your age, Evrémonde?” |
|
|
|
“Thirty-seven.” |
|
|
|
“Married, Evrémonde?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“Where married?” |
|
|
|
“In England.” |
|
|
|
“Without doubt. Where is your wife, Evrémonde?” |
|
|
|
“In England.” |
|
|
|
“Without doubt. You are consigned, Evrémonde, to the prison of La |
|
Force.” |
|
|
|
“Just Heaven!” exclaimed Darnay. “Under what law, and for what offence?” |
|
|
|
The officer looked up from his slip of paper for a moment. |
|
|
|
“We have new laws, Evrémonde, and new offences, since you were here.” He |
|
said it with a hard smile, and went on writing. |
|
|
|
“I entreat you to observe that I have come here voluntarily, in response |
|
to that written appeal of a fellow-countryman which lies before you. I |
|
demand no more than the opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that |
|
my right?” |
|
|
|
“Emigrants have no rights, Evrémonde,” was the stolid reply. The officer |
|
wrote until he had finished, read over to himself what he had written, |
|
sanded it, and handed it to Defarge, with the words “In secret.” |
|
|
|
Defarge motioned with the paper to the prisoner that he must accompany |
|
him. The prisoner obeyed, and a guard of two armed patriots attended |
|
them. |
|
|
|
“Is it you,” said Defarge, in a low voice, as they went down the |
|
guardhouse steps and turned into Paris, “who married the daughter of |
|
Doctor Manette, once a prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?” |
|
|
|
“Yes,” replied Darnay, looking at him with surprise. |
|
|
|
“My name is Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the Quarter Saint |
|
Antoine. Possibly you have heard of me.” |
|
|
|
“My wife came to your house to reclaim her father? Yes!” |
|
|
|
The word “wife” seemed to serve as a gloomy reminder to Defarge, to say |
|
with sudden impatience, “In the name of that sharp female newly-born, |
|
and called La Guillotine, why did you come to France?” |
|
|
|
“You heard me say why, a minute ago. Do you not believe it is the |
|
truth?” |
|
|
|
“A bad truth for you,” said Defarge, speaking with knitted brows, and |
|
looking straight before him. |
|
|
|
“Indeed I am lost here. All here is so unprecedented, so changed, so |
|
sudden and unfair, that I am absolutely lost. Will you render me a |
|
little help?” |
|
|
|
“None.” Defarge spoke, always looking straight before him. |
|
|
|
“Will you answer me a single question?” |
|
|
|
“Perhaps. According to its nature. You can say what it is.” |
|
|
|
“In this prison that I am going to so unjustly, shall I have some free |
|
communication with the world outside?” |
|
|
|
“You will see.” |
|
|
|
“I am not to be buried there, prejudged, and without any means of |
|
presenting my case?” |
|
|
|
“You will see. But, what then? Other people have been similarly buried |
|
in worse prisons, before now.” |
|
|
|
“But never by me, Citizen Defarge.” |
|
|
|
Defarge glanced darkly at him for answer, and walked on in a steady |
|
and set silence. The deeper he sank into this silence, the fainter hope |
|
there was--or so Darnay thought--of his softening in any slight degree. |
|
He, therefore, made haste to say: |
|
|
|
“It is of the utmost importance to me (you know, Citizen, even better |
|
than I, of how much importance), that I should be able to communicate to |
|
Mr. Lorry of Tellson’s Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris, |
|
the simple fact, without comment, that I have been thrown into the |
|
prison of La Force. Will you cause that to be done for me?” |
|
|
|
“I will do,” Defarge doggedly rejoined, “nothing for you. My duty is to |
|
my country and the People. I am the sworn servant of both, against you. |
|
I will do nothing for you.” |
|
|
|
Charles Darnay felt it hopeless to entreat him further, and his pride |
|
was touched besides. As they walked on in silence, he could not but see |
|
how used the people were to the spectacle of prisoners passing along the |
|
streets. The very children scarcely noticed him. A few passers turned |
|
their heads, and a few shook their fingers at him as an aristocrat; |
|
otherwise, that a man in good clothes should be going to prison, was no |
|
more remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should be |
|
going to work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street through which they |
|
passed, an excited orator, mounted on a stool, was addressing an excited |
|
audience on the crimes against the people, of the king and the royal |
|
family. The few words that he caught from this man’s lips, first made |
|
it known to Charles Darnay that the king was in prison, and that the |
|
foreign ambassadors had one and all left Paris. On the road (except at |
|
Beauvais) he had heard absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal |
|
watchfulness had completely isolated him. |
|
|
|
That he had fallen among far greater dangers than those which had |
|
developed themselves when he left England, he of course knew now. That |
|
perils had thickened about him fast, and might thicken faster and faster |
|
yet, he of course knew now. He could not but admit to himself that he |
|
might not have made this journey, if he could have foreseen the events |
|
of a few days. And yet his misgivings were not so dark as, imagined by |
|
the light of this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the future |
|
was, it was the unknown future, and in its obscurity there was ignorant |
|
hope. The horrible massacre, days and nights long, which, within a few |
|
rounds of the clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed |
|
garnering time of harvest, was as far out of his knowledge as if it had |
|
been a hundred thousand years away. The “sharp female newly-born, and |
|
called La Guillotine,” was hardly known to him, or to the generality |
|
of people, by name. The frightful deeds that were to be soon done, were |
|
probably unimagined at that time in the brains of the doers. How could |
|
they have a place in the shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind? |
|
|
|
Of unjust treatment in detention and hardship, and in cruel separation |
|
from his wife and child, he foreshadowed the likelihood, or the |
|
certainty; but, beyond this, he dreaded nothing distinctly. With this on |
|
his mind, which was enough to carry into a dreary prison courtyard, he |
|
arrived at the prison of La Force. |
|
|
|
A man with a bloated face opened the strong wicket, to whom Defarge |
|
presented “The Emigrant Evrémonde.” |
|
|
|
“What the Devil! How many more of them!” exclaimed the man with the |
|
bloated face. |
|
|
|
Defarge took his receipt without noticing the exclamation, and withdrew, |
|
with his two fellow-patriots. |
|
|
|
“What the Devil, I say again!” exclaimed the gaoler, left with his wife. |
|
“How many more!” |
|
|
|
The gaoler’s wife, being provided with no answer to the question, merely |
|
replied, “One must have patience, my dear!” Three turnkeys who entered |
|
responsive to a bell she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, “For |
|
the love of Liberty;” which sounded in that place like an inappropriate |
|
conclusion. |
|
|
|
The prison of La Force was a gloomy prison, dark and filthy, and with a |
|
horrible smell of foul sleep in it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome |
|
flavour of imprisoned sleep, becomes manifest in all such places that |
|
are ill cared for! |
|
|
|
“In secret, too,” grumbled the gaoler, looking at the written paper. “As |
|
if I was not already full to bursting!” |
|
|
|
He stuck the paper on a file, in an ill-humour, and Charles Darnay |
|
awaited his further pleasure for half an hour: sometimes, pacing to and |
|
fro in the strong arched room: sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in |
|
either case detained to be imprinted on the memory of the chief and his |
|
subordinates. |
|
|
|
“Come!” said the chief, at length taking up his keys, “come with me, |
|
emigrant.” |
|
|
|
Through the dismal prison twilight, his new charge accompanied him by |
|
corridor and staircase, many doors clanging and locking behind them, |
|
until they came into a large, low, vaulted chamber, crowded with |
|
prisoners of both sexes. The women were seated at a long table, reading |
|
and writing, knitting, sewing, and embroidering; the men were for the |
|
most part standing behind their chairs, or lingering up and down the |
|
room. |
|
|
|
In the instinctive association of prisoners with shameful crime and |
|
disgrace, the new-comer recoiled from this company. But the crowning |
|
unreality of his long unreal ride, was, their all at once rising to |
|
receive him, with every refinement of manner known to the time, and with |
|
all the engaging graces and courtesies of life. |
|
|
|
So strangely clouded were these refinements by the prison manners and |
|
gloom, so spectral did they become in the inappropriate squalor and |
|
misery through which they were seen, that Charles Darnay seemed to stand |
|
in a company of the dead. Ghosts all! The ghost of beauty, the ghost |
|
of stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of pride, the ghost of |
|
frivolity, the ghost of wit, the ghost of youth, the ghost of age, all |
|
waiting their dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him eyes |
|
that were changed by the death they had died in coming there. |
|
|
|
It struck him motionless. The gaoler standing at his side, and the other |
|
gaolers moving about, who would have been well enough as to appearance |
|
in the ordinary exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly |
|
coarse contrasted with sorrowing mothers and blooming daughters who were |
|
there--with the apparitions of the coquette, the young beauty, and the |
|
mature woman delicately bred--that the inversion of all experience and |
|
likelihood which the scene of shadows presented, was heightened to its |
|
utmost. Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the long unreal ride some progress |
|
of disease that had brought him to these gloomy shades! |
|
|
|
“In the name of the assembled companions in misfortune,” said a |
|
gentleman of courtly appearance and address, coming forward, “I have the |
|
honour of giving you welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you |
|
on the calamity that has brought you among us. May it soon terminate |
|
happily! It would be an impertinence elsewhere, but it is not so here, |
|
to ask your name and condition?” |
|
|
|
Charles Darnay roused himself, and gave the required information, in |
|
words as suitable as he could find. |
|
|
|
“But I hope,” said the gentleman, following the chief gaoler with his |
|
eyes, who moved across the room, “that you are not in secret?” |
|
|
|
“I do not understand the meaning of the term, but I have heard them say |
|
so.” |
|
|
|
“Ah, what a pity! We so much regret it! But take courage; several |
|
members of our society have been in secret, at first, and it has lasted |
|
but a short time.” Then he added, raising his voice, “I grieve to inform |
|
the society--in secret.” |
|
|
|
There was a murmur of commiseration as Charles Darnay crossed the room |
|
to a grated door where the gaoler awaited him, and many voices--among |
|
which, the soft and compassionate voices of women were conspicuous--gave |
|
him good wishes and encouragement. He turned at the grated door, to |
|
render the thanks of his heart; it closed under the gaoler’s hand; and |
|
the apparitions vanished from his sight forever. |
|
|
|
The wicket opened on a stone staircase, leading upward. When they had |
|
ascended forty steps (the prisoner of half an hour already counted |
|
them), the gaoler opened a low black door, and they passed into a |
|
solitary cell. It struck cold and damp, but was not dark. |
|
|
|
“Yours,” said the gaoler. |
|
|
|
“Why am I confined alone?” |
|
|
|
“How do I know!” |
|
|
|
“I can buy pen, ink, and paper?” |
|
|
|
“Such are not my orders. You will be visited, and can ask then. At |
|
present, you may buy your food, and nothing more.” |
|
|
|
There were in the cell, a chair, a table, and a straw mattress. As |
|
the gaoler made a general inspection of these objects, and of the four |
|
walls, before going out, a wandering fancy wandered through the mind of |
|
the prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to him, that this gaoler |
|
was so unwholesomely bloated, both in face and person, as to look like |
|
a man who had been drowned and filled with water. When the gaoler was |
|
gone, he thought in the same wandering way, “Now am I left, as if I were |
|
dead.” Stopping then, to look down at the mattress, he turned from it |
|
with a sick feeling, and thought, “And here in these crawling creatures |
|
is the first condition of the body after death.” |
|
|
|
“Five paces by four and a half, five paces by four and a half, five |
|
paces by four and a half.” The prisoner walked to and fro in his cell, |
|
counting its measurement, and the roar of the city arose like muffled |
|
drums with a wild swell of voices added to them. “He made shoes, he made |
|
shoes, he made shoes.” The prisoner counted the measurement again, and |
|
paced faster, to draw his mind with him from that latter repetition. |
|
“The ghosts that vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among |
|
them, the appearance of a lady dressed in black, who was leaning in the |
|
embrasure of a window, and she had a light shining upon her golden |
|
hair, and she looked like * * * * Let us ride on again, for God’s sake, |
|
through the illuminated villages with the people all awake! * * * * He |
|
made shoes, he made shoes, he made shoes. * * * * Five paces by four and |
|
a half.” With such scraps tossing and rolling upward from the depths of |
|
his mind, the prisoner walked faster and faster, obstinately counting |
|
and counting; and the roar of the city changed to this extent--that it |
|
still rolled in like muffled drums, but with the wail of voices that he |
|
knew, in the swell that rose above them. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. |
|
The Grindstone |
|
|
|
|
|
Tellson’s Bank, established in the Saint Germain Quarter of Paris, was |
|
in a wing of a large house, approached by a courtyard and shut off from |
|
the street by a high wall and a strong gate. The house belonged to |
|
a great nobleman who had lived in it until he made a flight from the |
|
troubles, in his own cook’s dress, and got across the borders. A |
|
mere beast of the chase flying from hunters, he was still in his |
|
metempsychosis no other than the same Monseigneur, the preparation |
|
of whose chocolate for whose lips had once occupied three strong men |
|
besides the cook in question. |
|
|
|
Monseigneur gone, and the three strong men absolving themselves from the |
|
sin of having drawn his high wages, by being more than ready and |
|
willing to cut his throat on the altar of the dawning Republic one and |
|
indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, Monseigneur’s |
|
house had been first sequestrated, and then confiscated. For, all |
|
things moved so fast, and decree followed decree with that fierce |
|
precipitation, that now upon the third night of the autumn month |
|
of September, patriot emissaries of the law were in possession of |
|
Monseigneur’s house, and had marked it with the tri-colour, and were |
|
drinking brandy in its state apartments. |
|
|
|
A place of business in London like Tellson’s place of business in Paris, |
|
would soon have driven the House out of its mind and into the Gazette. |
|
For, what would staid British responsibility and respectability have |
|
said to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank courtyard, and even to a Cupid |
|
over the counter? Yet such things were. Tellson’s had whitewashed the |
|
Cupid, but he was still to be seen on the ceiling, in the coolest |
|
linen, aiming (as he very often does) at money from morning to |
|
night. Bankruptcy must inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in |
|
Lombard-street, London, and also of a curtained alcove in the rear of |
|
the immortal boy, and also of a looking-glass let into the wall, and |
|
also of clerks not at all old, who danced in public on the slightest |
|
provocation. Yet, a French Tellson’s could get on with these things |
|
exceedingly well, and, as long as the times held together, no man had |
|
taken fright at them, and drawn out his money. |
|
|
|
What money would be drawn out of Tellson’s henceforth, and what would |
|
lie there, lost and forgotten; what plate and jewels would tarnish in |
|
Tellson’s hiding-places, while the depositors rusted in prisons, |
|
and when they should have violently perished; how many accounts with |
|
Tellson’s never to be balanced in this world, must be carried over into |
|
the next; no man could have said, that night, any more than Mr. Jarvis |
|
Lorry could, though he thought heavily of these questions. He sat by |
|
a newly-lighted wood fire (the blighted and unfruitful year was |
|
prematurely cold), and on his honest and courageous face there was a |
|
deeper shade than the pendent lamp could throw, or any object in the |
|
room distortedly reflect--a shade of horror. |
|
|
|
He occupied rooms in the Bank, in his fidelity to the House of which |
|
he had grown to be a part, like strong root-ivy. It chanced that they |
|
derived a kind of security from the patriotic occupation of the main |
|
building, but the true-hearted old gentleman never calculated about |
|
that. All such circumstances were indifferent to him, so that he did |
|
his duty. On the opposite side of the courtyard, under a colonnade, |
|
was extensive standing--for carriages--where, indeed, some carriages |
|
of Monseigneur yet stood. Against two of the pillars were fastened two |
|
great flaring flambeaux, and in the light of these, standing out in the |
|
open air, was a large grindstone: a roughly mounted thing which appeared |
|
to have hurriedly been brought there from some neighbouring smithy, |
|
or other workshop. Rising and looking out of window at these harmless |
|
objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and retired to his seat by the fire. He had |
|
opened, not only the glass window, but the lattice blind outside it, and |
|
he had closed both again, and he shivered through his frame. |
|
|
|
From the streets beyond the high wall and the strong gate, there came |
|
the usual night hum of the city, with now and then an indescribable ring |
|
in it, weird and unearthly, as if some unwonted sounds of a terrible |
|
nature were going up to Heaven. |
|
|
|
“Thank God,” said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands, “that no one near and |
|
dear to me is in this dreadful town to-night. May He have mercy on all |
|
who are in danger!” |
|
|
|
Soon afterwards, the bell at the great gate sounded, and he thought, |
|
“They have come back!” and sat listening. But, there was no loud |
|
irruption into the courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate |
|
clash again, and all was quiet. |
|
|
|
The nervousness and dread that were upon him inspired that vague |
|
uneasiness respecting the Bank, which a great change would naturally |
|
awaken, with such feelings roused. It was well guarded, and he got up to |
|
go among the trusty people who were watching it, when his door suddenly |
|
opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of which he fell back in |
|
amazement. |
|
|
|
Lucie and her father! Lucie with her arms stretched out to him, and with |
|
that old look of earnestness so concentrated and intensified, that it |
|
seemed as though it had been stamped upon her face expressly to give |
|
force and power to it in this one passage of her life. |
|
|
|
“What is this?” cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and confused. “What is the |
|
matter? Lucie! Manette! What has happened? What has brought you here? |
|
What is it?” |
|
|
|
With the look fixed upon him, in her paleness and wildness, she panted |
|
out in his arms, imploringly, “O my dear friend! My husband!” |
|
|
|
“Your husband, Lucie?” |
|
|
|
“Charles.” |
|
|
|
“What of Charles?” |
|
|
|
“Here. |
|
|
|
“Here, in Paris?” |
|
|
|
“Has been here some days--three or four--I don’t know how many--I can’t |
|
collect my thoughts. An errand of generosity brought him here unknown to |
|
us; he was stopped at the barrier, and sent to prison.” |
|
|
|
The old man uttered an irrepressible cry. Almost at the same moment, the |
|
bell of the great gate rang again, and a loud noise of feet and voices |
|
came pouring into the courtyard. |
|
|
|
“What is that noise?” said the Doctor, turning towards the window. |
|
|
|
“Don’t look!” cried Mr. Lorry. “Don’t look out! Manette, for your life, |
|
don’t touch the blind!” |
|
|
|
The Doctor turned, with his hand upon the fastening of the window, and |
|
said, with a cool, bold smile: |
|
|
|
“My dear friend, I have a charmed life in this city. I have been |
|
a Bastille prisoner. There is no patriot in Paris--in Paris? In |
|
France--who, knowing me to have been a prisoner in the Bastille, would |
|
touch me, except to overwhelm me with embraces, or carry me in triumph. |
|
My old pain has given me a power that has brought us through the |
|
barrier, and gained us news of Charles there, and brought us here. I |
|
knew it would be so; I knew I could help Charles out of all danger; I |
|
told Lucie so.--What is that noise?” His hand was again upon the window. |
|
|
|
“Don’t look!” cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely desperate. “No, Lucie, my |
|
dear, nor you!” He got his arm round her, and held her. “Don’t be so |
|
terrified, my love. I solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm |
|
having happened to Charles; that I had no suspicion even of his being in |
|
this fatal place. What prison is he in?” |
|
|
|
“La Force!” |
|
|
|
“La Force! Lucie, my child, if ever you were brave and serviceable in |
|
your life--and you were always both--you will compose yourself now, to |
|
do exactly as I bid you; for more depends upon it than you can think, or |
|
I can say. There is no help for you in any action on your part to-night; |
|
you cannot possibly stir out. I say this, because what I must bid you |
|
to do for Charles’s sake, is the hardest thing to do of all. You must |
|
instantly be obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me put you in a |
|
room at the back here. You must leave your father and me alone for |
|
two minutes, and as there are Life and Death in the world you must not |
|
delay.” |
|
|
|
“I will be submissive to you. I see in your face that you know I can do |
|
nothing else than this. I know you are true.” |
|
|
|
The old man kissed her, and hurried her into his room, and turned the |
|
key; then, came hurrying back to the Doctor, and opened the window and |
|
partly opened the blind, and put his hand upon the Doctor’s arm, and |
|
looked out with him into the courtyard. |
|
|
|
Looked out upon a throng of men and women: not enough in number, or near |
|
enough, to fill the courtyard: not more than forty or fifty in all. The |
|
people in possession of the house had let them in at the gate, and they |
|
had rushed in to work at the grindstone; it had evidently been set up |
|
there for their purpose, as in a convenient and retired spot. |
|
|
|
But, such awful workers, and such awful work! |
|
|
|
The grindstone had a double handle, and, turning at it madly were two |
|
men, whose faces, as their long hair flapped back when the whirlings of |
|
the grindstone brought their faces up, were more horrible and cruel than |
|
the visages of the wildest savages in their most barbarous disguise. |
|
False eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck upon them, and their |
|
hideous countenances were all bloody and sweaty, and all awry with |
|
howling, and all staring and glaring with beastly excitement and want of |
|
sleep. As these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now flung |
|
forward over their eyes, now flung backward over their necks, some women |
|
held wine to their mouths that they might drink; and what with dropping |
|
blood, and what with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks |
|
struck out of the stone, all their wicked atmosphere seemed gore and |
|
fire. The eye could not detect one creature in the group free from |
|
the smear of blood. Shouldering one another to get next at the |
|
sharpening-stone, were men stripped to the waist, with the stain all |
|
over their limbs and bodies; men in all sorts of rags, with the stain |
|
upon those rags; men devilishly set off with spoils of women’s lace |
|
and silk and ribbon, with the stain dyeing those trifles through |
|
and through. Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all brought to be |
|
sharpened, were all red with it. Some of the hacked swords were tied to |
|
the wrists of those who carried them, with strips of linen and fragments |
|
of dress: ligatures various in kind, but all deep of the one colour. And |
|
as the frantic wielders of these weapons snatched them from the stream |
|
of sparks and tore away into the streets, the same red hue was red in |
|
their frenzied eyes;--eyes which any unbrutalised beholder would have |
|
given twenty years of life, to petrify with a well-directed gun. |
|
|
|
All this was seen in a moment, as the vision of a drowning man, or of |
|
any human creature at any very great pass, could see a world if it |
|
were there. They drew back from the window, and the Doctor looked for |
|
explanation in his friend’s ashy face. |
|
|
|
“They are,” Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing fearfully round at |
|
the locked room, “murdering the prisoners. If you are sure of what you |
|
say; if you really have the power you think you have--as I believe you |
|
have--make yourself known to these devils, and get taken to La Force. It |
|
may be too late, I don’t know, but let it not be a minute later!” |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette pressed his hand, hastened bareheaded out of the room, |
|
and was in the courtyard when Mr. Lorry regained the blind. |
|
|
|
His streaming white hair, his remarkable face, and the impetuous |
|
confidence of his manner, as he put the weapons aside like water, |
|
carried him in an instant to the heart of the concourse at the stone. |
|
For a few moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a murmur, and |
|
the unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry saw him, |
|
surrounded by all, and in the midst of a line of twenty men long, all |
|
linked shoulder to shoulder, and hand to shoulder, hurried out with |
|
cries of--“Live the Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner’s |
|
kindred in La Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in front there! Save |
|
the prisoner Evrémonde at La Force!” and a thousand answering shouts. |
|
|
|
He closed the lattice again with a fluttering heart, closed the window |
|
and the curtain, hastened to Lucie, and told her that her father was |
|
assisted by the people, and gone in search of her husband. He found |
|
her child and Miss Pross with her; but, it never occurred to him to be |
|
surprised by their appearance until a long time afterwards, when he sat |
|
watching them in such quiet as the night knew. |
|
|
|
Lucie had, by that time, fallen into a stupor on the floor at his feet, |
|
clinging to his hand. Miss Pross had laid the child down on his own |
|
bed, and her head had gradually fallen on the pillow beside her pretty |
|
charge. O the long, long night, with the moans of the poor wife! And O |
|
the long, long night, with no return of her father and no tidings! |
|
|
|
Twice more in the darkness the bell at the great gate sounded, and the |
|
irruption was repeated, and the grindstone whirled and spluttered. |
|
“What is it?” cried Lucie, affrighted. “Hush! The soldiers’ swords are |
|
sharpened there,” said Mr. Lorry. “The place is national property now, |
|
and used as a kind of armoury, my love.” |
|
|
|
Twice more in all; but, the last spell of work was feeble and fitful. |
|
Soon afterwards the day began to dawn, and he softly detached himself |
|
from the clasping hand, and cautiously looked out again. A man, so |
|
besmeared that he might have been a sorely wounded soldier creeping back |
|
to consciousness on a field of slain, was rising from the pavement by |
|
the side of the grindstone, and looking about him with a vacant air. |
|
Shortly, this worn-out murderer descried in the imperfect light one of |
|
the carriages of Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle, |
|
climbed in at the door, and shut himself up to take his rest on its |
|
dainty cushions. |
|
|
|
The great grindstone, Earth, had turned when Mr. Lorry looked out again, |
|
and the sun was red on the courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood |
|
alone there in the calm morning air, with a red upon it that the sun had |
|
never given, and would never take away. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. |
|
The Shadow |
|
|
|
|
|
One of the first considerations which arose in the business mind of Mr. |
|
Lorry when business hours came round, was this:--that he had no right to |
|
imperil Tellson’s by sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner under |
|
the Bank roof. His own possessions, safety, life, he would have hazarded |
|
for Lucie and her child, without a moment’s demur; but the great trust |
|
he held was not his own, and as to that business charge he was a strict |
|
man of business. |
|
|
|
At first, his mind reverted to Defarge, and he thought of finding out |
|
the wine-shop again and taking counsel with its master in reference to |
|
the safest dwelling-place in the distracted state of the city. But, the |
|
same consideration that suggested him, repudiated him; he lived in the |
|
most violent Quarter, and doubtless was influential there, and deep in |
|
its dangerous workings. |
|
|
|
Noon coming, and the Doctor not returning, and every minute’s delay |
|
tending to compromise Tellson’s, Mr. Lorry advised with Lucie. She said |
|
that her father had spoken of hiring a lodging for a short term, in that |
|
Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was no business objection to |
|
this, and as he foresaw that even if it were all well with Charles, and |
|
he were to be released, he could not hope to leave the city, Mr. Lorry |
|
went out in quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high up |
|
in a removed by-street where the closed blinds in all the other windows |
|
of a high melancholy square of buildings marked deserted homes. |
|
|
|
To this lodging he at once removed Lucie and her child, and Miss Pross: |
|
giving them what comfort he could, and much more than he had himself. |
|
He left Jerry with them, as a figure to fill a doorway that would bear |
|
considerable knocking on the head, and returned to his own occupations. |
|
A disturbed and doleful mind he brought to bear upon them, and slowly |
|
and heavily the day lagged on with him. |
|
|
|
It wore itself out, and wore him out with it, until the Bank closed. He |
|
was again alone in his room of the previous night, considering what to |
|
do next, when he heard a foot upon the stair. In a few moments, a |
|
man stood in his presence, who, with a keenly observant look at him, |
|
addressed him by his name. |
|
|
|
“Your servant,” said Mr. Lorry. “Do you know me?” |
|
|
|
He was a strongly made man with dark curling hair, from forty-five |
|
to fifty years of age. For answer he repeated, without any change of |
|
emphasis, the words: |
|
|
|
“Do you know me?” |
|
|
|
“I have seen you somewhere.” |
|
|
|
“Perhaps at my wine-shop?” |
|
|
|
Much interested and agitated, Mr. Lorry said: “You come from Doctor |
|
Manette?” |
|
|
|
“Yes. I come from Doctor Manette.” |
|
|
|
“And what says he? What does he send me?” |
|
|
|
Defarge gave into his anxious hand, an open scrap of paper. It bore the |
|
words in the Doctor’s writing: |
|
|
|
“Charles is safe, but I cannot safely leave this place yet. |
|
I have obtained the favour that the bearer has a short note |
|
from Charles to his wife. Let the bearer see his wife.” |
|
|
|
It was dated from La Force, within an hour. |
|
|
|
“Will you accompany me,” said Mr. Lorry, joyfully relieved after reading |
|
this note aloud, “to where his wife resides?” |
|
|
|
“Yes,” returned Defarge. |
|
|
|
Scarcely noticing as yet, in what a curiously reserved and mechanical |
|
way Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry put on his hat and they went down into the |
|
courtyard. There, they found two women; one, knitting. |
|
|
|
“Madame Defarge, surely!” said Mr. Lorry, who had left her in exactly |
|
the same attitude some seventeen years ago. |
|
|
|
“It is she,” observed her husband. |
|
|
|
“Does Madame go with us?” inquired Mr. Lorry, seeing that she moved as |
|
they moved. |
|
|
|
“Yes. That she may be able to recognise the faces and know the persons. |
|
It is for their safety.” |
|
|
|
Beginning to be struck by Defarge’s manner, Mr. Lorry looked dubiously |
|
at him, and led the way. Both the women followed; the second woman being |
|
The Vengeance. |
|
|
|
They passed through the intervening streets as quickly as they might, |
|
ascended the staircase of the new domicile, were admitted by Jerry, |
|
and found Lucie weeping, alone. She was thrown into a transport by the |
|
tidings Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and clasped the hand that |
|
delivered his note--little thinking what it had been doing near him in |
|
the night, and might, but for a chance, have done to him. |
|
|
|
“DEAREST,--Take courage. I am well, and your father has |
|
influence around me. You cannot answer this. |
|
Kiss our child for me.” |
|
|
|
That was all the writing. It was so much, however, to her who received |
|
it, that she turned from Defarge to his wife, and kissed one of the |
|
hands that knitted. It was a passionate, loving, thankful, womanly |
|
action, but the hand made no response--dropped cold and heavy, and took |
|
to its knitting again. |
|
|
|
There was something in its touch that gave Lucie a check. She stopped in |
|
the act of putting the note in her bosom, and, with her hands yet at her |
|
neck, looked terrified at Madame Defarge. Madame Defarge met the lifted |
|
eyebrows and forehead with a cold, impassive stare. |
|
|
|
“My dear,” said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain; “there are frequent |
|
risings in the streets; and, although it is not likely they will ever |
|
trouble you, Madame Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power |
|
to protect at such times, to the end that she may know them--that she |
|
may identify them. I believe,” said Mr. Lorry, rather halting in his |
|
reassuring words, as the stony manner of all the three impressed itself |
|
upon him more and more, “I state the case, Citizen Defarge?” |
|
|
|
Defarge looked gloomily at his wife, and gave no other answer than a |
|
gruff sound of acquiescence. |
|
|
|
“You had better, Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, doing all he could to |
|
propitiate, by tone and manner, “have the dear child here, and our |
|
good Pross. Our good Pross, Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no |
|
French.” |
|
|
|
The lady in question, whose rooted conviction that she was more than a |
|
match for any foreigner, was not to be shaken by distress and, danger, |
|
appeared with folded arms, and observed in English to The Vengeance, |
|
whom her eyes first encountered, “Well, I am sure, Boldface! I hope |
|
_you_ are pretty well!” She also bestowed a British cough on Madame |
|
Defarge; but, neither of the two took much heed of her. |
|
|
|
“Is that his child?” said Madame Defarge, stopping in her work for the |
|
first time, and pointing her knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it |
|
were the finger of Fate. |
|
|
|
“Yes, madame,” answered Mr. Lorry; “this is our poor prisoner’s darling |
|
daughter, and only child.” |
|
|
|
The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed to fall so |
|
threatening and dark on the child, that her mother instinctively |
|
kneeled on the ground beside her, and held her to her breast. The |
|
shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed then to fall, |
|
threatening and dark, on both the mother and the child. |
|
|
|
“It is enough, my husband,” said Madame Defarge. “I have seen them. We |
|
may go.” |
|
|
|
But, the suppressed manner had enough of menace in it--not visible and |
|
presented, but indistinct and withheld--to alarm Lucie into saying, as |
|
she laid her appealing hand on Madame Defarge’s dress: |
|
|
|
“You will be good to my poor husband. You will do him no harm. You will |
|
help me to see him if you can?” |
|
|
|
“Your husband is not my business here,” returned Madame Defarge, looking |
|
down at her with perfect composure. “It is the daughter of your father |
|
who is my business here.” |
|
|
|
“For my sake, then, be merciful to my husband. For my child’s sake! She |
|
will put her hands together and pray you to be merciful. We are more |
|
afraid of you than of these others.” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge received it as a compliment, and looked at her husband. |
|
Defarge, who had been uneasily biting his thumb-nail and looking at her, |
|
collected his face into a sterner expression. |
|
|
|
“What is it that your husband says in that little letter?” asked Madame |
|
Defarge, with a lowering smile. “Influence; he says something touching |
|
influence?” |
|
|
|
“That my father,” said Lucie, hurriedly taking the paper from her |
|
breast, but with her alarmed eyes on her questioner and not on it, “has |
|
much influence around him.” |
|
|
|
“Surely it will release him!” said Madame Defarge. “Let it do so.” |
|
|
|
“As a wife and mother,” cried Lucie, most earnestly, “I implore you to |
|
have pity on me and not to exercise any power that you possess, against |
|
my innocent husband, but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman, think |
|
of me. As a wife and mother!” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge looked, coldly as ever, at the suppliant, and said, |
|
turning to her friend The Vengeance: |
|
|
|
“The wives and mothers we have been used to see, since we were as little |
|
as this child, and much less, have not been greatly considered? We have |
|
known _their_ husbands and fathers laid in prison and kept from them, |
|
often enough? All our lives, we have seen our sister-women suffer, in |
|
themselves and in their children, poverty, nakedness, hunger, thirst, |
|
sickness, misery, oppression and neglect of all kinds?” |
|
|
|
“We have seen nothing else,” returned The Vengeance. |
|
|
|
“We have borne this a long time,” said Madame Defarge, turning her eyes |
|
again upon Lucie. “Judge you! Is it likely that the trouble of one wife |
|
and mother would be much to us now?” |
|
|
|
She resumed her knitting and went out. The Vengeance followed. Defarge |
|
went last, and closed the door. |
|
|
|
“Courage, my dear Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, as he raised her. “Courage, |
|
courage! So far all goes well with us--much, much better than it has of |
|
late gone with many poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart.” |
|
|
|
“I am not thankless, I hope, but that dreadful woman seems to throw a |
|
shadow on me and on all my hopes.” |
|
|
|
“Tut, tut!” said Mr. Lorry; “what is this despondency in the brave |
|
little breast? A shadow indeed! No substance in it, Lucie.” |
|
|
|
But the shadow of the manner of these Defarges was dark upon himself, |
|
for all that, and in his secret mind it troubled him greatly. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. |
|
Calm in Storm |
|
|
|
|
|
Doctor Manette did not return until the morning of the fourth day of his |
|
absence. So much of what had happened in that dreadful time as could be |
|
kept from the knowledge of Lucie was so well concealed from her, that |
|
not until long afterwards, when France and she were far apart, did she |
|
know that eleven hundred defenceless prisoners of both sexes and all |
|
ages had been killed by the populace; that four days and nights had been |
|
darkened by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had been |
|
tainted by the slain. She only knew that there had been an attack upon |
|
the prisons, that all political prisoners had been in danger, and that |
|
some had been dragged out by the crowd and murdered. |
|
|
|
To Mr. Lorry, the Doctor communicated under an injunction of secrecy on |
|
which he had no need to dwell, that the crowd had taken him through a |
|
scene of carnage to the prison of La Force. That, in the prison he had |
|
found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before which the prisoners were |
|
brought singly, and by which they were rapidly ordered to be put forth |
|
to be massacred, or to be released, or (in a few cases) to be sent back |
|
to their cells. That, presented by his conductors to this Tribunal, he |
|
had announced himself by name and profession as having been for eighteen |
|
years a secret and unaccused prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the |
|
body so sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and that this |
|
man was Defarge. |
|
|
|
That, hereupon he had ascertained, through the registers on the table, |
|
that his son-in-law was among the living prisoners, and had pleaded hard |
|
to the Tribunal--of whom some members were asleep and some awake, some |
|
dirty with murder and some clean, some sober and some not--for his life |
|
and liberty. That, in the first frantic greetings lavished on himself as |
|
a notable sufferer under the overthrown system, it had been accorded |
|
to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the lawless Court, and |
|
examined. That, he seemed on the point of being at once released, when |
|
the tide in his favour met with some unexplained check (not intelligible |
|
to the Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference. That, |
|
the man sitting as President had then informed Doctor Manette that |
|
the prisoner must remain in custody, but should, for his sake, be held |
|
inviolate in safe custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner |
|
was removed to the interior of the prison again; but, that he, the |
|
Doctor, had then so strongly pleaded for permission to remain and |
|
assure himself that his son-in-law was, through no malice or mischance, |
|
delivered to the concourse whose murderous yells outside the gate had |
|
often drowned the proceedings, that he had obtained the permission, and |
|
had remained in that Hall of Blood until the danger was over. |
|
|
|
The sights he had seen there, with brief snatches of food and sleep by |
|
intervals, shall remain untold. The mad joy over the prisoners who were |
|
saved, had astounded him scarcely less than the mad ferocity against |
|
those who were cut to pieces. One prisoner there was, he said, who had |
|
been discharged into the street free, but at whom a mistaken savage had |
|
thrust a pike as he passed out. Being besought to go to him and dress |
|
the wound, the Doctor had passed out at the same gate, and had found him |
|
in the arms of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the bodies |
|
of their victims. With an inconsistency as monstrous as anything in this |
|
awful nightmare, they had helped the healer, and tended the wounded man |
|
with the gentlest solicitude--had made a litter for him and escorted him |
|
carefully from the spot--had then caught up their weapons and plunged |
|
anew into a butchery so dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes |
|
with his hands, and swooned away in the midst of it. |
|
|
|
As Mr. Lorry received these confidences, and as he watched the face of |
|
his friend now sixty-two years of age, a misgiving arose within him that |
|
such dread experiences would revive the old danger. |
|
|
|
But, he had never seen his friend in his present aspect: he had never |
|
at all known him in his present character. For the first time the Doctor |
|
felt, now, that his suffering was strength and power. For the first time |
|
he felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the iron which |
|
could break the prison door of his daughter’s husband, and deliver him. |
|
“It all tended to a good end, my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin. |
|
As my beloved child was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be |
|
helpful now in restoring the dearest part of herself to her; by the aid |
|
of Heaven I will do it!” Thus, Doctor Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw |
|
the kindled eyes, the resolute face, the calm strong look and bearing |
|
of the man whose life always seemed to him to have been stopped, like a |
|
clock, for so many years, and then set going again with an energy which |
|
had lain dormant during the cessation of its usefulness, he believed. |
|
|
|
Greater things than the Doctor had at that time to contend with, would |
|
have yielded before his persevering purpose. While he kept himself |
|
in his place, as a physician, whose business was with all degrees |
|
of mankind, bond and free, rich and poor, bad and good, he used his |
|
personal influence so wisely, that he was soon the inspecting physician |
|
of three prisons, and among them of La Force. He could now assure Lucie |
|
that her husband was no longer confined alone, but was mixed with the |
|
general body of prisoners; he saw her husband weekly, and brought sweet |
|
messages to her, straight from his lips; sometimes her husband himself |
|
sent a letter to her (though never by the Doctor’s hand), but she was |
|
not permitted to write to him: for, among the many wild suspicions of |
|
plots in the prisons, the wildest of all pointed at emigrants who were |
|
known to have made friends or permanent connections abroad. |
|
|
|
This new life of the Doctor’s was an anxious life, no doubt; still, the |
|
sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that there was a new sustaining pride in it. |
|
Nothing unbecoming tinged the pride; it was a natural and worthy one; |
|
but he observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor knew, that up to that |
|
time, his imprisonment had been associated in the minds of his daughter |
|
and his friend, with his personal affliction, deprivation, and weakness. |
|
Now that this was changed, and he knew himself to be invested through |
|
that old trial with forces to which they both looked for Charles’s |
|
ultimate safety and deliverance, he became so far exalted by the change, |
|
that he took the lead and direction, and required them as the weak, to |
|
trust to him as the strong. The preceding relative positions of himself |
|
and Lucie were reversed, yet only as the liveliest gratitude and |
|
affection could reverse them, for he could have had no pride but in |
|
rendering some service to her who had rendered so much to him. “All |
|
curious to see,” thought Mr. Lorry, in his amiably shrewd way, “but all |
|
natural and right; so, take the lead, my dear friend, and keep it; it |
|
couldn’t be in better hands.” |
|
|
|
But, though the Doctor tried hard, and never ceased trying, to get |
|
Charles Darnay set at liberty, or at least to get him brought to trial, |
|
the public current of the time set too strong and fast for him. The new |
|
era began; the king was tried, doomed, and beheaded; the Republic of |
|
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for victory or death |
|
against the world in arms; the black flag waved night and day from the |
|
great towers of Notre Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to rise |
|
against the tyrants of the earth, rose from all the varying soils |
|
of France, as if the dragon’s teeth had been sown broadcast, and |
|
had yielded fruit equally on hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and |
|
alluvial mud, under the bright sky of the South and under the clouds of |
|
the North, in fell and forest, in the vineyards and the olive-grounds |
|
and among the cropped grass and the stubble of the corn, along the |
|
fruitful banks of the broad rivers, and in the sand of the sea-shore. |
|
What private solicitude could rear itself against the deluge of the Year |
|
One of Liberty--the deluge rising from below, not falling from above, |
|
and with the windows of Heaven shut, not opened! |
|
|
|
There was no pause, no pity, no peace, no interval of relenting rest, no |
|
measurement of time. Though days and nights circled as regularly as when |
|
time was young, and the evening and morning were the first day, other |
|
count of time there was none. Hold of it was lost in the raging fever |
|
of a nation, as it is in the fever of one patient. Now, breaking the |
|
unnatural silence of a whole city, the executioner showed the people the |
|
head of the king--and now, it seemed almost in the same breath, the |
|
head of his fair wife which had had eight weary months of imprisoned |
|
widowhood and misery, to turn it grey. |
|
|
|
And yet, observing the strange law of contradiction which obtains in |
|
all such cases, the time was long, while it flamed by so fast. A |
|
revolutionary tribunal in the capital, and forty or fifty thousand |
|
revolutionary committees all over the land; a law of the Suspected, |
|
which struck away all security for liberty or life, and delivered over |
|
any good and innocent person to any bad and guilty one; prisons gorged |
|
with people who had committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing; |
|
these things became the established order and nature of appointed |
|
things, and seemed to be ancient usage before they were many weeks old. |
|
Above all, one hideous figure grew as familiar as if it had been before |
|
the general gaze from the foundations of the world--the figure of the |
|
sharp female called La Guillotine. |
|
|
|
It was the popular theme for jests; it was the best cure for headache, |
|
it infallibly prevented the hair from turning grey, it imparted a |
|
peculiar delicacy to the complexion, it was the National Razor which |
|
shaved close: who kissed La Guillotine, looked through the little window |
|
and sneezed into the sack. It was the sign of the regeneration of the |
|
human race. It superseded the Cross. Models of it were worn on breasts |
|
from which the Cross was discarded, and it was bowed down to and |
|
believed in where the Cross was denied. |
|
|
|
It sheared off heads so many, that it, and the ground it most polluted, |
|
were a rotten red. It was taken to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young |
|
Devil, and was put together again when the occasion wanted it. It hushed |
|
the eloquent, struck down the powerful, abolished the beautiful and |
|
good. Twenty-two friends of high public mark, twenty-one living and one |
|
dead, it had lopped the heads off, in one morning, in as many minutes. |
|
The name of the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to the chief |
|
functionary who worked it; but, so armed, he was stronger than his |
|
namesake, and blinder, and tore away the gates of God’s own Temple every |
|
day. |
|
|
|
Among these terrors, and the brood belonging to them, the Doctor walked |
|
with a steady head: confident in his power, cautiously persistent in his |
|
end, never doubting that he would save Lucie’s husband at last. Yet the |
|
current of the time swept by, so strong and deep, and carried the time |
|
away so fiercely, that Charles had lain in prison one year and three |
|
months when the Doctor was thus steady and confident. So much more |
|
wicked and distracted had the Revolution grown in that December month, |
|
that the rivers of the South were encumbered with the bodies of the |
|
violently drowned by night, and prisoners were shot in lines and squares |
|
under the southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the |
|
terrors with a steady head. No man better known than he, in Paris at |
|
that day; no man in a stranger situation. Silent, humane, indispensable |
|
in hospital and prison, using his art equally among assassins and |
|
victims, he was a man apart. In the exercise of his skill, the |
|
appearance and the story of the Bastille Captive removed him from all |
|
other men. He was not suspected or brought in question, any more than if |
|
he had indeed been recalled to life some eighteen years before, or were |
|
a Spirit moving among mortals. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V. |
|
The Wood-Sawyer |
|
|
|
|
|
One year and three months. During all that time Lucie was never |
|
sure, from hour to hour, but that the Guillotine would strike off her |
|
husband’s head next day. Every day, through the stony streets, the |
|
tumbrils now jolted heavily, filled with Condemned. Lovely girls; bright |
|
women, brown-haired, black-haired, and grey; youths; stalwart men and |
|
old; gentle born and peasant born; all red wine for La Guillotine, all |
|
daily brought into light from the dark cellars of the loathsome prisons, |
|
and carried to her through the streets to slake her devouring thirst. |
|
Liberty, equality, fraternity, or death;--the last, much the easiest to |
|
bestow, O Guillotine! |
|
|
|
If the suddenness of her calamity, and the whirling wheels of the time, |
|
had stunned the Doctor’s daughter into awaiting the result in idle |
|
despair, it would but have been with her as it was with many. But, from |
|
the hour when she had taken the white head to her fresh young bosom in |
|
the garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true to her duties. She was |
|
truest to them in the season of trial, as all the quietly loyal and good |
|
will always be. |
|
|
|
As soon as they were established in their new residence, and her father |
|
had entered on the routine of his avocations, she arranged the little |
|
household as exactly as if her husband had been there. Everything had |
|
its appointed place and its appointed time. Little Lucie she taught, |
|
as regularly, as if they had all been united in their English home. The |
|
slight devices with which she cheated herself into the show of a belief |
|
that they would soon be reunited--the little preparations for his speedy |
|
return, the setting aside of his chair and his books--these, and the |
|
solemn prayer at night for one dear prisoner especially, among the many |
|
unhappy souls in prison and the shadow of death--were almost the only |
|
outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind. |
|
|
|
She did not greatly alter in appearance. The plain dark dresses, akin to |
|
mourning dresses, which she and her child wore, were as neat and as well |
|
attended to as the brighter clothes of happy days. She lost her colour, |
|
and the old and intent expression was a constant, not an occasional, |
|
thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty and comely. Sometimes, at |
|
night on kissing her father, she would burst into the grief she had |
|
repressed all day, and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven, |
|
was on him. He always resolutely answered: “Nothing can happen to him |
|
without my knowledge, and I know that I can save him, Lucie.” |
|
|
|
They had not made the round of their changed life many weeks, when her |
|
father said to her, on coming home one evening: |
|
|
|
“My dear, there is an upper window in the prison, to which Charles can |
|
sometimes gain access at three in the afternoon. When he can get to |
|
it--which depends on many uncertainties and incidents--he might see you |
|
in the street, he thinks, if you stood in a certain place that I can |
|
show you. But you will not be able to see him, my poor child, and even |
|
if you could, it would be unsafe for you to make a sign of recognition.” |
|
|
|
“O show me the place, my father, and I will go there every day.” |
|
|
|
From that time, in all weathers, she waited there two hours. As the |
|
clock struck two, she was there, and at four she turned resignedly away. |
|
When it was not too wet or inclement for her child to be with her, they |
|
went together; at other times she was alone; but, she never missed a |
|
single day. |
|
|
|
It was the dark and dirty corner of a small winding street. The hovel |
|
of a cutter of wood into lengths for burning, was the only house at that |
|
end; all else was wall. On the third day of her being there, he noticed |
|
her. |
|
|
|
“Good day, citizeness.” |
|
|
|
“Good day, citizen.” |
|
|
|
This mode of address was now prescribed by decree. It had been |
|
established voluntarily some time ago, among the more thorough patriots; |
|
but, was now law for everybody. |
|
|
|
“Walking here again, citizeness?” |
|
|
|
“You see me, citizen!” |
|
|
|
The wood-sawyer, who was a little man with a redundancy of gesture (he |
|
had once been a mender of roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed |
|
at the prison, and putting his ten fingers before his face to represent |
|
bars, peeped through them jocosely. |
|
|
|
“But it’s not my business,” said he. And went on sawing his wood. |
|
|
|
Next day he was looking out for her, and accosted her the moment she |
|
appeared. |
|
|
|
“What? Walking here again, citizeness?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, citizen.” |
|
|
|
“Ah! A child too! Your mother, is it not, my little citizeness?” |
|
|
|
“Do I say yes, mamma?” whispered little Lucie, drawing close to her. |
|
|
|
“Yes, dearest.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, citizen.” |
|
|
|
“Ah! But it’s not my business. My work is my business. See my saw! I |
|
call it my Little Guillotine. La, la, la; La, la, la! And off his head |
|
comes!” |
|
|
|
The billet fell as he spoke, and he threw it into a basket. |
|
|
|
“I call myself the Samson of the firewood guillotine. See here again! |
|
Loo, loo, loo; Loo, loo, loo! And off _her_ head comes! Now, a child. |
|
Tickle, tickle; Pickle, pickle! And off _its_ head comes. All the |
|
family!” |
|
|
|
Lucie shuddered as he threw two more billets into his basket, but it was |
|
impossible to be there while the wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in |
|
his sight. Thenceforth, to secure his good will, she always spoke to him |
|
first, and often gave him drink-money, which he readily received. |
|
|
|
He was an inquisitive fellow, and sometimes when she had quite forgotten |
|
him in gazing at the prison roof and grates, and in lifting her heart |
|
up to her husband, she would come to herself to find him looking at her, |
|
with his knee on his bench and his saw stopped in its work. “But it’s |
|
not my business!” he would generally say at those times, and would |
|
briskly fall to his sawing again. |
|
|
|
In all weathers, in the snow and frost of winter, in the bitter winds of |
|
spring, in the hot sunshine of summer, in the rains of autumn, and again |
|
in the snow and frost of winter, Lucie passed two hours of every day at |
|
this place; and every day on leaving it, she kissed the prison wall. |
|
Her husband saw her (so she learned from her father) it might be once in |
|
five or six times: it might be twice or thrice running: it might be, not |
|
for a week or a fortnight together. It was enough that he could and did |
|
see her when the chances served, and on that possibility she would have |
|
waited out the day, seven days a week. |
|
|
|
These occupations brought her round to the December month, wherein her |
|
father walked among the terrors with a steady head. On a lightly-snowing |
|
afternoon she arrived at the usual corner. It was a day of some wild |
|
rejoicing, and a festival. She had seen the houses, as she came along, |
|
decorated with little pikes, and with little red caps stuck upon them; |
|
also, with tricoloured ribbons; also, with the standard inscription |
|
(tricoloured letters were the favourite), Republic One and Indivisible. |
|
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death! |
|
|
|
The miserable shop of the wood-sawyer was so small, that its whole |
|
surface furnished very indifferent space for this legend. He had got |
|
somebody to scrawl it up for him, however, who had squeezed Death in |
|
with most inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top, he displayed pike |
|
and cap, as a good citizen must, and in a window he had stationed his |
|
saw inscribed as his “Little Sainte Guillotine”--for the great sharp |
|
female was by that time popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he |
|
was not there, which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite alone. |
|
|
|
But, he was not far off, for presently she heard a troubled movement |
|
and a shouting coming along, which filled her with fear. A moment |
|
afterwards, and a throng of people came pouring round the corner by the |
|
prison wall, in the midst of whom was the wood-sawyer hand in hand with |
|
The Vengeance. There could not be fewer than five hundred people, and |
|
they were dancing like five thousand demons. There was no other music |
|
than their own singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song, |
|
keeping a ferocious time that was like a gnashing of teeth in unison. |
|
Men and women danced together, women danced together, men danced |
|
together, as hazard had brought them together. At first, they were a |
|
mere storm of coarse red caps and coarse woollen rags; but, as they |
|
filled the place, and stopped to dance about Lucie, some ghastly |
|
apparition of a dance-figure gone raving mad arose among them. They |
|
advanced, retreated, struck at one another’s hands, clutched at one |
|
another’s heads, spun round alone, caught one another and spun round |
|
in pairs, until many of them dropped. While those were down, the rest |
|
linked hand in hand, and all spun round together: then the ring broke, |
|
and in separate rings of two and four they turned and turned until they |
|
all stopped at once, began again, struck, clutched, and tore, and then |
|
reversed the spin, and all spun round another way. Suddenly they stopped |
|
again, paused, struck out the time afresh, formed into lines the width |
|
of the public way, and, with their heads low down and their hands high |
|
up, swooped screaming off. No fight could have been half so terrible |
|
as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen sport--a something, once |
|
innocent, delivered over to all devilry--a healthy pastime changed into |
|
a means of angering the blood, bewildering the senses, and steeling the |
|
heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it the uglier, showing how |
|
warped and perverted all things good by nature were become. The maidenly |
|
bosom bared to this, the pretty almost-child’s head thus distracted, the |
|
delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood and dirt, were types of |
|
the disjointed time. |
|
|
|
This was the Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving Lucie frightened and |
|
bewildered in the doorway of the wood-sawyer’s house, the feathery snow |
|
fell as quietly and lay as white and soft, as if it had never been. |
|
|
|
“O my father!” for he stood before her when she lifted up the eyes she |
|
had momentarily darkened with her hand; “such a cruel, bad sight.” |
|
|
|
“I know, my dear, I know. I have seen it many times. Don’t be |
|
frightened! Not one of them would harm you.” |
|
|
|
“I am not frightened for myself, my father. But when I think of my |
|
husband, and the mercies of these people--” |
|
|
|
“We will set him above their mercies very soon. I left him climbing to |
|
the window, and I came to tell you. There is no one here to see. You may |
|
kiss your hand towards that highest shelving roof.” |
|
|
|
“I do so, father, and I send him my Soul with it!” |
|
|
|
“You cannot see him, my poor dear?” |
|
|
|
“No, father,” said Lucie, yearning and weeping as she kissed her hand, |
|
“no.” |
|
|
|
A footstep in the snow. Madame Defarge. “I salute you, citizeness,” |
|
from the Doctor. “I salute you, citizen.” This in passing. Nothing more. |
|
Madame Defarge gone, like a shadow over the white road. |
|
|
|
“Give me your arm, my love. Pass from here with an air of cheerfulness |
|
and courage, for his sake. That was well done;” they had left the spot; |
|
“it shall not be in vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow.” |
|
|
|
“For to-morrow!” |
|
|
|
“There is no time to lose. I am well prepared, but there are precautions |
|
to be taken, that could not be taken until he was actually summoned |
|
before the Tribunal. He has not received the notice yet, but I know |
|
that he will presently be summoned for to-morrow, and removed to the |
|
Conciergerie; I have timely information. You are not afraid?” |
|
|
|
She could scarcely answer, “I trust in you.” |
|
|
|
“Do so, implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended, my darling; he shall |
|
be restored to you within a few hours; I have encompassed him with every |
|
protection. I must see Lorry.” |
|
|
|
He stopped. There was a heavy lumbering of wheels within hearing. They |
|
both knew too well what it meant. One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring |
|
away with their dread loads over the hushing snow. |
|
|
|
“I must see Lorry,” the Doctor repeated, turning her another way. |
|
|
|
The staunch old gentleman was still in his trust; had never left it. He |
|
and his books were in frequent requisition as to property confiscated |
|
and made national. What he could save for the owners, he saved. No |
|
better man living to hold fast by what Tellson’s had in keeping, and to |
|
hold his peace. |
|
|
|
A murky red and yellow sky, and a rising mist from the Seine, denoted |
|
the approach of darkness. It was almost dark when they arrived at the |
|
Bank. The stately residence of Monseigneur was altogether blighted and |
|
deserted. Above a heap of dust and ashes in the court, ran the letters: |
|
National Property. Republic One and Indivisible. Liberty, Equality, |
|
Fraternity, or Death! |
|
|
|
Who could that be with Mr. Lorry--the owner of the riding-coat upon the |
|
chair--who must not be seen? From whom newly arrived, did he come out, |
|
agitated and surprised, to take his favourite in his arms? To whom did |
|
he appear to repeat her faltering words, when, raising his voice and |
|
turning his head towards the door of the room from which he had issued, |
|
he said: “Removed to the Conciergerie, and summoned for to-morrow?” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI. |
|
Triumph |
|
|
|
|
|
The dread tribunal of five Judges, Public Prosecutor, and determined |
|
Jury, sat every day. Their lists went forth every evening, and were |
|
read out by the gaolers of the various prisons to their prisoners. The |
|
standard gaoler-joke was, “Come out and listen to the Evening Paper, you |
|
inside there!” |
|
|
|
“Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay!” |
|
|
|
So at last began the Evening Paper at La Force. |
|
|
|
When a name was called, its owner stepped apart into a spot reserved |
|
for those who were announced as being thus fatally recorded. Charles |
|
Evrémonde, called Darnay, had reason to know the usage; he had seen |
|
hundreds pass away so. |
|
|
|
His bloated gaoler, who wore spectacles to read with, glanced over them |
|
to assure himself that he had taken his place, and went through the |
|
list, making a similar short pause at each name. There were twenty-three |
|
names, but only twenty were responded to; for one of the prisoners so |
|
summoned had died in gaol and been forgotten, and two had already been |
|
guillotined and forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted chamber |
|
where Darnay had seen the associated prisoners on the night of his |
|
arrival. Every one of those had perished in the massacre; every human |
|
creature he had since cared for and parted with, had died on the |
|
scaffold. |
|
|
|
There were hurried words of farewell and kindness, but the parting was |
|
soon over. It was the incident of every day, and the society of La Force |
|
were engaged in the preparation of some games of forfeits and a little |
|
concert, for that evening. They crowded to the grates and shed tears |
|
there; but, twenty places in the projected entertainments had to be |
|
refilled, and the time was, at best, short to the lock-up hour, when the |
|
common rooms and corridors would be delivered over to the great dogs |
|
who kept watch there through the night. The prisoners were far from |
|
insensible or unfeeling; their ways arose out of the condition of the |
|
time. Similarly, though with a subtle difference, a species of fervour |
|
or intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some persons to |
|
brave the guillotine unnecessarily, and to die by it, was not mere |
|
boastfulness, but a wild infection of the wildly shaken public mind. In |
|
seasons of pestilence, some of us will have a secret attraction to the |
|
disease--a terrible passing inclination to die of it. And all of us have |
|
like wonders hidden in our breasts, only needing circumstances to evoke |
|
them. |
|
|
|
The passage to the Conciergerie was short and dark; the night in its |
|
vermin-haunted cells was long and cold. Next day, fifteen prisoners were |
|
put to the bar before Charles Darnay’s name was called. All the fifteen |
|
were condemned, and the trials of the whole occupied an hour and a half. |
|
|
|
“Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay,” was at length arraigned. |
|
|
|
His judges sat upon the Bench in feathered hats; but the rough red cap |
|
and tricoloured cockade was the head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking |
|
at the Jury and the turbulent audience, he might have thought that the |
|
usual order of things was reversed, and that the felons were trying the |
|
honest men. The lowest, cruelest, and worst populace of a city, never |
|
without its quantity of low, cruel, and bad, were the directing |
|
spirits of the scene: noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving, |
|
anticipating, and precipitating the result, without a check. Of the men, |
|
the greater part were armed in various ways; of the women, some wore |
|
knives, some daggers, some ate and drank as they looked on, many |
|
knitted. Among these last, was one, with a spare piece of knitting under |
|
her arm as she worked. She was in a front row, by the side of a man whom |
|
he had never seen since his arrival at the Barrier, but whom he directly |
|
remembered as Defarge. He noticed that she once or twice whispered in |
|
his ear, and that she seemed to be his wife; but, what he most noticed |
|
in the two figures was, that although they were posted as close to |
|
himself as they could be, they never looked towards him. They seemed to |
|
be waiting for something with a dogged determination, and they looked at |
|
the Jury, but at nothing else. Under the President sat Doctor Manette, |
|
in his usual quiet dress. As well as the prisoner could see, he and Mr. |
|
Lorry were the only men there, unconnected with the Tribunal, who |
|
wore their usual clothes, and had not assumed the coarse garb of the |
|
Carmagnole. |
|
|
|
Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay, was accused by the public prosecutor |
|
as an emigrant, whose life was forfeit to the Republic, under the decree |
|
which banished all emigrants on pain of Death. It was nothing that the |
|
decree bore date since his return to France. There he was, and there was |
|
the decree; he had been taken in France, and his head was demanded. |
|
|
|
“Take off his head!” cried the audience. “An enemy to the Republic!” |
|
|
|
The President rang his bell to silence those cries, and asked the |
|
prisoner whether it was not true that he had lived many years in |
|
England? |
|
|
|
Undoubtedly it was. |
|
|
|
Was he not an emigrant then? What did he call himself? |
|
|
|
Not an emigrant, he hoped, within the sense and spirit of the law. |
|
|
|
Why not? the President desired to know. |
|
|
|
Because he had voluntarily relinquished a title that was distasteful |
|
to him, and a station that was distasteful to him, and had left |
|
his country--he submitted before the word emigrant in the present |
|
acceptation by the Tribunal was in use--to live by his own industry in |
|
England, rather than on the industry of the overladen people of France. |
|
|
|
What proof had he of this? |
|
|
|
He handed in the names of two witnesses; Theophile Gabelle, and |
|
Alexandre Manette. |
|
|
|
But he had married in England? the President reminded him. |
|
|
|
True, but not an English woman. |
|
|
|
A citizeness of France? |
|
|
|
Yes. By birth. |
|
|
|
Her name and family? |
|
|
|
“Lucie Manette, only daughter of Doctor Manette, the good physician who |
|
sits there.” |
|
|
|
This answer had a happy effect upon the audience. Cries in exaltation |
|
of the well-known good physician rent the hall. So capriciously were |
|
the people moved, that tears immediately rolled down several ferocious |
|
countenances which had been glaring at the prisoner a moment before, as |
|
if with impatience to pluck him out into the streets and kill him. |
|
|
|
On these few steps of his dangerous way, Charles Darnay had set his foot |
|
according to Doctor Manette’s reiterated instructions. The same cautious |
|
counsel directed every step that lay before him, and had prepared every |
|
inch of his road. |
|
|
|
The President asked, why had he returned to France when he did, and not |
|
sooner? |
|
|
|
He had not returned sooner, he replied, simply because he had no means |
|
of living in France, save those he had resigned; whereas, in England, |
|
he lived by giving instruction in the French language and literature. |
|
He had returned when he did, on the pressing and written entreaty of |
|
a French citizen, who represented that his life was endangered by his |
|
absence. He had come back, to save a citizen’s life, and to bear his |
|
testimony, at whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that criminal |
|
in the eyes of the Republic? |
|
|
|
The populace cried enthusiastically, “No!” and the President rang his |
|
bell to quiet them. Which it did not, for they continued to cry “No!” |
|
until they left off, of their own will. |
|
|
|
The President required the name of that citizen. The accused explained |
|
that the citizen was his first witness. He also referred with confidence |
|
to the citizen’s letter, which had been taken from him at the Barrier, |
|
but which he did not doubt would be found among the papers then before |
|
the President. |
|
|
|
The Doctor had taken care that it should be there--had assured him that |
|
it would be there--and at this stage of the proceedings it was produced |
|
and read. Citizen Gabelle was called to confirm it, and did so. Citizen |
|
Gabelle hinted, with infinite delicacy and politeness, that in the |
|
pressure of business imposed on the Tribunal by the multitude of |
|
enemies of the Republic with which it had to deal, he had been slightly |
|
overlooked in his prison of the Abbaye--in fact, had rather passed out |
|
of the Tribunal’s patriotic remembrance--until three days ago; when he |
|
had been summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the Jury’s |
|
declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation against him was |
|
answered, as to himself, by the surrender of the citizen Evrémonde, |
|
called Darnay. |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette was next questioned. His high personal popularity, |
|
and the clearness of his answers, made a great impression; but, as he |
|
proceeded, as he showed that the Accused was his first friend on his |
|
release from his long imprisonment; that, the accused had remained in |
|
England, always faithful and devoted to his daughter and himself in |
|
their exile; that, so far from being in favour with the Aristocrat |
|
government there, he had actually been tried for his life by it, as |
|
the foe of England and friend of the United States--as he brought these |
|
circumstances into view, with the greatest discretion and with the |
|
straightforward force of truth and earnestness, the Jury and the |
|
populace became one. At last, when he appealed by name to Monsieur |
|
Lorry, an English gentleman then and there present, who, like himself, |
|
had been a witness on that English trial and could corroborate his |
|
account of it, the Jury declared that they had heard enough, and that |
|
they were ready with their votes if the President were content to |
|
receive them. |
|
|
|
At every vote (the Jurymen voted aloud and individually), the populace |
|
set up a shout of applause. All the voices were in the prisoner’s |
|
favour, and the President declared him free. |
|
|
|
Then, began one of those extraordinary scenes with which the populace |
|
sometimes gratified their fickleness, or their better impulses towards |
|
generosity and mercy, or which they regarded as some set-off against |
|
their swollen account of cruel rage. No man can decide now to which of |
|
these motives such extraordinary scenes were referable; it is probable, |
|
to a blending of all the three, with the second predominating. No sooner |
|
was the acquittal pronounced, than tears were shed as freely as blood |
|
at another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed upon the |
|
prisoner by as many of both sexes as could rush at him, that after |
|
his long and unwholesome confinement he was in danger of fainting from |
|
exhaustion; none the less because he knew very well, that the very same |
|
people, carried by another current, would have rushed at him with |
|
the very same intensity, to rend him to pieces and strew him over the |
|
streets. |
|
|
|
His removal, to make way for other accused persons who were to be tried, |
|
rescued him from these caresses for the moment. Five were to be tried |
|
together, next, as enemies of the Republic, forasmuch as they had not |
|
assisted it by word or deed. So quick was the Tribunal to compensate |
|
itself and the nation for a chance lost, that these five came down to |
|
him before he left the place, condemned to die within twenty-four |
|
hours. The first of them told him so, with the customary prison sign |
|
of Death--a raised finger--and they all added in words, “Long live the |
|
Republic!” |
|
|
|
The five had had, it is true, no audience to lengthen their proceedings, |
|
for when he and Doctor Manette emerged from the gate, there was a great |
|
crowd about it, in which there seemed to be every face he had seen in |
|
Court--except two, for which he looked in vain. On his coming out, the |
|
concourse made at him anew, weeping, embracing, and shouting, all by |
|
turns and all together, until the very tide of the river on the bank of |
|
which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like the people on the |
|
shore. |
|
|
|
They put him into a great chair they had among them, and which they had |
|
taken either out of the Court itself, or one of its rooms or passages. |
|
Over the chair they had thrown a red flag, and to the back of it they |
|
had bound a pike with a red cap on its top. In this car of triumph, not |
|
even the Doctor’s entreaties could prevent his being carried to his home |
|
on men’s shoulders, with a confused sea of red caps heaving about him, |
|
and casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of faces, that |
|
he more than once misdoubted his mind being in confusion, and that he |
|
was in the tumbril on his way to the Guillotine. |
|
|
|
In wild dreamlike procession, embracing whom they met and pointing |
|
him out, they carried him on. Reddening the snowy streets with the |
|
prevailing Republican colour, in winding and tramping through them, as |
|
they had reddened them below the snow with a deeper dye, they carried |
|
him thus into the courtyard of the building where he lived. Her father |
|
had gone on before, to prepare her, and when her husband stood upon his |
|
feet, she dropped insensible in his arms. |
|
|
|
As he held her to his heart and turned her beautiful head between his |
|
face and the brawling crowd, so that his tears and her lips might come |
|
together unseen, a few of the people fell to dancing. Instantly, all the |
|
rest fell to dancing, and the courtyard overflowed with the Carmagnole. |
|
Then, they elevated into the vacant chair a young woman from the |
|
crowd to be carried as the Goddess of Liberty, and then swelling and |
|
overflowing out into the adjacent streets, and along the river’s bank, |
|
and over the bridge, the Carmagnole absorbed them every one and whirled |
|
them away. |
|
|
|
After grasping the Doctor’s hand, as he stood victorious and proud |
|
before him; after grasping the hand of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in |
|
breathless from his struggle against the waterspout of the Carmagnole; |
|
after kissing little Lucie, who was lifted up to clasp her arms round |
|
his neck; and after embracing the ever zealous and faithful Pross who |
|
lifted her; he took his wife in his arms, and carried her up to their |
|
rooms. |
|
|
|
“Lucie! My own! I am safe.” |
|
|
|
“O dearest Charles, let me thank God for this on my knees as I have |
|
prayed to Him.” |
|
|
|
They all reverently bowed their heads and hearts. When she was again in |
|
his arms, he said to her: |
|
|
|
“And now speak to your father, dearest. No other man in all this France |
|
could have done what he has done for me.” |
|
|
|
She laid her head upon her father’s breast, as she had laid his poor |
|
head on her own breast, long, long ago. He was happy in the return he |
|
had made her, he was recompensed for his suffering, he was proud of his |
|
strength. “You must not be weak, my darling,” he remonstrated; “don’t |
|
tremble so. I have saved him.” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII. |
|
A Knock at the Door |
|
|
|
|
|
“I have saved him.” It was not another of the dreams in which he had |
|
often come back; he was really here. And yet his wife trembled, and a |
|
vague but heavy fear was upon her. |
|
|
|
All the air round was so thick and dark, the people were so passionately |
|
revengeful and fitful, the innocent were so constantly put to death on |
|
vague suspicion and black malice, it was so impossible to forget that |
|
many as blameless as her husband and as dear to others as he was to |
|
her, every day shared the fate from which he had been clutched, that her |
|
heart could not be as lightened of its load as she felt it ought to be. |
|
The shadows of the wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and even now |
|
the dreadful carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind pursued |
|
them, looking for him among the Condemned; and then she clung closer to |
|
his real presence and trembled more. |
|
|
|
Her father, cheering her, showed a compassionate superiority to this |
|
woman’s weakness, which was wonderful to see. No garret, no shoemaking, |
|
no One Hundred and Five, North Tower, now! He had accomplished the task |
|
he had set himself, his promise was redeemed, he had saved Charles. Let |
|
them all lean upon him. |
|
|
|
Their housekeeping was of a very frugal kind: not only because that was |
|
the safest way of life, involving the least offence to the people, but |
|
because they were not rich, and Charles, throughout his imprisonment, |
|
had had to pay heavily for his bad food, and for his guard, and towards |
|
the living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on this account, and |
|
partly to avoid a domestic spy, they kept no servant; the citizen and |
|
citizeness who acted as porters at the courtyard gate, rendered them |
|
occasional service; and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by |
|
Mr. Lorry) had become their daily retainer, and had his bed there every |
|
night. |
|
|
|
It was an ordinance of the Republic One and Indivisible of Liberty, |
|
Equality, Fraternity, or Death, that on the door or doorpost of every |
|
house, the name of every inmate must be legibly inscribed in letters |
|
of a certain size, at a certain convenient height from the ground. Mr. |
|
Jerry Cruncher’s name, therefore, duly embellished the doorpost down |
|
below; and, as the afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that name |
|
himself appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor Manette had |
|
employed to add to the list the name of Charles Evrémonde, called |
|
Darnay. |
|
|
|
In the universal fear and distrust that darkened the time, all the usual |
|
harmless ways of life were changed. In the Doctor’s little household, as |
|
in very many others, the articles of daily consumption that were wanted |
|
were purchased every evening, in small quantities and at various small |
|
shops. To avoid attracting notice, and to give as little occasion as |
|
possible for talk and envy, was the general desire. |
|
|
|
For some months past, Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher had discharged the |
|
office of purveyors; the former carrying the money; the latter, the |
|
basket. Every afternoon at about the time when the public lamps were |
|
lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and brought home |
|
such purchases as were needful. Although Miss Pross, through her long |
|
association with a French family, might have known as much of their |
|
language as of her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that |
|
direction; consequently she knew no more of that “nonsense” (as she was |
|
pleased to call it) than Mr. Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing |
|
was to plump a noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any |
|
introduction in the nature of an article, and, if it happened not to be |
|
the name of the thing she wanted, to look round for that thing, lay hold |
|
of it, and hold on by it until the bargain was concluded. She always |
|
made a bargain for it, by holding up, as a statement of its just price, |
|
one finger less than the merchant held up, whatever his number might be. |
|
|
|
“Now, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose eyes were red with felicity; |
|
“if you are ready, I am.” |
|
|
|
Jerry hoarsely professed himself at Miss Pross’s service. He had worn |
|
all his rust off long ago, but nothing would file his spiky head down. |
|
|
|
“There’s all manner of things wanted,” said Miss Pross, “and we shall |
|
have a precious time of it. We want wine, among the rest. Nice toasts |
|
these Redheads will be drinking, wherever we buy it.” |
|
|
|
“It will be much the same to your knowledge, miss, I should think,” |
|
retorted Jerry, “whether they drink your health or the Old Un’s.” |
|
|
|
“Who’s he?” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher, with some diffidence, explained himself as meaning “Old |
|
Nick’s.” |
|
|
|
“Ha!” said Miss Pross, “it doesn’t need an interpreter to explain the |
|
meaning of these creatures. They have but one, and it’s Midnight Murder, |
|
and Mischief.” |
|
|
|
“Hush, dear! Pray, pray, be cautious!” cried Lucie. |
|
|
|
“Yes, yes, yes, I’ll be cautious,” said Miss Pross; “but I may say |
|
among ourselves, that I do hope there will be no oniony and tobaccoey |
|
smotherings in the form of embracings all round, going on in the |
|
streets. Now, Ladybird, never you stir from that fire till I come back! |
|
Take care of the dear husband you have recovered, and don’t move your |
|
pretty head from his shoulder as you have it now, till you see me again! |
|
May I ask a question, Doctor Manette, before I go?” |
|
|
|
“I think you may take that liberty,” the Doctor answered, smiling. |
|
|
|
“For gracious sake, don’t talk about Liberty; we have quite enough of |
|
that,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
“Hush, dear! Again?” Lucie remonstrated. |
|
|
|
“Well, my sweet,” said Miss Pross, nodding her head emphatically, “the |
|
short and the long of it is, that I am a subject of His Most Gracious |
|
Majesty King George the Third;” Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; “and |
|
as such, my maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their knavish |
|
tricks, On him our hopes we fix, God save the King!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher, in an access of loyalty, growlingly repeated the words |
|
after Miss Pross, like somebody at church. |
|
|
|
“I am glad you have so much of the Englishman in you, though I wish you |
|
had never taken that cold in your voice,” said Miss Pross, approvingly. |
|
“But the question, Doctor Manette. Is there”--it was the good creature’s |
|
way to affect to make light of anything that was a great anxiety |
|
with them all, and to come at it in this chance manner--“is there any |
|
prospect yet, of our getting out of this place?” |
|
|
|
“I fear not yet. It would be dangerous for Charles yet.” |
|
|
|
“Heigh-ho-hum!” said Miss Pross, cheerfully repressing a sigh as she |
|
glanced at her darling’s golden hair in the light of the fire, “then we |
|
must have patience and wait: that’s all. We must hold up our heads and |
|
fight low, as my brother Solomon used to say. Now, Mr. Cruncher!--Don’t |
|
you move, Ladybird!” |
|
|
|
They went out, leaving Lucie, and her husband, her father, and the |
|
child, by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry was expected back presently from the |
|
Banking House. Miss Pross had lighted the lamp, but had put it aside in |
|
a corner, that they might enjoy the fire-light undisturbed. Little Lucie |
|
sat by her grandfather with her hands clasped through his arm: and he, |
|
in a tone not rising much above a whisper, began to tell her a story of |
|
a great and powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let out |
|
a captive who had once done the Fairy a service. All was subdued and |
|
quiet, and Lucie was more at ease than she had been. |
|
|
|
“What is that?” she cried, all at once. |
|
|
|
“My dear!” said her father, stopping in his story, and laying his hand |
|
on hers, “command yourself. What a disordered state you are in! The |
|
least thing--nothing--startles you! _You_, your father’s daughter!” |
|
|
|
“I thought, my father,” said Lucie, excusing herself, with a pale face |
|
and in a faltering voice, “that I heard strange feet upon the stairs.” |
|
|
|
“My love, the staircase is as still as Death.” |
|
|
|
As he said the word, a blow was struck upon the door. |
|
|
|
“Oh father, father. What can this be! Hide Charles. Save him!” |
|
|
|
“My child,” said the Doctor, rising, and laying his hand upon her |
|
shoulder, “I _have_ saved him. What weakness is this, my dear! Let me go |
|
to the door.” |
|
|
|
He took the lamp in his hand, crossed the two intervening outer rooms, |
|
and opened it. A rude clattering of feet over the floor, and four rough |
|
men in red caps, armed with sabres and pistols, entered the room. |
|
|
|
“The Citizen Evrémonde, called Darnay,” said the first. |
|
|
|
“Who seeks him?” answered Darnay. |
|
|
|
“I seek him. We seek him. I know you, Evrémonde; I saw you before the |
|
Tribunal to-day. You are again the prisoner of the Republic.” |
|
|
|
The four surrounded him, where he stood with his wife and child clinging |
|
to him. |
|
|
|
“Tell me how and why am I again a prisoner?” |
|
|
|
“It is enough that you return straight to the Conciergerie, and will |
|
know to-morrow. You are summoned for to-morrow.” |
|
|
|
Doctor Manette, whom this visitation had so turned into stone, that he |
|
stood with the lamp in his hand, as if he were a statue made to hold it, |
|
moved after these words were spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting |
|
the speaker, and taking him, not ungently, by the loose front of his red |
|
woollen shirt, said: |
|
|
|
“You know him, you have said. Do you know me?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, I know you, Citizen Doctor.” |
|
|
|
“We all know you, Citizen Doctor,” said the other three. |
|
|
|
He looked abstractedly from one to another, and said, in a lower voice, |
|
after a pause: |
|
|
|
“Will you answer his question to me then? How does this happen?” |
|
|
|
“Citizen Doctor,” said the first, reluctantly, “he has been denounced to |
|
the Section of Saint Antoine. This citizen,” pointing out the second who |
|
had entered, “is from Saint Antoine.” |
|
|
|
The citizen here indicated nodded his head, and added: |
|
|
|
“He is accused by Saint Antoine.” |
|
|
|
“Of what?” asked the Doctor. |
|
|
|
“Citizen Doctor,” said the first, with his former reluctance, “ask no |
|
more. If the Republic demands sacrifices from you, without doubt you as |
|
a good patriot will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all. |
|
The People is supreme. Evrémonde, we are pressed.” |
|
|
|
“One word,” the Doctor entreated. “Will you tell me who denounced him?” |
|
|
|
“It is against rule,” answered the first; “but you can ask Him of Saint |
|
Antoine here.” |
|
|
|
The Doctor turned his eyes upon that man. Who moved uneasily on his |
|
feet, rubbed his beard a little, and at length said: |
|
|
|
“Well! Truly it is against rule. But he is denounced--and gravely--by |
|
the Citizen and Citizeness Defarge. And by one other.” |
|
|
|
“What other?” |
|
|
|
“Do _you_ ask, Citizen Doctor?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“Then,” said he of Saint Antoine, with a strange look, “you will be |
|
answered to-morrow. Now, I am dumb!” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. |
|
A Hand at Cards |
|
|
|
|
|
Happily unconscious of the new calamity at home, Miss Pross threaded her |
|
way along the narrow streets and crossed the river by the bridge of the |
|
Pont-Neuf, reckoning in her mind the number of indispensable purchases |
|
she had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket, walked at her side. They |
|
both looked to the right and to the left into most of the shops they |
|
passed, had a wary eye for all gregarious assemblages of people, and |
|
turned out of their road to avoid any very excited group of talkers. It |
|
was a raw evening, and the misty river, blurred to the eye with blazing |
|
lights and to the ear with harsh noises, showed where the barges were |
|
stationed in which the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of the |
|
Republic. Woe to the man who played tricks with _that_ Army, or got |
|
undeserved promotion in it! Better for him that his beard had never |
|
grown, for the National Razor shaved him close. |
|
|
|
Having purchased a few small articles of grocery, and a measure of oil |
|
for the lamp, Miss Pross bethought herself of the wine they wanted. |
|
After peeping into several wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the |
|
Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, not far from the National Palace, |
|
once (and twice) the Tuileries, where the aspect of things rather |
|
took her fancy. It had a quieter look than any other place of the same |
|
description they had passed, and, though red with patriotic caps, was |
|
not so red as the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him of her |
|
opinion, Miss Pross resorted to the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, |
|
attended by her cavalier. |
|
|
|
Slightly observant of the smoky lights; of the people, pipe in mouth, |
|
playing with limp cards and yellow dominoes; of the one bare-breasted, |
|
bare-armed, soot-begrimed workman reading a journal aloud, and of |
|
the others listening to him; of the weapons worn, or laid aside to be |
|
resumed; of the two or three customers fallen forward asleep, who in the |
|
popular high-shouldered shaggy black spencer looked, in that attitude, |
|
like slumbering bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers approached |
|
the counter, and showed what they wanted. |
|
|
|
As their wine was measuring out, a man parted from another man in a |
|
corner, and rose to depart. In going, he had to face Miss Pross. No |
|
sooner did he face her, than Miss Pross uttered a scream, and clapped |
|
her hands. |
|
|
|
In a moment, the whole company were on their feet. That somebody was |
|
assassinated by somebody vindicating a difference of opinion was the |
|
likeliest occurrence. Everybody looked to see somebody fall, but only |
|
saw a man and a woman standing staring at each other; the man with all |
|
the outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough Republican; the woman, |
|
evidently English. |
|
|
|
What was said in this disappointing anti-climax, by the disciples of the |
|
Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, except that it was something very |
|
voluble and loud, would have been as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss |
|
Pross and her protector, though they had been all ears. But, they had no |
|
ears for anything in their surprise. For, it must be recorded, that |
|
not only was Miss Pross lost in amazement and agitation, but, |
|
Mr. Cruncher--though it seemed on his own separate and individual |
|
account--was in a state of the greatest wonder. |
|
|
|
“What is the matter?” said the man who had caused Miss Pross to scream; |
|
speaking in a vexed, abrupt voice (though in a low tone), and in |
|
English. |
|
|
|
“Oh, Solomon, dear Solomon!” cried Miss Pross, clapping her hands again. |
|
“After not setting eyes upon you or hearing of you for so long a time, |
|
do I find you here!” |
|
|
|
“Don’t call me Solomon. Do you want to be the death of me?” asked the |
|
man, in a furtive, frightened way. |
|
|
|
“Brother, brother!” cried Miss Pross, bursting into tears. “Have I ever |
|
been so hard with you that you ask me such a cruel question?” |
|
|
|
“Then hold your meddlesome tongue,” said Solomon, “and come out, if you |
|
want to speak to me. Pay for your wine, and come out. Who’s this man?” |
|
|
|
Miss Pross, shaking her loving and dejected head at her by no means |
|
affectionate brother, said through her tears, “Mr. Cruncher.” |
|
|
|
“Let him come out too,” said Solomon. “Does he think me a ghost?” |
|
|
|
Apparently, Mr. Cruncher did, to judge from his looks. He said not a |
|
word, however, and Miss Pross, exploring the depths of her reticule |
|
through her tears with great difficulty paid for her wine. As she did |
|
so, Solomon turned to the followers of the Good Republican Brutus |
|
of Antiquity, and offered a few words of explanation in the French |
|
language, which caused them all to relapse into their former places and |
|
pursuits. |
|
|
|
“Now,” said Solomon, stopping at the dark street corner, “what do you |
|
want?” |
|
|
|
“How dreadfully unkind in a brother nothing has ever turned my love away |
|
from!” cried Miss Pross, “to give me such a greeting, and show me no |
|
affection.” |
|
|
|
“There. Confound it! There,” said Solomon, making a dab at Miss Pross’s |
|
lips with his own. “Now are you content?” |
|
|
|
Miss Pross only shook her head and wept in silence. |
|
|
|
“If you expect me to be surprised,” said her brother Solomon, “I am not |
|
surprised; I knew you were here; I know of most people who are here. If |
|
you really don’t want to endanger my existence--which I half believe you |
|
do--go your ways as soon as possible, and let me go mine. I am busy. I |
|
am an official.” |
|
|
|
“My English brother Solomon,” mourned Miss Pross, casting up her |
|
tear-fraught eyes, “that had the makings in him of one of the best and |
|
greatest of men in his native country, an official among foreigners, and |
|
such foreigners! I would almost sooner have seen the dear boy lying in |
|
his--” |
|
|
|
“I said so!” cried her brother, interrupting. “I knew it. You want to be |
|
the death of me. I shall be rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just |
|
as I am getting on!” |
|
|
|
“The gracious and merciful Heavens forbid!” cried Miss Pross. “Far |
|
rather would I never see you again, dear Solomon, though I have ever |
|
loved you truly, and ever shall. Say but one affectionate word to me, |
|
and tell me there is nothing angry or estranged between us, and I will |
|
detain you no longer.” |
|
|
|
Good Miss Pross! As if the estrangement between them had come of any |
|
culpability of hers. As if Mr. Lorry had not known it for a fact, years |
|
ago, in the quiet corner in Soho, that this precious brother had spent |
|
her money and left her! |
|
|
|
He was saying the affectionate word, however, with a far more grudging |
|
condescension and patronage than he could have shown if their relative |
|
merits and positions had been reversed (which is invariably the case, |
|
all the world over), when Mr. Cruncher, touching him on the shoulder, |
|
hoarsely and unexpectedly interposed with the following singular |
|
question: |
|
|
|
“I say! Might I ask the favour? As to whether your name is John Solomon, |
|
or Solomon John?” |
|
|
|
The official turned towards him with sudden distrust. He had not |
|
previously uttered a word. |
|
|
|
“Come!” said Mr. Cruncher. “Speak out, you know.” (Which, by the way, |
|
was more than he could do himself.) “John Solomon, or Solomon John? She |
|
calls you Solomon, and she must know, being your sister. And _I_ know |
|
you’re John, you know. Which of the two goes first? And regarding that |
|
name of Pross, likewise. That warn’t your name over the water.” |
|
|
|
“What do you mean?” |
|
|
|
“Well, I don’t know all I mean, for I can’t call to mind what your name |
|
was, over the water.” |
|
|
|
“No?” |
|
|
|
“No. But I’ll swear it was a name of two syllables.” |
|
|
|
“Indeed?” |
|
|
|
“Yes. T’other one’s was one syllable. I know you. You was a spy--witness |
|
at the Bailey. What, in the name of the Father of Lies, own father to |
|
yourself, was you called at that time?” |
|
|
|
“Barsad,” said another voice, striking in. |
|
|
|
“That’s the name for a thousand pound!” cried Jerry. |
|
|
|
The speaker who struck in, was Sydney Carton. He had his hands behind |
|
him under the skirts of his riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher’s |
|
elbow as negligently as he might have stood at the Old Bailey itself. |
|
|
|
“Don’t be alarmed, my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at Mr. Lorry’s, to his |
|
surprise, yesterday evening; we agreed that I would not present myself |
|
elsewhere until all was well, or unless I could be useful; I present |
|
myself here, to beg a little talk with your brother. I wish you had a |
|
better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I wish for your sake Mr. Barsad |
|
was not a Sheep of the Prisons.” |
|
|
|
Sheep was a cant word of the time for a spy, under the gaolers. The spy, |
|
who was pale, turned paler, and asked him how he dared-- |
|
|
|
“I’ll tell you,” said Sydney. “I lighted on you, Mr. Barsad, coming out |
|
of the prison of the Conciergerie while I was contemplating the walls, |
|
an hour or more ago. You have a face to be remembered, and I remember |
|
faces well. Made curious by seeing you in that connection, and having |
|
a reason, to which you are no stranger, for associating you with |
|
the misfortunes of a friend now very unfortunate, I walked in your |
|
direction. I walked into the wine-shop here, close after you, and |
|
sat near you. I had no difficulty in deducing from your unreserved |
|
conversation, and the rumour openly going about among your admirers, the |
|
nature of your calling. And gradually, what I had done at random, seemed |
|
to shape itself into a purpose, Mr. Barsad.” |
|
|
|
“What purpose?” the spy asked. |
|
|
|
“It would be troublesome, and might be dangerous, to explain in the |
|
street. Could you favour me, in confidence, with some minutes of your |
|
company--at the office of Tellson’s Bank, for instance?” |
|
|
|
“Under a threat?” |
|
|
|
“Oh! Did I say that?” |
|
|
|
“Then, why should I go there?” |
|
|
|
“Really, Mr. Barsad, I can’t say, if you can’t.” |
|
|
|
“Do you mean that you won’t say, sir?” the spy irresolutely asked. |
|
|
|
“You apprehend me very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I won’t.” |
|
|
|
Carton’s negligent recklessness of manner came powerfully in aid of his |
|
quickness and skill, in such a business as he had in his secret mind, |
|
and with such a man as he had to do with. His practised eye saw it, and |
|
made the most of it. |
|
|
|
“Now, I told you so,” said the spy, casting a reproachful look at his |
|
sister; “if any trouble comes of this, it’s your doing.” |
|
|
|
“Come, come, Mr. Barsad!” exclaimed Sydney. “Don’t be ungrateful. |
|
But for my great respect for your sister, I might not have led up so |
|
pleasantly to a little proposal that I wish to make for our mutual |
|
satisfaction. Do you go with me to the Bank?” |
|
|
|
“I’ll hear what you have got to say. Yes, I’ll go with you.” |
|
|
|
“I propose that we first conduct your sister safely to the corner of her |
|
own street. Let me take your arm, Miss Pross. This is not a good city, |
|
at this time, for you to be out in, unprotected; and as your escort |
|
knows Mr. Barsad, I will invite him to Mr. Lorry’s with us. Are we |
|
ready? Come then!” |
|
|
|
Miss Pross recalled soon afterwards, and to the end of her life |
|
remembered, that as she pressed her hands on Sydney’s arm and looked up |
|
in his face, imploring him to do no hurt to Solomon, there was a braced |
|
purpose in the arm and a kind of inspiration in the eyes, which not only |
|
contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the man. She was |
|
too much occupied then with fears for the brother who so little deserved |
|
her affection, and with Sydney’s friendly reassurances, adequately to |
|
heed what she observed. |
|
|
|
They left her at the corner of the street, and Carton led the way to Mr. |
|
Lorry’s, which was within a few minutes’ walk. John Barsad, or Solomon |
|
Pross, walked at his side. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry had just finished his dinner, and was sitting before a cheery |
|
little log or two of fire--perhaps looking into their blaze for the |
|
picture of that younger elderly gentleman from Tellson’s, who had looked |
|
into the red coals at the Royal George at Dover, now a good many years |
|
ago. He turned his head as they entered, and showed the surprise with |
|
which he saw a stranger. |
|
|
|
“Miss Pross’s brother, sir,” said Sydney. “Mr. Barsad.” |
|
|
|
“Barsad?” repeated the old gentleman, “Barsad? I have an association |
|
with the name--and with the face.” |
|
|
|
“I told you you had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad,” observed Carton, |
|
coolly. “Pray sit down.” |
|
|
|
As he took a chair himself, he supplied the link that Mr. Lorry wanted, |
|
by saying to him with a frown, “Witness at that trial.” Mr. Lorry |
|
immediately remembered, and regarded his new visitor with an undisguised |
|
look of abhorrence. |
|
|
|
“Mr. Barsad has been recognised by Miss Pross as the affectionate |
|
brother you have heard of,” said Sydney, “and has acknowledged the |
|
relationship. I pass to worse news. Darnay has been arrested again.” |
|
|
|
Struck with consternation, the old gentleman exclaimed, “What do you |
|
tell me! I left him safe and free within these two hours, and am about |
|
to return to him!” |
|
|
|
“Arrested for all that. When was it done, Mr. Barsad?” |
|
|
|
“Just now, if at all.” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Barsad is the best authority possible, sir,” said Sydney, “and I |
|
have it from Mr. Barsad’s communication to a friend and brother Sheep |
|
over a bottle of wine, that the arrest has taken place. He left the |
|
messengers at the gate, and saw them admitted by the porter. There is no |
|
earthly doubt that he is retaken.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry’s business eye read in the speaker’s face that it was loss |
|
of time to dwell upon the point. Confused, but sensible that something |
|
might depend on his presence of mind, he commanded himself, and was |
|
silently attentive. |
|
|
|
“Now, I trust,” said Sydney to him, “that the name and influence of |
|
Doctor Manette may stand him in as good stead to-morrow--you said he |
|
would be before the Tribunal again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad?--” |
|
|
|
“Yes; I believe so.” |
|
|
|
“--In as good stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may not be so. I own |
|
to you, I am shaken, Mr. Lorry, by Doctor Manette’s not having had the |
|
power to prevent this arrest.” |
|
|
|
“He may not have known of it beforehand,” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“But that very circumstance would be alarming, when we remember how |
|
identified he is with his son-in-law.” |
|
|
|
“That’s true,” Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his troubled hand at his |
|
chin, and his troubled eyes on Carton. |
|
|
|
“In short,” said Sydney, “this is a desperate time, when desperate games |
|
are played for desperate stakes. Let the Doctor play the winning game; I |
|
will play the losing one. No man’s life here is worth purchase. Any one |
|
carried home by the people to-day, may be condemned tomorrow. Now, the |
|
stake I have resolved to play for, in case of the worst, is a friend |
|
in the Conciergerie. And the friend I purpose to myself to win, is Mr. |
|
Barsad.” |
|
|
|
“You need have good cards, sir,” said the spy. |
|
|
|
“I’ll run them over. I’ll see what I hold,--Mr. Lorry, you know what a |
|
brute I am; I wish you’d give me a little brandy.” |
|
|
|
It was put before him, and he drank off a glassful--drank off another |
|
glassful--pushed the bottle thoughtfully away. |
|
|
|
“Mr. Barsad,” he went on, in the tone of one who really was looking |
|
over a hand at cards: “Sheep of the prisons, emissary of Republican |
|
committees, now turnkey, now prisoner, always spy and secret informer, |
|
so much the more valuable here for being English that an Englishman |
|
is less open to suspicion of subornation in those characters than a |
|
Frenchman, represents himself to his employers under a false name. |
|
That’s a very good card. Mr. Barsad, now in the employ of the republican |
|
French government, was formerly in the employ of the aristocratic |
|
English government, the enemy of France and freedom. That’s an excellent |
|
card. Inference clear as day in this region of suspicion, that Mr. |
|
Barsad, still in the pay of the aristocratic English government, is the |
|
spy of Pitt, the treacherous foe of the Republic crouching in its bosom, |
|
the English traitor and agent of all mischief so much spoken of and so |
|
difficult to find. That’s a card not to be beaten. Have you followed my |
|
hand, Mr. Barsad?” |
|
|
|
“Not to understand your play,” returned the spy, somewhat uneasily. |
|
|
|
“I play my Ace, Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the nearest Section |
|
Committee. Look over your hand, Mr. Barsad, and see what you have. Don’t |
|
hurry.” |
|
|
|
He drew the bottle near, poured out another glassful of brandy, and |
|
drank it off. He saw that the spy was fearful of his drinking himself |
|
into a fit state for the immediate denunciation of him. Seeing it, he |
|
poured out and drank another glassful. |
|
|
|
“Look over your hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take time.” |
|
|
|
It was a poorer hand than he suspected. Mr. Barsad saw losing cards |
|
in it that Sydney Carton knew nothing of. Thrown out of his honourable |
|
employment in England, through too much unsuccessful hard swearing |
|
there--not because he was not wanted there; our English reasons for |
|
vaunting our superiority to secrecy and spies are of very modern |
|
date--he knew that he had crossed the Channel, and accepted service in |
|
France: first, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among his own countrymen |
|
there: gradually, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the natives. He |
|
knew that under the overthrown government he had been a spy upon Saint |
|
Antoine and Defarge’s wine-shop; had received from the watchful police |
|
such heads of information concerning Doctor Manette’s imprisonment, |
|
release, and history, as should serve him for an introduction to |
|
familiar conversation with the Defarges; and tried them on Madame |
|
Defarge, and had broken down with them signally. He always remembered |
|
with fear and trembling, that that terrible woman had knitted when he |
|
talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as her fingers moved. |
|
He had since seen her, in the Section of Saint Antoine, over and over |
|
again produce her knitted registers, and denounce people whose lives the |
|
guillotine then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one employed as |
|
he was did, that he was never safe; that flight was impossible; that |
|
he was tied fast under the shadow of the axe; and that in spite of |
|
his utmost tergiversation and treachery in furtherance of the reigning |
|
terror, a word might bring it down upon him. Once denounced, and on such |
|
grave grounds as had just now been suggested to his mind, he foresaw |
|
that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting character he had seen many |
|
proofs, would produce against him that fatal register, and would quash |
|
his last chance of life. Besides that all secret men are men soon |
|
terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black suit, to justify |
|
the holder in growing rather livid as he turned them over. |
|
|
|
“You scarcely seem to like your hand,” said Sydney, with the greatest |
|
composure. “Do you play?” |
|
|
|
“I think, sir,” said the spy, in the meanest manner, as he turned to Mr. |
|
Lorry, “I may appeal to a gentleman of your years and benevolence, to |
|
put it to this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can |
|
under any circumstances reconcile it to his station to play that Ace |
|
of which he has spoken. I admit that _I_ am a spy, and that it is |
|
considered a discreditable station--though it must be filled by |
|
somebody; but this gentleman is no spy, and why should he so demean |
|
himself as to make himself one?” |
|
|
|
“I play my Ace, Mr. Barsad,” said Carton, taking the answer on himself, |
|
and looking at his watch, “without any scruple, in a very few minutes.” |
|
|
|
“I should have hoped, gentlemen both,” said the spy, always striving to |
|
hook Mr. Lorry into the discussion, “that your respect for my sister--” |
|
|
|
“I could not better testify my respect for your sister than by finally |
|
relieving her of her brother,” said Sydney Carton. |
|
|
|
“You think not, sir?” |
|
|
|
“I have thoroughly made up my mind about it.” |
|
|
|
The smooth manner of the spy, curiously in dissonance with his |
|
ostentatiously rough dress, and probably with his usual demeanour, |
|
received such a check from the inscrutability of Carton,--who was a |
|
mystery to wiser and honester men than he,--that it faltered here and |
|
failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said, resuming his former air |
|
of contemplating cards: |
|
|
|
“And indeed, now I think again, I have a strong impression that I |
|
have another good card here, not yet enumerated. That friend and |
|
fellow-Sheep, who spoke of himself as pasturing in the country prisons; |
|
who was he?” |
|
|
|
“French. You don’t know him,” said the spy, quickly. |
|
|
|
“French, eh?” repeated Carton, musing, and not appearing to notice him |
|
at all, though he echoed his word. “Well; he may be.” |
|
|
|
“Is, I assure you,” said the spy; “though it’s not important.” |
|
|
|
“Though it’s not important,” repeated Carton, in the same mechanical |
|
way--“though it’s not important--No, it’s not important. No. Yet I know |
|
the face.” |
|
|
|
“I think not. I am sure not. It can’t be,” said the spy. |
|
|
|
“It-can’t-be,” muttered Sydney Carton, retrospectively, and idling his |
|
glass (which fortunately was a small one) again. “Can’t-be. Spoke good |
|
French. Yet like a foreigner, I thought?” |
|
|
|
“Provincial,” said the spy. |
|
|
|
“No. Foreign!” cried Carton, striking his open hand on the table, as a |
|
light broke clearly on his mind. “Cly! Disguised, but the same man. We |
|
had that man before us at the Old Bailey.” |
|
|
|
“Now, there you are hasty, sir,” said Barsad, with a smile that gave his |
|
aquiline nose an extra inclination to one side; “there you really give |
|
me an advantage over you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this |
|
distance of time, was a partner of mine) has been dead several years. I |
|
attended him in his last illness. He was buried in London, at the church |
|
of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields. His unpopularity with the blackguard |
|
multitude at the moment prevented my following his remains, but I helped |
|
to lay him in his coffin.” |
|
|
|
Here, Mr. Lorry became aware, from where he sat, of a most remarkable |
|
goblin shadow on the wall. Tracing it to its source, he discovered it |
|
to be caused by a sudden extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the |
|
risen and stiff hair on Mr. Cruncher’s head. |
|
|
|
“Let us be reasonable,” said the spy, “and let us be fair. To show you |
|
how mistaken you are, and what an unfounded assumption yours is, I will |
|
lay before you a certificate of Cly’s burial, which I happened to have |
|
carried in my pocket-book,” with a hurried hand he produced and opened |
|
it, “ever since. There it is. Oh, look at it, look at it! You may take |
|
it in your hand; it’s no forgery.” |
|
|
|
Here, Mr. Lorry perceived the reflection on the wall to elongate, and |
|
Mr. Cruncher rose and stepped forward. His hair could not have been more |
|
violently on end, if it had been that moment dressed by the Cow with the |
|
crumpled horn in the house that Jack built. |
|
|
|
Unseen by the spy, Mr. Cruncher stood at his side, and touched him on |
|
the shoulder like a ghostly bailiff. |
|
|
|
“That there Roger Cly, master,” said Mr. Cruncher, with a taciturn and |
|
iron-bound visage. “So _you_ put him in his coffin?” |
|
|
|
“I did.” |
|
|
|
“Who took him out of it?” |
|
|
|
Barsad leaned back in his chair, and stammered, “What do you mean?” |
|
|
|
“I mean,” said Mr. Cruncher, “that he warn’t never in it. No! Not he! |
|
I’ll have my head took off, if he was ever in it.” |
|
|
|
The spy looked round at the two gentlemen; they both looked in |
|
unspeakable astonishment at Jerry. |
|
|
|
“I tell you,” said Jerry, “that you buried paving-stones and earth in |
|
that there coffin. Don’t go and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a |
|
take in. Me and two more knows it.” |
|
|
|
“How do you know it?” |
|
|
|
“What’s that to you? Ecod!” growled Mr. Cruncher, “it’s you I have got a |
|
old grudge again, is it, with your shameful impositions upon tradesmen! |
|
I’d catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a guinea.” |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton, who, with Mr. Lorry, had been lost in amazement at |
|
this turn of the business, here requested Mr. Cruncher to moderate and |
|
explain himself. |
|
|
|
“At another time, sir,” he returned, evasively, “the present time is |
|
ill-conwenient for explainin’. What I stand to, is, that he knows well |
|
wot that there Cly was never in that there coffin. Let him say he was, |
|
in so much as a word of one syllable, and I’ll either catch hold of his |
|
throat and choke him for half a guinea;” Mr. Cruncher dwelt upon this as |
|
quite a liberal offer; “or I’ll out and announce him.” |
|
|
|
“Humph! I see one thing,” said Carton. “I hold another card, Mr. Barsad. |
|
Impossible, here in raging Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for |
|
you to outlive denunciation, when you are in communication with another |
|
aristocratic spy of the same antecedents as yourself, who, moreover, has |
|
the mystery about him of having feigned death and come to life again! |
|
A plot in the prisons, of the foreigner against the Republic. A strong |
|
card--a certain Guillotine card! Do you play?” |
|
|
|
“No!” returned the spy. “I throw up. I confess that we were so unpopular |
|
with the outrageous mob, that I only got away from England at the risk |
|
of being ducked to death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that |
|
he never would have got away at all but for that sham. Though how this |
|
man knows it was a sham, is a wonder of wonders to me.” |
|
|
|
“Never you trouble your head about this man,” retorted the contentious |
|
Mr. Cruncher; “you’ll have trouble enough with giving your attention to |
|
that gentleman. And look here! Once more!”--Mr. Cruncher could not |
|
be restrained from making rather an ostentatious parade of his |
|
liberality--“I’d catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a |
|
guinea.” |
|
|
|
The Sheep of the prisons turned from him to Sydney Carton, and said, |
|
with more decision, “It has come to a point. I go on duty soon, and |
|
can’t overstay my time. You told me you had a proposal; what is it? |
|
Now, it is of no use asking too much of me. Ask me to do anything in my |
|
office, putting my head in great extra danger, and I had better trust my |
|
life to the chances of a refusal than the chances of consent. In short, |
|
I should make that choice. You talk of desperation. We are all desperate |
|
here. Remember! I may denounce you if I think proper, and I can swear my |
|
way through stone walls, and so can others. Now, what do you want with |
|
me?” |
|
|
|
“Not very much. You are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?” |
|
|
|
“I tell you once for all, there is no such thing as an escape possible,” |
|
said the spy, firmly. |
|
|
|
“Why need you tell me what I have not asked? You are a turnkey at the |
|
Conciergerie?” |
|
|
|
“I am sometimes.” |
|
|
|
“You can be when you choose?” |
|
|
|
“I can pass in and out when I choose.” |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton filled another glass with brandy, poured it slowly out |
|
upon the hearth, and watched it as it dropped. It being all spent, he |
|
said, rising: |
|
|
|
“So far, we have spoken before these two, because it was as well that |
|
the merits of the cards should not rest solely between you and me. Come |
|
into the dark room here, and let us have one final word alone.” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX. |
|
The Game Made |
|
|
|
|
|
While Sydney Carton and the Sheep of the prisons were in the adjoining |
|
dark room, speaking so low that not a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked |
|
at Jerry in considerable doubt and mistrust. That honest tradesman’s |
|
manner of receiving the look, did not inspire confidence; he changed the |
|
leg on which he rested, as often as if he had fifty of those limbs, |
|
and were trying them all; he examined his finger-nails with a very |
|
questionable closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry’s eye caught |
|
his, he was taken with that peculiar kind of short cough requiring the |
|
hollow of a hand before it, which is seldom, if ever, known to be an |
|
infirmity attendant on perfect openness of character. |
|
|
|
“Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry. “Come here.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher came forward sideways, with one of his shoulders in advance |
|
of him. |
|
|
|
“What have you been, besides a messenger?” |
|
|
|
After some cogitation, accompanied with an intent look at his patron, |
|
Mr. Cruncher conceived the luminous idea of replying, “Agicultooral |
|
character.” |
|
|
|
“My mind misgives me much,” said Mr. Lorry, angrily shaking a forefinger |
|
at him, “that you have used the respectable and great house of Tellson’s |
|
as a blind, and that you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous |
|
description. If you have, don’t expect me to befriend you when you |
|
get back to England. If you have, don’t expect me to keep your secret. |
|
Tellson’s shall not be imposed upon.” |
|
|
|
“I hope, sir,” pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher, “that a gentleman like |
|
yourself wot I’ve had the honour of odd jobbing till I’m grey at it, |
|
would think twice about harming of me, even if it wos so--I don’t say it |
|
is, but even if it wos. And which it is to be took into account that if |
|
it wos, it wouldn’t, even then, be all o’ one side. There’d be two sides |
|
to it. There might be medical doctors at the present hour, a picking |
|
up their guineas where a honest tradesman don’t pick up his |
|
fardens--fardens! no, nor yet his half fardens--half fardens! no, nor |
|
yet his quarter--a banking away like smoke at Tellson’s, and a cocking |
|
their medical eyes at that tradesman on the sly, a going in and going |
|
out to their own carriages--ah! equally like smoke, if not more so. |
|
Well, that ’ud be imposing, too, on Tellson’s. For you cannot sarse the |
|
goose and not the gander. And here’s Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos |
|
in the Old England times, and would be to-morrow, if cause given, |
|
a floppin’ again the business to that degree as is ruinating--stark |
|
ruinating! Whereas them medical doctors’ wives don’t flop--catch ’em at |
|
it! Or, if they flop, their floppings goes in favour of more patients, |
|
and how can you rightly have one without t’other? Then, wot with |
|
undertakers, and wot with parish clerks, and wot with sextons, and wot |
|
with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in it), a man wouldn’t get |
|
much by it, even if it wos so. And wot little a man did get, would never |
|
prosper with him, Mr. Lorry. He’d never have no good of it; he’d want |
|
all along to be out of the line, if he, could see his way out, being |
|
once in--even if it wos so.” |
|
|
|
“Ugh!” cried Mr. Lorry, rather relenting, nevertheless, “I am shocked at |
|
the sight of you.” |
|
|
|
“Now, what I would humbly offer to you, sir,” pursued Mr. Cruncher, |
|
“even if it wos so, which I don’t say it is--” |
|
|
|
“Don’t prevaricate,” said Mr. Lorry. |
|
|
|
“No, I will _not_, sir,” returned Mr. Crunches as if nothing were |
|
further from his thoughts or practice--“which I don’t say it is--wot I |
|
would humbly offer to you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool, at |
|
that there Bar, sets that there boy of mine, brought up and growed up to |
|
be a man, wot will errand you, message you, general-light-job you, till |
|
your heels is where your head is, if such should be your wishes. If it |
|
wos so, which I still don’t say it is (for I will not prewaricate to |
|
you, sir), let that there boy keep his father’s place, and take care of |
|
his mother; don’t blow upon that boy’s father--do not do it, sir--and |
|
let that father go into the line of the reg’lar diggin’, and make amends |
|
for what he would have undug--if it wos so--by diggin’ of ’em in with |
|
a will, and with conwictions respectin’ the futur’ keepin’ of ’em safe. |
|
That, Mr. Lorry,” said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his |
|
arm, as an announcement that he had arrived at the peroration of his |
|
discourse, “is wot I would respectfully offer to you, sir. A man don’t |
|
see all this here a goin’ on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects |
|
without heads, dear me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price down |
|
to porterage and hardly that, without havin’ his serious thoughts of |
|
things. And these here would be mine, if it wos so, entreatin’ of you |
|
fur to bear in mind that wot I said just now, I up and said in the good |
|
cause when I might have kep’ it back.” |
|
|
|
“That at least is true,” said Mr. Lorry. “Say no more now. It may be |
|
that I shall yet stand your friend, if you deserve it, and repent in |
|
action--not in words. I want no more words.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher knuckled his forehead, as Sydney Carton and the spy |
|
returned from the dark room. “Adieu, Mr. Barsad,” said the former; “our |
|
arrangement thus made, you have nothing to fear from me.” |
|
|
|
He sat down in a chair on the hearth, over against Mr. Lorry. When they |
|
were alone, Mr. Lorry asked him what he had done? |
|
|
|
“Not much. If it should go ill with the prisoner, I have ensured access |
|
to him, once.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry’s countenance fell. |
|
|
|
“It is all I could do,” said Carton. “To propose too much, would be |
|
to put this man’s head under the axe, and, as he himself said, nothing |
|
worse could happen to him if he were denounced. It was obviously the |
|
weakness of the position. There is no help for it.” |
|
|
|
“But access to him,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it should go ill before the |
|
Tribunal, will not save him.” |
|
|
|
“I never said it would.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry’s eyes gradually sought the fire; his sympathy with his |
|
darling, and the heavy disappointment of his second arrest, gradually |
|
weakened them; he was an old man now, overborne with anxiety of late, |
|
and his tears fell. |
|
|
|
“You are a good man and a true friend,” said Carton, in an altered |
|
voice. “Forgive me if I notice that you are affected. I could not see my |
|
father weep, and sit by, careless. And I could not respect your |
|
sorrow more, if you were my father. You are free from that misfortune, |
|
however.” |
|
|
|
Though he said the last words, with a slip into his usual manner, there |
|
was a true feeling and respect both in his tone and in his touch, |
|
that Mr. Lorry, who had never seen the better side of him, was wholly |
|
unprepared for. He gave him his hand, and Carton gently pressed it. |
|
|
|
“To return to poor Darnay,” said Carton. “Don’t tell Her of this |
|
interview, or this arrangement. It would not enable Her to go to see |
|
him. She might think it was contrived, in case of the worse, to convey |
|
to him the means of anticipating the sentence.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry had not thought of that, and he looked quickly at Carton to |
|
see if it were in his mind. It seemed to be; he returned the look, and |
|
evidently understood it. |
|
|
|
“She might think a thousand things,” Carton said, “and any of them would |
|
only add to her trouble. Don’t speak of me to her. As I said to you when |
|
I first came, I had better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any |
|
little helpful work for her that my hand can find to do, without that. |
|
You are going to her, I hope? She must be very desolate to-night.” |
|
|
|
“I am going now, directly.” |
|
|
|
“I am glad of that. She has such a strong attachment to you and reliance |
|
on you. How does she look?” |
|
|
|
“Anxious and unhappy, but very beautiful.” |
|
|
|
“Ah!” |
|
|
|
It was a long, grieving sound, like a sigh--almost like a sob. It |
|
attracted Mr. Lorry’s eyes to Carton’s face, which was turned to the |
|
fire. A light, or a shade (the old gentleman could not have said which), |
|
passed from it as swiftly as a change will sweep over a hill-side on a |
|
wild bright day, and he lifted his foot to put back one of the little |
|
flaming logs, which was tumbling forward. He wore the white riding-coat |
|
and top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire touching their |
|
light surfaces made him look very pale, with his long brown hair, |
|
all untrimmed, hanging loose about him. His indifference to fire was |
|
sufficiently remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr. Lorry; |
|
his boot was still upon the hot embers of the flaming log, when it had |
|
broken under the weight of his foot. |
|
|
|
“I forgot it,” he said. |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry’s eyes were again attracted to his face. Taking note of the |
|
wasted air which clouded the naturally handsome features, and having |
|
the expression of prisoners’ faces fresh in his mind, he was strongly |
|
reminded of that expression. |
|
|
|
“And your duties here have drawn to an end, sir?” said Carton, turning |
|
to him. |
|
|
|
“Yes. As I was telling you last night when Lucie came in so |
|
unexpectedly, I have at length done all that I can do here. I hoped to |
|
have left them in perfect safety, and then to have quitted Paris. I have |
|
my Leave to Pass. I was ready to go.” |
|
|
|
They were both silent. |
|
|
|
“Yours is a long life to look back upon, sir?” said Carton, wistfully. |
|
|
|
“I am in my seventy-eighth year.” |
|
|
|
“You have been useful all your life; steadily and constantly occupied; |
|
trusted, respected, and looked up to?” |
|
|
|
“I have been a man of business, ever since I have been a man. Indeed, I |
|
may say that I was a man of business when a boy.” |
|
|
|
“See what a place you fill at seventy-eight. How many people will miss |
|
you when you leave it empty!” |
|
|
|
“A solitary old bachelor,” answered Mr. Lorry, shaking his head. “There |
|
is nobody to weep for me.” |
|
|
|
“How can you say that? Wouldn’t She weep for you? Wouldn’t her child?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, yes, thank God. I didn’t quite mean what I said.” |
|
|
|
“It _is_ a thing to thank God for; is it not?” |
|
|
|
“Surely, surely.” |
|
|
|
“If you could say, with truth, to your own solitary heart, to-night, |
|
‘I have secured to myself the love and attachment, the gratitude or |
|
respect, of no human creature; I have won myself a tender place in no |
|
regard; I have done nothing good or serviceable to be remembered by!’ |
|
your seventy-eight years would be seventy-eight heavy curses; would they |
|
not?” |
|
|
|
“You say truly, Mr. Carton; I think they would be.” |
|
|
|
Sydney turned his eyes again upon the fire, and, after a silence of a |
|
few moments, said: |
|
|
|
“I should like to ask you:--Does your childhood seem far off? Do the |
|
days when you sat at your mother’s knee, seem days of very long ago?” |
|
|
|
Responding to his softened manner, Mr. Lorry answered: |
|
|
|
“Twenty years back, yes; at this time of my life, no. For, as I draw |
|
closer and closer to the end, I travel in the circle, nearer and |
|
nearer to the beginning. It seems to be one of the kind smoothings and |
|
preparings of the way. My heart is touched now, by many remembrances |
|
that had long fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother (and I so old!), |
|
and by many associations of the days when what we call the World was not |
|
so real with me, and my faults were not confirmed in me.” |
|
|
|
“I understand the feeling!” exclaimed Carton, with a bright flush. “And |
|
you are the better for it?” |
|
|
|
“I hope so.” |
|
|
|
Carton terminated the conversation here, by rising to help him on with |
|
his outer coat; “But you,” said Mr. Lorry, reverting to the theme, “you |
|
are young.” |
|
|
|
“Yes,” said Carton. “I am not old, but my young way was never the way to |
|
age. Enough of me.” |
|
|
|
“And of me, I am sure,” said Mr. Lorry. “Are you going out?” |
|
|
|
“I’ll walk with you to her gate. You know my vagabond and restless |
|
habits. If I should prowl about the streets a long time, don’t be |
|
uneasy; I shall reappear in the morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?” |
|
|
|
“Yes, unhappily.” |
|
|
|
“I shall be there, but only as one of the crowd. My Spy will find a |
|
place for me. Take my arm, sir.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry did so, and they went down-stairs and out in the streets. A |
|
few minutes brought them to Mr. Lorry’s destination. Carton left him |
|
there; but lingered at a little distance, and turned back to the gate |
|
again when it was shut, and touched it. He had heard of her going to |
|
the prison every day. “She came out here,” he said, looking about him, |
|
“turned this way, must have trod on these stones often. Let me follow in |
|
her steps.” |
|
|
|
It was ten o’clock at night when he stood before the prison of La Force, |
|
where she had stood hundreds of times. A little wood-sawyer, having |
|
closed his shop, was smoking his pipe at his shop-door. |
|
|
|
“Good night, citizen,” said Sydney Carton, pausing in going by; for, the |
|
man eyed him inquisitively. |
|
|
|
“Good night, citizen.” |
|
|
|
“How goes the Republic?” |
|
|
|
“You mean the Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three to-day. We shall mount |
|
to a hundred soon. Samson and his men complain sometimes, of being |
|
exhausted. Ha, ha, ha! He is so droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!” |
|
|
|
“Do you often go to see him--” |
|
|
|
“Shave? Always. Every day. What a barber! You have seen him at work?” |
|
|
|
“Never.” |
|
|
|
“Go and see him when he has a good batch. Figure this to yourself, |
|
citizen; he shaved the sixty-three to-day, in less than two pipes! Less |
|
than two pipes. Word of honour!” |
|
|
|
As the grinning little man held out the pipe he was smoking, to explain |
|
how he timed the executioner, Carton was so sensible of a rising desire |
|
to strike the life out of him, that he turned away. |
|
|
|
“But you are not English,” said the wood-sawyer, “though you wear |
|
English dress?” |
|
|
|
“Yes,” said Carton, pausing again, and answering over his shoulder. |
|
|
|
“You speak like a Frenchman.” |
|
|
|
“I am an old student here.” |
|
|
|
“Aha, a perfect Frenchman! Good night, Englishman.” |
|
|
|
“Good night, citizen.” |
|
|
|
“But go and see that droll dog,” the little man persisted, calling after |
|
him. “And take a pipe with you!” |
|
|
|
Sydney had not gone far out of sight, when he stopped in the middle of |
|
the street under a glimmering lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap |
|
of paper. Then, traversing with the decided step of one who remembered |
|
the way well, several dark and dirty streets--much dirtier than usual, |
|
for the best public thoroughfares remained uncleansed in those times of |
|
terror--he stopped at a chemist’s shop, which the owner was closing with |
|
his own hands. A small, dim, crooked shop, kept in a tortuous, up-hill |
|
thoroughfare, by a small, dim, crooked man. |
|
|
|
Giving this citizen, too, good night, as he confronted him at his |
|
counter, he laid the scrap of paper before him. “Whew!” the chemist |
|
whistled softly, as he read it. “Hi! hi! hi!” |
|
|
|
Sydney Carton took no heed, and the chemist said: |
|
|
|
“For you, citizen?” |
|
|
|
“For me.” |
|
|
|
“You will be careful to keep them separate, citizen? You know the |
|
consequences of mixing them?” |
|
|
|
“Perfectly.” |
|
|
|
Certain small packets were made and given to him. He put them, one by |
|
one, in the breast of his inner coat, counted out the money for them, |
|
and deliberately left the shop. “There is nothing more to do,” said he, |
|
glancing upward at the moon, “until to-morrow. I can’t sleep.” |
|
|
|
It was not a reckless manner, the manner in which he said these words |
|
aloud under the fast-sailing clouds, nor was it more expressive of |
|
negligence than defiance. It was the settled manner of a tired man, who |
|
had wandered and struggled and got lost, but who at length struck into |
|
his road and saw its end. |
|
|
|
Long ago, when he had been famous among his earliest competitors as a |
|
youth of great promise, he had followed his father to the grave. His |
|
mother had died, years before. These solemn words, which had been |
|
read at his father’s grave, arose in his mind as he went down the dark |
|
streets, among the heavy shadows, with the moon and the clouds sailing |
|
on high above him. “I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: |
|
he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and |
|
whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never die.” |
|
|
|
In a city dominated by the axe, alone at night, with natural sorrow |
|
rising in him for the sixty-three who had been that day put to death, |
|
and for to-morrow’s victims then awaiting their doom in the prisons, |
|
and still of to-morrow’s and to-morrow’s, the chain of association that |
|
brought the words home, like a rusty old ship’s anchor from the deep, |
|
might have been easily found. He did not seek it, but repeated them and |
|
went on. |
|
|
|
With a solemn interest in the lighted windows where the people were |
|
going to rest, forgetful through a few calm hours of the horrors |
|
surrounding them; in the towers of the churches, where no prayers |
|
were said, for the popular revulsion had even travelled that length |
|
of self-destruction from years of priestly impostors, plunderers, and |
|
profligates; in the distant burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon |
|
the gates, for Eternal Sleep; in the abounding gaols; and in the streets |
|
along which the sixties rolled to a death which had become so common and |
|
material, that no sorrowful story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among |
|
the people out of all the working of the Guillotine; with a solemn |
|
interest in the whole life and death of the city settling down to its |
|
short nightly pause in fury; Sydney Carton crossed the Seine again for |
|
the lighter streets. |
|
|
|
Few coaches were abroad, for riders in coaches were liable to be |
|
suspected, and gentility hid its head in red nightcaps, and put on heavy |
|
shoes, and trudged. But, the theatres were all well filled, and the |
|
people poured cheerfully out as he passed, and went chatting home. At |
|
one of the theatre doors, there was a little girl with a mother, looking |
|
for a way across the street through the mud. He carried the child over, |
|
and before the timid arm was loosed from his neck asked her for a kiss. |
|
|
|
“I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that believeth |
|
in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and |
|
believeth in me, shall never die.” |
|
|
|
Now, that the streets were quiet, and the night wore on, the words |
|
were in the echoes of his feet, and were in the air. Perfectly calm |
|
and steady, he sometimes repeated them to himself as he walked; but, he |
|
heard them always. |
|
|
|
The night wore out, and, as he stood upon the bridge listening to the |
|
water as it splashed the river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the |
|
picturesque confusion of houses and cathedral shone bright in the light |
|
of the moon, the day came coldly, looking like a dead face out of the |
|
sky. Then, the night, with the moon and the stars, turned pale and died, |
|
and for a little while it seemed as if Creation were delivered over to |
|
Death’s dominion. |
|
|
|
But, the glorious sun, rising, seemed to strike those words, that burden |
|
of the night, straight and warm to his heart in its long bright rays. |
|
And looking along them, with reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light |
|
appeared to span the air between him and the sun, while the river |
|
sparkled under it. |
|
|
|
The strong tide, so swift, so deep, and certain, was like a congenial |
|
friend, in the morning stillness. He walked by the stream, far from the |
|
houses, and in the light and warmth of the sun fell asleep on the |
|
bank. When he awoke and was afoot again, he lingered there yet a little |
|
longer, watching an eddy that turned and turned purposeless, until the |
|
stream absorbed it, and carried it on to the sea.--“Like me.” |
|
|
|
A trading-boat, with a sail of the softened colour of a dead leaf, then |
|
glided into his view, floated by him, and died away. As its silent track |
|
in the water disappeared, the prayer that had broken up out of his heart |
|
for a merciful consideration of all his poor blindnesses and errors, |
|
ended in the words, “I am the resurrection and the life.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry was already out when he got back, and it was easy to surmise |
|
where the good old man was gone. Sydney Carton drank nothing but a |
|
little coffee, ate some bread, and, having washed and changed to refresh |
|
himself, went out to the place of trial. |
|
|
|
The court was all astir and a-buzz, when the black sheep--whom many fell |
|
away from in dread--pressed him into an obscure corner among the crowd. |
|
Mr. Lorry was there, and Doctor Manette was there. She was there, |
|
sitting beside her father. |
|
|
|
When her husband was brought in, she turned a look upon him, so |
|
sustaining, so encouraging, so full of admiring love and pitying |
|
tenderness, yet so courageous for his sake, that it called the healthy |
|
blood into his face, brightened his glance, and animated his heart. If |
|
there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her look, on Sydney |
|
Carton, it would have been seen to be the same influence exactly. |
|
|
|
Before that unjust Tribunal, there was little or no order of procedure, |
|
ensuring to any accused person any reasonable hearing. There could have |
|
been no such Revolution, if all laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not |
|
first been so monstrously abused, that the suicidal vengeance of the |
|
Revolution was to scatter them all to the winds. |
|
|
|
Every eye was turned to the jury. The same determined patriots and good |
|
republicans as yesterday and the day before, and to-morrow and the day |
|
after. Eager and prominent among them, one man with a craving face, and |
|
his fingers perpetually hovering about his lips, whose appearance |
|
gave great satisfaction to the spectators. A life-thirsting, |
|
cannibal-looking, bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of St. |
|
Antoine. The whole jury, as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the deer. |
|
|
|
Every eye then turned to the five judges and the public prosecutor. |
|
No favourable leaning in that quarter to-day. A fell, uncompromising, |
|
murderous business-meaning there. Every eye then sought some other eye |
|
in the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and heads nodded at one |
|
another, before bending forward with a strained attention. |
|
|
|
Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay. Released yesterday. Reaccused and |
|
retaken yesterday. Indictment delivered to him last night. Suspected and |
|
Denounced enemy of the Republic, Aristocrat, one of a family of tyrants, |
|
one of a race proscribed, for that they had used their abolished |
|
privileges to the infamous oppression of the people. Charles Evrémonde, |
|
called Darnay, in right of such proscription, absolutely Dead in Law. |
|
|
|
To this effect, in as few or fewer words, the Public Prosecutor. |
|
|
|
The President asked, was the Accused openly denounced or secretly? |
|
|
|
“Openly, President.” |
|
|
|
“By whom?” |
|
|
|
“Three voices. Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St. Antoine.” |
|
|
|
“Good.” |
|
|
|
“Thérèse Defarge, his wife.” |
|
|
|
“Good.” |
|
|
|
“Alexandre Manette, physician.” |
|
|
|
A great uproar took place in the court, and in the midst of it, Doctor |
|
Manette was seen, pale and trembling, standing where he had been seated. |
|
|
|
“President, I indignantly protest to you that this is a forgery and |
|
a fraud. You know the accused to be the husband of my daughter. My |
|
daughter, and those dear to her, are far dearer to me than my life. Who |
|
and where is the false conspirator who says that I denounce the husband |
|
of my child!” |
|
|
|
“Citizen Manette, be tranquil. To fail in submission to the authority of |
|
the Tribunal would be to put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer |
|
to you than life, nothing can be so dear to a good citizen as the |
|
Republic.” |
|
|
|
Loud acclamations hailed this rebuke. The President rang his bell, and |
|
with warmth resumed. |
|
|
|
“If the Republic should demand of you the sacrifice of your child |
|
herself, you would have no duty but to sacrifice her. Listen to what is |
|
to follow. In the meanwhile, be silent!” |
|
|
|
Frantic acclamations were again raised. Doctor Manette sat down, with |
|
his eyes looking around, and his lips trembling; his daughter drew |
|
closer to him. The craving man on the jury rubbed his hands together, |
|
and restored the usual hand to his mouth. |
|
|
|
Defarge was produced, when the court was quiet enough to admit of his |
|
being heard, and rapidly expounded the story of the imprisonment, and of |
|
his having been a mere boy in the Doctor’s service, and of the release, |
|
and of the state of the prisoner when released and delivered to him. |
|
This short examination followed, for the court was quick with its work. |
|
|
|
“You did good service at the taking of the Bastille, citizen?” |
|
|
|
“I believe so.” |
|
|
|
Here, an excited woman screeched from the crowd: “You were one of the |
|
best patriots there. Why not say so? You were a cannonier that day |
|
there, and you were among the first to enter the accursed fortress when |
|
it fell. Patriots, I speak the truth!” |
|
|
|
It was The Vengeance who, amidst the warm commendations of the audience, |
|
thus assisted the proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The |
|
Vengeance, warming with encouragement, shrieked, “I defy that bell!” |
|
wherein she was likewise much commended. |
|
|
|
“Inform the Tribunal of what you did that day within the Bastille, |
|
citizen.” |
|
|
|
“I knew,” said Defarge, looking down at his wife, who stood at the |
|
bottom of the steps on which he was raised, looking steadily up at him; |
|
“I knew that this prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell |
|
known as One Hundred and Five, North Tower. I knew it from himself. He |
|
knew himself by no other name than One Hundred and Five, North Tower, |
|
when he made shoes under my care. As I serve my gun that day, I resolve, |
|
when the place shall fall, to examine that cell. It falls. I mount to |
|
the cell, with a fellow-citizen who is one of the Jury, directed by a |
|
gaoler. I examine it, very closely. In a hole in the chimney, where a |
|
stone has been worked out and replaced, I find a written paper. This is |
|
that written paper. I have made it my business to examine some specimens |
|
of the writing of Doctor Manette. This is the writing of Doctor Manette. |
|
I confide this paper, in the writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands of |
|
the President.” |
|
|
|
“Let it be read.” |
|
|
|
In a dead silence and stillness--the prisoner under trial looking |
|
lovingly at his wife, his wife only looking from him to look with |
|
solicitude at her father, Doctor Manette keeping his eyes fixed on the |
|
reader, Madame Defarge never taking hers from the prisoner, Defarge |
|
never taking his from his feasting wife, and all the other eyes there |
|
intent upon the Doctor, who saw none of them--the paper was read, as |
|
follows. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X. |
|
The Substance of the Shadow |
|
|
|
|
|
“I, Alexandre Manette, unfortunate physician, native of Beauvais, and |
|
afterwards resident in Paris, write this melancholy paper in my doleful |
|
cell in the Bastille, during the last month of the year, 1767. I write |
|
it at stolen intervals, under every difficulty. I design to secrete it |
|
in the wall of the chimney, where I have slowly and laboriously made a |
|
place of concealment for it. Some pitying hand may find it there, when I |
|
and my sorrows are dust. |
|
|
|
“These words are formed by the rusty iron point with which I write with |
|
difficulty in scrapings of soot and charcoal from the chimney, mixed |
|
with blood, in the last month of the tenth year of my captivity. Hope |
|
has quite departed from my breast. I know from terrible warnings I have |
|
noted in myself that my reason will not long remain unimpaired, but I |
|
solemnly declare that I am at this time in the possession of my right |
|
mind--that my memory is exact and circumstantial--and that I write the |
|
truth as I shall answer for these my last recorded words, whether they |
|
be ever read by men or not, at the Eternal Judgment-seat. |
|
|
|
“One cloudy moonlight night, in the third week of December (I think the |
|
twenty-second of the month) in the year 1757, I was walking on a retired |
|
part of the quay by the Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air, |
|
at an hour’s distance from my place of residence in the Street of the |
|
School of Medicine, when a carriage came along behind me, driven very |
|
fast. As I stood aside to let that carriage pass, apprehensive that it |
|
might otherwise run me down, a head was put out at the window, and a |
|
voice called to the driver to stop. |
|
|
|
“The carriage stopped as soon as the driver could rein in his horses, |
|
and the same voice called to me by my name. I answered. The carriage |
|
was then so far in advance of me that two gentlemen had time to open the |
|
door and alight before I came up with it. |
|
|
|
“I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks, and appeared to |
|
conceal themselves. As they stood side by side near the carriage door, |
|
I also observed that they both looked of about my own age, or rather |
|
younger, and that they were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice, |
|
and (as far as I could see) face too. |
|
|
|
“‘You are Doctor Manette?’ said one. |
|
|
|
“I am.” |
|
|
|
“‘Doctor Manette, formerly of Beauvais,’ said the other; ‘the young |
|
physician, originally an expert surgeon, who within the last year or two |
|
has made a rising reputation in Paris?’ |
|
|
|
“‘Gentlemen,’ I returned, ‘I am that Doctor Manette of whom you speak so |
|
graciously.’ |
|
|
|
“‘We have been to your residence,’ said the first, ‘and not being |
|
so fortunate as to find you there, and being informed that you were |
|
probably walking in this direction, we followed, in the hope of |
|
overtaking you. Will you please to enter the carriage?’ |
|
|
|
“The manner of both was imperious, and they both moved, as these words |
|
were spoken, so as to place me between themselves and the carriage door. |
|
They were armed. I was not. |
|
|
|
“‘Gentlemen,’ said I, ‘pardon me; but I usually inquire who does me |
|
the honour to seek my assistance, and what is the nature of the case to |
|
which I am summoned.’ |
|
|
|
“The reply to this was made by him who had spoken second. ‘Doctor, |
|
your clients are people of condition. As to the nature of the case, |
|
our confidence in your skill assures us that you will ascertain it for |
|
yourself better than we can describe it. Enough. Will you please to |
|
enter the carriage?’ |
|
|
|
“I could do nothing but comply, and I entered it in silence. They both |
|
entered after me--the last springing in, after putting up the steps. The |
|
carriage turned about, and drove on at its former speed. |
|
|
|
“I repeat this conversation exactly as it occurred. I have no doubt that |
|
it is, word for word, the same. I describe everything exactly as it took |
|
place, constraining my mind not to wander from the task. Where I make |
|
the broken marks that follow here, I leave off for the time, and put my |
|
paper in its hiding-place. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“The carriage left the streets behind, passed the North Barrier, and |
|
emerged upon the country road. At two-thirds of a league from the |
|
Barrier--I did not estimate the distance at that time, but afterwards |
|
when I traversed it--it struck out of the main avenue, and presently |
|
stopped at a solitary house, We all three alighted, and walked, by |
|
a damp soft footpath in a garden where a neglected fountain had |
|
overflowed, to the door of the house. It was not opened immediately, in |
|
answer to the ringing of the bell, and one of my two conductors struck |
|
the man who opened it, with his heavy riding glove, across the face. |
|
|
|
“There was nothing in this action to attract my particular attention, |
|
for I had seen common people struck more commonly than dogs. But, the |
|
other of the two, being angry likewise, struck the man in like manner |
|
with his arm; the look and bearing of the brothers were then so exactly |
|
alike, that I then first perceived them to be twin brothers. |
|
|
|
“From the time of our alighting at the outer gate (which we found |
|
locked, and which one of the brothers had opened to admit us, and had |
|
relocked), I had heard cries proceeding from an upper chamber. I was |
|
conducted to this chamber straight, the cries growing louder as we |
|
ascended the stairs, and I found a patient in a high fever of the brain, |
|
lying on a bed. |
|
|
|
“The patient was a woman of great beauty, and young; assuredly not much |
|
past twenty. Her hair was torn and ragged, and her arms were bound to |
|
her sides with sashes and handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were |
|
all portions of a gentleman’s dress. On one of them, which was a fringed |
|
scarf for a dress of ceremony, I saw the armorial bearings of a Noble, |
|
and the letter E. |
|
|
|
“I saw this, within the first minute of my contemplation of the patient; |
|
for, in her restless strivings she had turned over on her face on the |
|
edge of the bed, had drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth, and was |
|
in danger of suffocation. My first act was to put out my hand to relieve |
|
her breathing; and in moving the scarf aside, the embroidery in the |
|
corner caught my sight. |
|
|
|
“I turned her gently over, placed my hands upon her breast to calm her |
|
and keep her down, and looked into her face. Her eyes were dilated and |
|
wild, and she constantly uttered piercing shrieks, and repeated the |
|
words, ‘My husband, my father, and my brother!’ and then counted up to |
|
twelve, and said, ‘Hush!’ For an instant, and no more, she would pause |
|
to listen, and then the piercing shrieks would begin again, and she |
|
would repeat the cry, ‘My husband, my father, and my brother!’ and |
|
would count up to twelve, and say, ‘Hush!’ There was no variation in the |
|
order, or the manner. There was no cessation, but the regular moment’s |
|
pause, in the utterance of these sounds. |
|
|
|
“‘How long,’ I asked, ‘has this lasted?’ |
|
|
|
“To distinguish the brothers, I will call them the elder and the |
|
younger; by the elder, I mean him who exercised the most authority. It |
|
was the elder who replied, ‘Since about this hour last night.’ |
|
|
|
“‘She has a husband, a father, and a brother?’ |
|
|
|
“‘A brother.’ |
|
|
|
“‘I do not address her brother?’ |
|
|
|
“He answered with great contempt, ‘No.’ |
|
|
|
“‘She has some recent association with the number twelve?’ |
|
|
|
“The younger brother impatiently rejoined, ‘With twelve o’clock?’ |
|
|
|
“‘See, gentlemen,’ said I, still keeping my hands upon her breast, ‘how |
|
useless I am, as you have brought me! If I had known what I was coming |
|
to see, I could have come provided. As it is, time must be lost. There |
|
are no medicines to be obtained in this lonely place.’ |
|
|
|
“The elder brother looked to the younger, who said haughtily, ‘There is |
|
a case of medicines here;’ and brought it from a closet, and put it on |
|
the table. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“I opened some of the bottles, smelt them, and put the stoppers to my |
|
lips. If I had wanted to use anything save narcotic medicines that were |
|
poisons in themselves, I would not have administered any of those. |
|
|
|
“‘Do you doubt them?’ asked the younger brother. |
|
|
|
“‘You see, monsieur, I am going to use them,’ I replied, and said no |
|
more. |
|
|
|
“I made the patient swallow, with great difficulty, and after many |
|
efforts, the dose that I desired to give. As I intended to repeat it |
|
after a while, and as it was necessary to watch its influence, I then |
|
sat down by the side of the bed. There was a timid and suppressed woman |
|
in attendance (wife of the man down-stairs), who had retreated into |
|
a corner. The house was damp and decayed, indifferently |
|
furnished--evidently, recently occupied and temporarily used. Some thick |
|
old hangings had been nailed up before the windows, to deaden the |
|
sound of the shrieks. They continued to be uttered in their regular |
|
succession, with the cry, ‘My husband, my father, and my brother!’ the |
|
counting up to twelve, and ‘Hush!’ The frenzy was so violent, that I had |
|
not unfastened the bandages restraining the arms; but, I had looked to |
|
them, to see that they were not painful. The only spark of encouragement |
|
in the case, was, that my hand upon the sufferer’s breast had this much |
|
soothing influence, that for minutes at a time it tranquillised the |
|
figure. It had no effect upon the cries; no pendulum could be more |
|
regular. |
|
|
|
“For the reason that my hand had this effect (I assume), I had sat by |
|
the side of the bed for half an hour, with the two brothers looking on, |
|
before the elder said: |
|
|
|
“‘There is another patient.’ |
|
|
|
“I was startled, and asked, ‘Is it a pressing case?’ |
|
|
|
“‘You had better see,’ he carelessly answered; and took up a light. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“The other patient lay in a back room across a second staircase, which |
|
was a species of loft over a stable. There was a low plastered ceiling |
|
to a part of it; the rest was open, to the ridge of the tiled roof, and |
|
there were beams across. Hay and straw were stored in that portion of |
|
the place, fagots for firing, and a heap of apples in sand. I had to |
|
pass through that part, to get at the other. My memory is circumstantial |
|
and unshaken. I try it with these details, and I see them all, in |
|
this my cell in the Bastille, near the close of the tenth year of my |
|
captivity, as I saw them all that night. |
|
|
|
“On some hay on the ground, with a cushion thrown under his head, lay a |
|
handsome peasant boy--a boy of not more than seventeen at the most. |
|
He lay on his back, with his teeth set, his right hand clenched on his |
|
breast, and his glaring eyes looking straight upward. I could not see |
|
where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee over him; but, I could see |
|
that he was dying of a wound from a sharp point. |
|
|
|
“‘I am a doctor, my poor fellow,’ said I. ‘Let me examine it.’ |
|
|
|
“‘I do not want it examined,’ he answered; ‘let it be.’ |
|
|
|
“It was under his hand, and I soothed him to let me move his hand away. |
|
The wound was a sword-thrust, received from twenty to twenty-four hours |
|
before, but no skill could have saved him if it had been looked to |
|
without delay. He was then dying fast. As I turned my eyes to the elder |
|
brother, I saw him looking down at this handsome boy whose life was |
|
ebbing out, as if he were a wounded bird, or hare, or rabbit; not at all |
|
as if he were a fellow-creature. |
|
|
|
“‘How has this been done, monsieur?’ said I. |
|
|
|
“‘A crazed young common dog! A serf! Forced my brother to draw upon him, |
|
and has fallen by my brother’s sword--like a gentleman.’ |
|
|
|
“There was no touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred humanity, in this |
|
answer. The speaker seemed to acknowledge that it was inconvenient to |
|
have that different order of creature dying there, and that it would |
|
have been better if he had died in the usual obscure routine of his |
|
vermin kind. He was quite incapable of any compassionate feeling about |
|
the boy, or about his fate. |
|
|
|
“The boy’s eyes had slowly moved to him as he had spoken, and they now |
|
slowly moved to me. |
|
|
|
“‘Doctor, they are very proud, these Nobles; but we common dogs are |
|
proud too, sometimes. They plunder us, outrage us, beat us, kill us; but |
|
we have a little pride left, sometimes. She--have you seen her, Doctor?’ |
|
|
|
“The shrieks and the cries were audible there, though subdued by the |
|
distance. He referred to them, as if she were lying in our presence. |
|
|
|
“I said, ‘I have seen her.’ |
|
|
|
“‘She is my sister, Doctor. They have had their shameful rights, these |
|
Nobles, in the modesty and virtue of our sisters, many years, but we |
|
have had good girls among us. I know it, and have heard my father say |
|
so. She was a good girl. She was betrothed to a good young man, too: a |
|
tenant of his. We were all tenants of his--that man’s who stands there. |
|
The other is his brother, the worst of a bad race.’ |
|
|
|
“It was with the greatest difficulty that the boy gathered bodily force |
|
to speak; but, his spirit spoke with a dreadful emphasis. |
|
|
|
“‘We were so robbed by that man who stands there, as all we common dogs |
|
are by those superior Beings--taxed by him without mercy, obliged to |
|
work for him without pay, obliged to grind our corn at his mill, obliged |
|
to feed scores of his tame birds on our wretched crops, and forbidden |
|
for our lives to keep a single tame bird of our own, pillaged and |
|
plundered to that degree that when we chanced to have a bit of meat, we |
|
ate it in fear, with the door barred and the shutters closed, that his |
|
people should not see it and take it from us--I say, we were so robbed, |
|
and hunted, and were made so poor, that our father told us it was a |
|
dreadful thing to bring a child into the world, and that what we should |
|
most pray for, was, that our women might be barren and our miserable |
|
race die out!’ |
|
|
|
“I had never before seen the sense of being oppressed, bursting forth |
|
like a fire. I had supposed that it must be latent in the people |
|
somewhere; but, I had never seen it break out, until I saw it in the |
|
dying boy. |
|
|
|
“‘Nevertheless, Doctor, my sister married. He was ailing at that time, |
|
poor fellow, and she married her lover, that she might tend and comfort |
|
him in our cottage--our dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had not |
|
been married many weeks, when that man’s brother saw her and admired |
|
her, and asked that man to lend her to him--for what are husbands among |
|
us! He was willing enough, but my sister was good and virtuous, and |
|
hated his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What did the two |
|
then, to persuade her husband to use his influence with her, to make her |
|
willing?’ |
|
|
|
“The boy’s eyes, which had been fixed on mine, slowly turned to the |
|
looker-on, and I saw in the two faces that all he said was true. The two |
|
opposing kinds of pride confronting one another, I can see, even in this |
|
Bastille; the gentleman’s, all negligent indifference; the peasant’s, all |
|
trodden-down sentiment, and passionate revenge. |
|
|
|
“‘You know, Doctor, that it is among the Rights of these Nobles to |
|
harness us common dogs to carts, and drive us. They so harnessed him and |
|
drove him. You know that it is among their Rights to keep us in their |
|
grounds all night, quieting the frogs, in order that their noble sleep |
|
may not be disturbed. They kept him out in the unwholesome mists at |
|
night, and ordered him back into his harness in the day. But he was |
|
not persuaded. No! Taken out of harness one day at noon, to feed--if he |
|
could find food--he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke of the |
|
bell, and died on her bosom.’ |
|
|
|
“Nothing human could have held life in the boy but his determination to |
|
tell all his wrong. He forced back the gathering shadows of death, as |
|
he forced his clenched right hand to remain clenched, and to cover his |
|
wound. |
|
|
|
“‘Then, with that man’s permission and even with his aid, his |
|
brother took her away; in spite of what I know she must have told his |
|
brother--and what that is, will not be long unknown to you, Doctor, if |
|
it is now--his brother took her away--for his pleasure and diversion, |
|
for a little while. I saw her pass me on the road. When I took the |
|
tidings home, our father’s heart burst; he never spoke one of the words |
|
that filled it. I took my young sister (for I have another) to a place |
|
beyond the reach of this man, and where, at least, she will never be |
|
_his_ vassal. Then, I tracked the brother here, and last night climbed |
|
in--a common dog, but sword in hand.--Where is the loft window? It was |
|
somewhere here?’ |
|
|
|
“The room was darkening to his sight; the world was narrowing around |
|
him. I glanced about me, and saw that the hay and straw were trampled |
|
over the floor, as if there had been a struggle. |
|
|
|
“‘She heard me, and ran in. I told her not to come near us till he was |
|
dead. He came in and first tossed me some pieces of money; then struck |
|
at me with a whip. But I, though a common dog, so struck at him as to |
|
make him draw. Let him break into as many pieces as he will, the sword |
|
that he stained with my common blood; he drew to defend himself--thrust |
|
at me with all his skill for his life.’ |
|
|
|
“My glance had fallen, but a few moments before, on the fragments of |
|
a broken sword, lying among the hay. That weapon was a gentleman’s. In |
|
another place, lay an old sword that seemed to have been a soldier’s. |
|
|
|
“‘Now, lift me up, Doctor; lift me up. Where is he?’ |
|
|
|
“‘He is not here,’ I said, supporting the boy, and thinking that he |
|
referred to the brother. |
|
|
|
“‘He! Proud as these nobles are, he is afraid to see me. Where is the |
|
man who was here? Turn my face to him.’ |
|
|
|
“I did so, raising the boy’s head against my knee. But, invested for the |
|
moment with extraordinary power, he raised himself completely: obliging |
|
me to rise too, or I could not have still supported him. |
|
|
|
“‘Marquis,’ said the boy, turned to him with his eyes opened wide, and |
|
his right hand raised, ‘in the days when all these things are to be |
|
answered for, I summon you and yours, to the last of your bad race, to |
|
answer for them. I mark this cross of blood upon you, as a sign that |
|
I do it. In the days when all these things are to be answered for, |
|
I summon your brother, the worst of the bad race, to answer for them |
|
separately. I mark this cross of blood upon him, as a sign that I do |
|
it.’ |
|
|
|
“Twice, he put his hand to the wound in his breast, and with his |
|
forefinger drew a cross in the air. He stood for an instant with the |
|
finger yet raised, and as it dropped, he dropped with it, and I laid him |
|
down dead. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“When I returned to the bedside of the young woman, I found her raving |
|
in precisely the same order of continuity. I knew that this might last |
|
for many hours, and that it would probably end in the silence of the |
|
grave. |
|
|
|
“I repeated the medicines I had given her, and I sat at the side of |
|
the bed until the night was far advanced. She never abated the piercing |
|
quality of her shrieks, never stumbled in the distinctness or the order |
|
of her words. They were always ‘My husband, my father, and my brother! |
|
One, two, three, four, five, six, seven, eight, nine, ten, eleven, |
|
twelve. Hush!’ |
|
|
|
“This lasted twenty-six hours from the time when I first saw her. I had |
|
come and gone twice, and was again sitting by her, when she began to |
|
falter. I did what little could be done to assist that opportunity, and |
|
by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy, and lay like the dead. |
|
|
|
“It was as if the wind and rain had lulled at last, after a long and |
|
fearful storm. I released her arms, and called the woman to assist me to |
|
compose her figure and the dress she had torn. It was then that I knew |
|
her condition to be that of one in whom the first expectations of being |
|
a mother have arisen; and it was then that I lost the little hope I had |
|
had of her. |
|
|
|
“‘Is she dead?’ asked the Marquis, whom I will still describe as the |
|
elder brother, coming booted into the room from his horse. |
|
|
|
“‘Not dead,’ said I; ‘but like to die.’ |
|
|
|
“‘What strength there is in these common bodies!’ he said, looking down |
|
at her with some curiosity. |
|
|
|
“‘There is prodigious strength,’ I answered him, ‘in sorrow and |
|
despair.’ |
|
|
|
“He first laughed at my words, and then frowned at them. He moved a |
|
chair with his foot near to mine, ordered the woman away, and said in a |
|
subdued voice, |
|
|
|
“‘Doctor, finding my brother in this difficulty with these hinds, I |
|
recommended that your aid should be invited. Your reputation is high, |
|
and, as a young man with your fortune to make, you are probably mindful |
|
of your interest. The things that you see here, are things to be seen, |
|
and not spoken of.’ |
|
|
|
“I listened to the patient’s breathing, and avoided answering. |
|
|
|
“‘Do you honour me with your attention, Doctor?’ |
|
|
|
“‘Monsieur,’ said I, ‘in my profession, the communications of patients |
|
are always received in confidence.’ I was guarded in my answer, for I |
|
was troubled in my mind with what I had heard and seen. |
|
|
|
“Her breathing was so difficult to trace, that I carefully tried the |
|
pulse and the heart. There was life, and no more. Looking round as I |
|
resumed my seat, I found both the brothers intent upon me. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“I write with so much difficulty, the cold is so severe, I am so |
|
fearful of being detected and consigned to an underground cell and total |
|
darkness, that I must abridge this narrative. There is no confusion or |
|
failure in my memory; it can recall, and could detail, every word that |
|
was ever spoken between me and those brothers. |
|
|
|
“She lingered for a week. Towards the last, I could understand some few |
|
syllables that she said to me, by placing my ear close to her lips. She |
|
asked me where she was, and I told her; who I was, and I told her. It |
|
was in vain that I asked her for her family name. She faintly shook her |
|
head upon the pillow, and kept her secret, as the boy had done. |
|
|
|
“I had no opportunity of asking her any question, until I had told the |
|
brothers she was sinking fast, and could not live another day. Until |
|
then, though no one was ever presented to her consciousness save the |
|
woman and myself, one or other of them had always jealously sat behind |
|
the curtain at the head of the bed when I was there. But when it came to |
|
that, they seemed careless what communication I might hold with her; as |
|
if--the thought passed through my mind--I were dying too. |
|
|
|
“I always observed that their pride bitterly resented the younger |
|
brother’s (as I call him) having crossed swords with a peasant, and that |
|
peasant a boy. The only consideration that appeared to affect the mind |
|
of either of them was the consideration that this was highly degrading |
|
to the family, and was ridiculous. As often as I caught the younger |
|
brother’s eyes, their expression reminded me that he disliked me deeply, |
|
for knowing what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and more polite to |
|
me than the elder; but I saw this. I also saw that I was an incumbrance |
|
in the mind of the elder, too. |
|
|
|
“My patient died, two hours before midnight--at a time, by my watch, |
|
answering almost to the minute when I had first seen her. I was alone |
|
with her, when her forlorn young head drooped gently on one side, and |
|
all her earthly wrongs and sorrows ended. |
|
|
|
“The brothers were waiting in a room down-stairs, impatient to ride |
|
away. I had heard them, alone at the bedside, striking their boots with |
|
their riding-whips, and loitering up and down. |
|
|
|
“‘At last she is dead?’ said the elder, when I went in. |
|
|
|
“‘She is dead,’ said I. |
|
|
|
“‘I congratulate you, my brother,’ were his words as he turned round. |
|
|
|
“He had before offered me money, which I had postponed taking. He now |
|
gave me a rouleau of gold. I took it from his hand, but laid it on |
|
the table. I had considered the question, and had resolved to accept |
|
nothing. |
|
|
|
“‘Pray excuse me,’ said I. ‘Under the circumstances, no.’ |
|
|
|
“They exchanged looks, but bent their heads to me as I bent mine to |
|
them, and we parted without another word on either side. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“I am weary, weary, weary--worn down by misery. I cannot read what I |
|
have written with this gaunt hand. |
|
|
|
“Early in the morning, the rouleau of gold was left at my door in a |
|
little box, with my name on the outside. From the first, I had anxiously |
|
considered what I ought to do. I decided, that day, to write privately |
|
to the Minister, stating the nature of the two cases to which I had been |
|
summoned, and the place to which I had gone: in effect, stating all the |
|
circumstances. I knew what Court influence was, and what the immunities |
|
of the Nobles were, and I expected that the matter would never be |
|
heard of; but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the matter a |
|
profound secret, even from my wife; and this, too, I resolved to state |
|
in my letter. I had no apprehension whatever of my real danger; but |
|
I was conscious that there might be danger for others, if others were |
|
compromised by possessing the knowledge that I possessed. |
|
|
|
“I was much engaged that day, and could not complete my letter that |
|
night. I rose long before my usual time next morning to finish it. |
|
It was the last day of the year. The letter was lying before me just |
|
completed, when I was told that a lady waited, who wished to see me. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“I am growing more and more unequal to the task I have set myself. It is |
|
so cold, so dark, my senses are so benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so |
|
dreadful. |
|
|
|
“The lady was young, engaging, and handsome, but not marked for long |
|
life. She was in great agitation. She presented herself to me as the |
|
wife of the Marquis St. Evrémonde. I connected the title by which the |
|
boy had addressed the elder brother, with the initial letter embroidered |
|
on the scarf, and had no difficulty in arriving at the conclusion that I |
|
had seen that nobleman very lately. |
|
|
|
“My memory is still accurate, but I cannot write the words of our |
|
conversation. I suspect that I am watched more closely than I was, and I |
|
know not at what times I may be watched. She had in part suspected, and |
|
in part discovered, the main facts of the cruel story, of her husband’s |
|
share in it, and my being resorted to. She did not know that the girl |
|
was dead. Her hope had been, she said in great distress, to show her, |
|
in secret, a woman’s sympathy. Her hope had been to avert the wrath of |
|
Heaven from a House that had long been hateful to the suffering many. |
|
|
|
“She had reasons for believing that there was a young sister living, and |
|
her greatest desire was, to help that sister. I could tell her nothing |
|
but that there was such a sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her |
|
inducement to come to me, relying on my confidence, had been the hope |
|
that I could tell her the name and place of abode. Whereas, to this |
|
wretched hour I am ignorant of both. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
“These scraps of paper fail me. One was taken from me, with a warning, |
|
yesterday. I must finish my record to-day. |
|
|
|
“She was a good, compassionate lady, and not happy in her marriage. How |
|
could she be! The brother distrusted and disliked her, and his influence |
|
was all opposed to her; she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her |
|
husband too. When I handed her down to the door, there was a child, a |
|
pretty boy from two to three years old, in her carriage. |
|
|
|
“‘For his sake, Doctor,’ she said, pointing to him in tears, ‘I would do |
|
all I can to make what poor amends I can. He will never prosper in his |
|
inheritance otherwise. I have a presentiment that if no other innocent |
|
atonement is made for this, it will one day be required of him. What |
|
I have left to call my own--it is little beyond the worth of a few |
|
jewels--I will make it the first charge of his life to bestow, with the |
|
compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this injured family, if |
|
the sister can be discovered.’ |
|
|
|
“She kissed the boy, and said, caressing him, ‘It is for thine own dear |
|
sake. Thou wilt be faithful, little Charles?’ The child answered her |
|
bravely, ‘Yes!’ I kissed her hand, and she took him in her arms, and |
|
went away caressing him. I never saw her more. |
|
|
|
“As she had mentioned her husband’s name in the faith that I knew it, |
|
I added no mention of it to my letter. I sealed my letter, and, not |
|
trusting it out of my own hands, delivered it myself that day. |
|
|
|
“That night, the last night of the year, towards nine o’clock, a man in |
|
a black dress rang at my gate, demanded to see me, and softly followed |
|
my servant, Ernest Defarge, a youth, up-stairs. When my servant came |
|
into the room where I sat with my wife--O my wife, beloved of my heart! |
|
My fair young English wife!--we saw the man, who was supposed to be at |
|
the gate, standing silent behind him. |
|
|
|
“An urgent case in the Rue St. Honore, he said. It would not detain me, |
|
he had a coach in waiting. |
|
|
|
“It brought me here, it brought me to my grave. When I was clear of the |
|
house, a black muffler was drawn tightly over my mouth from behind, and |
|
my arms were pinioned. The two brothers crossed the road from a dark |
|
corner, and identified me with a single gesture. The Marquis took from |
|
his pocket the letter I had written, showed it me, burnt it in the light |
|
of a lantern that was held, and extinguished the ashes with his foot. |
|
Not a word was spoken. I was brought here, I was brought to my living |
|
grave. |
|
|
|
“If it had pleased _God_ to put it in the hard heart of either of the |
|
brothers, in all these frightful years, to grant me any tidings of |
|
my dearest wife--so much as to let me know by a word whether alive or |
|
dead--I might have thought that He had not quite abandoned them. But, |
|
now I believe that the mark of the red cross is fatal to them, and that |
|
they have no part in His mercies. And them and their descendants, to the |
|
last of their race, I, Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner, do this last |
|
night of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the times |
|
when all these things shall be answered for. I denounce them to Heaven |
|
and to earth.” |
|
|
|
A terrible sound arose when the reading of this document was done. A |
|
sound of craving and eagerness that had nothing articulate in it but |
|
blood. The narrative called up the most revengeful passions of the time, |
|
and there was not a head in the nation but must have dropped before it. |
|
|
|
Little need, in presence of that tribunal and that auditory, to show |
|
how the Defarges had not made the paper public, with the other captured |
|
Bastille memorials borne in procession, and had kept it, biding their |
|
time. Little need to show that this detested family name had long been |
|
anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was wrought into the fatal register. |
|
The man never trod ground whose virtues and services would have |
|
sustained him in that place that day, against such denunciation. |
|
|
|
And all the worse for the doomed man, that the denouncer was a |
|
well-known citizen, his own attached friend, the father of his wife. One |
|
of the frenzied aspirations of the populace was, for imitations of |
|
the questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for sacrifices and |
|
self-immolations on the people’s altar. Therefore when the President |
|
said (else had his own head quivered on his shoulders), that the good |
|
physician of the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic by |
|
rooting out an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and would doubtless feel |
|
a sacred glow and joy in making his daughter a widow and her child an |
|
orphan, there was wild excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of |
|
human sympathy. |
|
|
|
“Much influence around him, has that Doctor?” murmured Madame Defarge, |
|
smiling to The Vengeance. “Save him now, my Doctor, save him!” |
|
|
|
At every juryman’s vote, there was a roar. Another and another. Roar and |
|
roar. |
|
|
|
Unanimously voted. At heart and by descent an Aristocrat, an enemy |
|
of the Republic, a notorious oppressor of the People. Back to the |
|
Conciergerie, and Death within four-and-twenty hours! |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI. |
|
Dusk |
|
|
|
|
|
The wretched wife of the innocent man thus doomed to die, fell under |
|
the sentence, as if she had been mortally stricken. But, she uttered no |
|
sound; and so strong was the voice within her, representing that it was |
|
she of all the world who must uphold him in his misery and not augment |
|
it, that it quickly raised her, even from that shock. |
|
|
|
The Judges having to take part in a public demonstration out of doors, |
|
the Tribunal adjourned. The quick noise and movement of the court’s |
|
emptying itself by many passages had not ceased, when Lucie stood |
|
stretching out her arms towards her husband, with nothing in her face |
|
but love and consolation. |
|
|
|
“If I might touch him! If I might embrace him once! O, good citizens, if |
|
you would have so much compassion for us!” |
|
|
|
There was but a gaoler left, along with two of the four men who had |
|
taken him last night, and Barsad. The people had all poured out to the |
|
show in the streets. Barsad proposed to the rest, “Let her embrace |
|
him then; it is but a moment.” It was silently acquiesced in, and they |
|
passed her over the seats in the hall to a raised place, where he, by |
|
leaning over the dock, could fold her in his arms. |
|
|
|
“Farewell, dear darling of my soul. My parting blessing on my love. We |
|
shall meet again, where the weary are at rest!” |
|
|
|
They were her husband’s words, as he held her to his bosom. |
|
|
|
“I can bear it, dear Charles. I am supported from above: don’t suffer |
|
for me. A parting blessing for our child.” |
|
|
|
“I send it to her by you. I kiss her by you. I say farewell to her by |
|
you.” |
|
|
|
“My husband. No! A moment!” He was tearing himself apart from her. |
|
“We shall not be separated long. I feel that this will break my heart |
|
by-and-bye; but I will do my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God |
|
will raise up friends for her, as He did for me.” |
|
|
|
Her father had followed her, and would have fallen on his knees to both |
|
of them, but that Darnay put out a hand and seized him, crying: |
|
|
|
“No, no! What have you done, what have you done, that you should kneel |
|
to us! We know now, what a struggle you made of old. We know, now what |
|
you underwent when you suspected my descent, and when you knew it. We |
|
know now, the natural antipathy you strove against, and conquered, for |
|
her dear sake. We thank you with all our hearts, and all our love and |
|
duty. Heaven be with you!” |
|
|
|
Her father’s only answer was to draw his hands through his white hair, |
|
and wring them with a shriek of anguish. |
|
|
|
“It could not be otherwise,” said the prisoner. “All things have worked |
|
together as they have fallen out. It was the always-vain endeavour to |
|
discharge my poor mother’s trust that first brought my fatal presence |
|
near you. Good could never come of such evil, a happier end was not in |
|
nature to so unhappy a beginning. Be comforted, and forgive me. Heaven |
|
bless you!” |
|
|
|
As he was drawn away, his wife released him, and stood looking after him |
|
with her hands touching one another in the attitude of prayer, and |
|
with a radiant look upon her face, in which there was even a comforting |
|
smile. As he went out at the prisoners’ door, she turned, laid her head |
|
lovingly on her father’s breast, tried to speak to him, and fell at his |
|
feet. |
|
|
|
Then, issuing from the obscure corner from which he had never moved, |
|
Sydney Carton came and took her up. Only her father and Mr. Lorry were |
|
with her. His arm trembled as it raised her, and supported her head. |
|
Yet, there was an air about him that was not all of pity--that had a |
|
flush of pride in it. |
|
|
|
“Shall I take her to a coach? I shall never feel her weight.” |
|
|
|
He carried her lightly to the door, and laid her tenderly down in a |
|
coach. Her father and their old friend got into it, and he took his seat |
|
beside the driver. |
|
|
|
When they arrived at the gateway where he had paused in the dark not |
|
many hours before, to picture to himself on which of the rough stones of |
|
the street her feet had trodden, he lifted her again, and carried her up |
|
the staircase to their rooms. There, he laid her down on a couch, where |
|
her child and Miss Pross wept over her. |
|
|
|
“Don’t recall her to herself,” he said, softly, to the latter, “she is |
|
better so. Don’t revive her to consciousness, while she only faints.” |
|
|
|
“Oh, Carton, Carton, dear Carton!” cried little Lucie, springing up and |
|
throwing her arms passionately round him, in a burst of grief. “Now that |
|
you have come, I think you will do something to help mamma, something to |
|
save papa! O, look at her, dear Carton! Can you, of all the people who |
|
love her, bear to see her so?” |
|
|
|
He bent over the child, and laid her blooming cheek against his face. He |
|
put her gently from him, and looked at her unconscious mother. |
|
|
|
“Before I go,” he said, and paused--“I may kiss her?” |
|
|
|
It was remembered afterwards that when he bent down and touched her face |
|
with his lips, he murmured some words. The child, who was nearest to |
|
him, told them afterwards, and told her grandchildren when she was a |
|
handsome old lady, that she heard him say, “A life you love.” |
|
|
|
When he had gone out into the next room, he turned suddenly on Mr. Lorry |
|
and her father, who were following, and said to the latter: |
|
|
|
“You had great influence but yesterday, Doctor Manette; let it at least |
|
be tried. These judges, and all the men in power, are very friendly to |
|
you, and very recognisant of your services; are they not?” |
|
|
|
“Nothing connected with Charles was concealed from me. I had the |
|
strongest assurances that I should save him; and I did.” He returned the |
|
answer in great trouble, and very slowly. |
|
|
|
“Try them again. The hours between this and to-morrow afternoon are few |
|
and short, but try.” |
|
|
|
“I intend to try. I will not rest a moment.” |
|
|
|
“That’s well. I have known such energy as yours do great things before |
|
now--though never,” he added, with a smile and a sigh together, “such |
|
great things as this. But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse |
|
it, it is worth that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down if it |
|
were not.” |
|
|
|
“I will go,” said Doctor Manette, “to the Prosecutor and the President |
|
straight, and I will go to others whom it is better not to name. I will |
|
write too, and--But stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and no |
|
one will be accessible until dark.” |
|
|
|
“That’s true. Well! It is a forlorn hope at the best, and not much the |
|
forlorner for being delayed till dark. I should like to know how you |
|
speed; though, mind! I expect nothing! When are you likely to have seen |
|
these dread powers, Doctor Manette?” |
|
|
|
“Immediately after dark, I should hope. Within an hour or two from |
|
this.” |
|
|
|
“It will be dark soon after four. Let us stretch the hour or two. If I |
|
go to Mr. Lorry’s at nine, shall I hear what you have done, either from |
|
our friend or from yourself?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
“May you prosper!” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry followed Sydney to the outer door, and, touching him on the |
|
shoulder as he was going away, caused him to turn. |
|
|
|
“I have no hope,” said Mr. Lorry, in a low and sorrowful whisper. |
|
|
|
“Nor have I.” |
|
|
|
“If any one of these men, or all of these men, were disposed to spare |
|
him--which is a large supposition; for what is his life, or any man’s |
|
to them!--I doubt if they durst spare him after the demonstration in the |
|
court.” |
|
|
|
“And so do I. I heard the fall of the axe in that sound.” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry leaned his arm upon the door-post, and bowed his face upon it. |
|
|
|
“Don’t despond,” said Carton, very gently; “don’t grieve. I encouraged |
|
Doctor Manette in this idea, because I felt that it might one day be |
|
consolatory to her. Otherwise, she might think ‘his life was wantonly |
|
thrown away or wasted,’ and that might trouble her.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, yes, yes,” returned Mr. Lorry, drying his eyes, “you are right. |
|
But he will perish; there is no real hope.” |
|
|
|
“Yes. He will perish: there is no real hope,” echoed Carton. |
|
|
|
And walked with a settled step, down-stairs. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII. |
|
Darkness |
|
|
|
|
|
Sydney Carton paused in the street, not quite decided where to go. “At |
|
Tellson’s banking-house at nine,” he said, with a musing face. “Shall I |
|
do well, in the mean time, to show myself? I think so. It is best that |
|
these people should know there is such a man as I here; it is a sound |
|
precaution, and may be a necessary preparation. But care, care, care! |
|
Let me think it out!” |
|
|
|
Checking his steps which had begun to tend towards an object, he took a |
|
turn or two in the already darkening street, and traced the thought |
|
in his mind to its possible consequences. His first impression was |
|
confirmed. “It is best,” he said, finally resolved, “that these people |
|
should know there is such a man as I here.” And he turned his face |
|
towards Saint Antoine. |
|
|
|
Defarge had described himself, that day, as the keeper of a wine-shop in |
|
the Saint Antoine suburb. It was not difficult for one who knew the city |
|
well, to find his house without asking any question. Having ascertained |
|
its situation, Carton came out of those closer streets again, and dined |
|
at a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep after dinner. For the |
|
first time in many years, he had no strong drink. Since last night he |
|
had taken nothing but a little light thin wine, and last night he had |
|
dropped the brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry’s hearth like a man who had |
|
done with it. |
|
|
|
It was as late as seven o’clock when he awoke refreshed, and went out |
|
into the streets again. As he passed along towards Saint Antoine, he |
|
stopped at a shop-window where there was a mirror, and slightly altered |
|
the disordered arrangement of his loose cravat, and his coat-collar, and |
|
his wild hair. This done, he went on direct to Defarge’s, and went in. |
|
|
|
There happened to be no customer in the shop but Jacques Three, of the |
|
restless fingers and the croaking voice. This man, whom he had seen upon |
|
the Jury, stood drinking at the little counter, in conversation with the |
|
Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance assisted in the conversation, like |
|
a regular member of the establishment. |
|
|
|
As Carton walked in, took his seat and asked (in very indifferent |
|
French) for a small measure of wine, Madame Defarge cast a careless |
|
glance at him, and then a keener, and then a keener, and then advanced |
|
to him herself, and asked him what it was he had ordered. |
|
|
|
He repeated what he had already said. |
|
|
|
“English?” asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively raising her dark |
|
eyebrows. |
|
|
|
After looking at her, as if the sound of even a single French word were |
|
slow to express itself to him, he answered, in his former strong foreign |
|
accent. “Yes, madame, yes. I am English!” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge returned to her counter to get the wine, and, as he |
|
took up a Jacobin journal and feigned to pore over it puzzling out its |
|
meaning, he heard her say, “I swear to you, like Evrémonde!” |
|
|
|
Defarge brought him the wine, and gave him Good Evening. |
|
|
|
“How?” |
|
|
|
“Good evening.” |
|
|
|
“Oh! Good evening, citizen,” filling his glass. “Ah! and good wine. I |
|
drink to the Republic.” |
|
|
|
Defarge went back to the counter, and said, “Certainly, a little like.” |
|
Madame sternly retorted, “I tell you a good deal like.” Jacques Three |
|
pacifically remarked, “He is so much in your mind, see you, madame.” |
|
The amiable Vengeance added, with a laugh, “Yes, my faith! And you |
|
are looking forward with so much pleasure to seeing him once more |
|
to-morrow!” |
|
|
|
Carton followed the lines and words of his paper, with a slow |
|
forefinger, and with a studious and absorbed face. They were all leaning |
|
their arms on the counter close together, speaking low. After a silence |
|
of a few moments, during which they all looked towards him without |
|
disturbing his outward attention from the Jacobin editor, they resumed |
|
their conversation. |
|
|
|
“It is true what madame says,” observed Jacques Three. “Why stop? There |
|
is great force in that. Why stop?” |
|
|
|
“Well, well,” reasoned Defarge, “but one must stop somewhere. After all, |
|
the question is still where?” |
|
|
|
“At extermination,” said madame. |
|
|
|
“Magnificent!” croaked Jacques Three. The Vengeance, also, highly |
|
approved. |
|
|
|
“Extermination is good doctrine, my wife,” said Defarge, rather |
|
troubled; “in general, I say nothing against it. But this Doctor has |
|
suffered much; you have seen him to-day; you have observed his face when |
|
the paper was read.” |
|
|
|
“I have observed his face!” repeated madame, contemptuously and angrily. |
|
“Yes. I have observed his face. I have observed his face to be not the |
|
face of a true friend of the Republic. Let him take care of his face!” |
|
|
|
“And you have observed, my wife,” said Defarge, in a deprecatory manner, |
|
“the anguish of his daughter, which must be a dreadful anguish to him!” |
|
|
|
“I have observed his daughter,” repeated madame; “yes, I have observed |
|
his daughter, more times than one. I have observed her to-day, and I |
|
have observed her other days. I have observed her in the court, and |
|
I have observed her in the street by the prison. Let me but lift my |
|
finger--!” She seemed to raise it (the listener’s eyes were always on |
|
his paper), and to let it fall with a rattle on the ledge before her, as |
|
if the axe had dropped. |
|
|
|
“The citizeness is superb!” croaked the Juryman. |
|
|
|
“She is an Angel!” said The Vengeance, and embraced her. |
|
|
|
“As to thee,” pursued madame, implacably, addressing her husband, “if it |
|
depended on thee--which, happily, it does not--thou wouldst rescue this |
|
man even now.” |
|
|
|
“No!” protested Defarge. “Not if to lift this glass would do it! But I |
|
would leave the matter there. I say, stop there.” |
|
|
|
“See you then, Jacques,” said Madame Defarge, wrathfully; “and see you, |
|
too, my little Vengeance; see you both! Listen! For other crimes as |
|
tyrants and oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register, |
|
doomed to destruction and extermination. Ask my husband, is that so.” |
|
|
|
“It is so,” assented Defarge, without being asked. |
|
|
|
“In the beginning of the great days, when the Bastille falls, he finds |
|
this paper of to-day, and he brings it home, and in the middle of the |
|
night when this place is clear and shut, we read it, here on this spot, |
|
by the light of this lamp. Ask him, is that so.” |
|
|
|
“It is so,” assented Defarge. |
|
|
|
“That night, I tell him, when the paper is read through, and the lamp is |
|
burnt out, and the day is gleaming in above those shutters and between |
|
those iron bars, that I have now a secret to communicate. Ask him, is |
|
that so.” |
|
|
|
“It is so,” assented Defarge again. |
|
|
|
“I communicate to him that secret. I smite this bosom with these two |
|
hands as I smite it now, and I tell him, ‘Defarge, I was brought up |
|
among the fishermen of the sea-shore, and that peasant family so injured |
|
by the two Evrémonde brothers, as that Bastille paper describes, is my |
|
family. Defarge, that sister of the mortally wounded boy upon the ground |
|
was my sister, that husband was my sister’s husband, that unborn child |
|
was their child, that brother was my brother, that father was my father, |
|
those dead are my dead, and that summons to answer for those things |
|
descends to me!’ Ask him, is that so.” |
|
|
|
“It is so,” assented Defarge once more. |
|
|
|
“Then tell Wind and Fire where to stop,” returned madame; “but don’t |
|
tell me.” |
|
|
|
Both her hearers derived a horrible enjoyment from the deadly nature |
|
of her wrath--the listener could feel how white she was, without seeing |
|
her--and both highly commended it. Defarge, a weak minority, interposed |
|
a few words for the memory of the compassionate wife of the Marquis; but |
|
only elicited from his own wife a repetition of her last reply. “Tell |
|
the Wind and the Fire where to stop; not me!” |
|
|
|
Customers entered, and the group was broken up. The English customer |
|
paid for what he had had, perplexedly counted his change, and asked, as |
|
a stranger, to be directed towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge |
|
took him to the door, and put her arm on his, in pointing out the road. |
|
The English customer was not without his reflections then, that it might |
|
be a good deed to seize that arm, lift it, and strike under it sharp and |
|
deep. |
|
|
|
But, he went his way, and was soon swallowed up in the shadow of the |
|
prison wall. At the appointed hour, he emerged from it to present |
|
himself in Mr. Lorry’s room again, where he found the old gentleman |
|
walking to and fro in restless anxiety. He said he had been with Lucie |
|
until just now, and had only left her for a few minutes, to come and |
|
keep his appointment. Her father had not been seen, since he quitted the |
|
banking-house towards four o’clock. She had some faint hopes that his |
|
mediation might save Charles, but they were very slight. He had been |
|
more than five hours gone: where could he be? |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry waited until ten; but, Doctor Manette not returning, and |
|
he being unwilling to leave Lucie any longer, it was arranged that he |
|
should go back to her, and come to the banking-house again at midnight. |
|
In the meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by the fire for the Doctor. |
|
|
|
He waited and waited, and the clock struck twelve; but Doctor Manette |
|
did not come back. Mr. Lorry returned, and found no tidings of him, and |
|
brought none. Where could he be? |
|
|
|
They were discussing this question, and were almost building up some |
|
weak structure of hope on his prolonged absence, when they heard him on |
|
the stairs. The instant he entered the room, it was plain that all was |
|
lost. |
|
|
|
Whether he had really been to any one, or whether he had been all that |
|
time traversing the streets, was never known. As he stood staring at |
|
them, they asked him no question, for his face told them everything. |
|
|
|
“I cannot find it,” said he, “and I must have it. Where is it?” |
|
|
|
His head and throat were bare, and, as he spoke with a helpless look |
|
straying all around, he took his coat off, and let it drop on the floor. |
|
|
|
“Where is my bench? I have been looking everywhere for my bench, and I |
|
can’t find it. What have they done with my work? Time presses: I must |
|
finish those shoes.” |
|
|
|
They looked at one another, and their hearts died within them. |
|
|
|
“Come, come!” said he, in a whimpering miserable way; “let me get to |
|
work. Give me my work.” |
|
|
|
Receiving no answer, he tore his hair, and beat his feet upon the |
|
ground, like a distracted child. |
|
|
|
“Don’t torture a poor forlorn wretch,” he implored them, with a dreadful |
|
cry; “but give me my work! What is to become of us, if those shoes are |
|
not done to-night?” |
|
|
|
Lost, utterly lost! |
|
|
|
It was so clearly beyond hope to reason with him, or try to restore him, |
|
that--as if by agreement--they each put a hand upon his shoulder, and |
|
soothed him to sit down before the fire, with a promise that he should |
|
have his work presently. He sank into the chair, and brooded over the |
|
embers, and shed tears. As if all that had happened since the garret |
|
time were a momentary fancy, or a dream, Mr. Lorry saw him shrink into |
|
the exact figure that Defarge had had in keeping. |
|
|
|
Affected, and impressed with terror as they both were, by this spectacle |
|
of ruin, it was not a time to yield to such emotions. His lonely |
|
daughter, bereft of her final hope and reliance, appealed to them both |
|
too strongly. Again, as if by agreement, they looked at one another with |
|
one meaning in their faces. Carton was the first to speak: |
|
|
|
“The last chance is gone: it was not much. Yes; he had better be taken |
|
to her. But, before you go, will you, for a moment, steadily attend to |
|
me? Don’t ask me why I make the stipulations I am going to make, and |
|
exact the promise I am going to exact; I have a reason--a good one.” |
|
|
|
“I do not doubt it,” answered Mr. Lorry. “Say on.” |
|
|
|
The figure in the chair between them, was all the time monotonously |
|
rocking itself to and fro, and moaning. They spoke in such a tone as |
|
they would have used if they had been watching by a sick-bed in the |
|
night. |
|
|
|
Carton stooped to pick up the coat, which lay almost entangling his |
|
feet. As he did so, a small case in which the Doctor was accustomed to |
|
carry the lists of his day’s duties, fell lightly on the floor. Carton |
|
took it up, and there was a folded paper in it. “We should look |
|
at this!” he said. Mr. Lorry nodded his consent. He opened it, and |
|
exclaimed, “Thank _God!_” |
|
|
|
“What is it?” asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly. |
|
|
|
“A moment! Let me speak of it in its place. First,” he put his hand in |
|
his coat, and took another paper from it, “that is the certificate which |
|
enables me to pass out of this city. Look at it. You see--Sydney Carton, |
|
an Englishman?” |
|
|
|
Mr. Lorry held it open in his hand, gazing in his earnest face. |
|
|
|
“Keep it for me until to-morrow. I shall see him to-morrow, you |
|
remember, and I had better not take it into the prison.” |
|
|
|
“Why not?” |
|
|
|
“I don’t know; I prefer not to do so. Now, take this paper that Doctor |
|
Manette has carried about him. It is a similar certificate, enabling him |
|
and his daughter and her child, at any time, to pass the barrier and the |
|
frontier! You see?” |
|
|
|
“Yes!” |
|
|
|
“Perhaps he obtained it as his last and utmost precaution against evil, |
|
yesterday. When is it dated? But no matter; don’t stay to look; put it |
|
up carefully with mine and your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until |
|
within this hour or two, that he had, or could have such a paper. It is |
|
good, until recalled. But it may be soon recalled, and, I have reason to |
|
think, will be.” |
|
|
|
“They are not in danger?” |
|
|
|
“They are in great danger. They are in danger of denunciation by Madame |
|
Defarge. I know it from her own lips. I have overheard words of that |
|
woman’s, to-night, which have presented their danger to me in strong |
|
colours. I have lost no time, and since then, I have seen the spy. He |
|
confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer, living by the prison wall, |
|
is under the control of the Defarges, and has been rehearsed by |
|
Madame Defarge as to his having seen Her”--he never mentioned Lucie’s |
|
name--“making signs and signals to prisoners. It is easy to foresee that |
|
the pretence will be the common one, a prison plot, and that it will |
|
involve her life--and perhaps her child’s--and perhaps her father’s--for |
|
both have been seen with her at that place. Don’t look so horrified. You |
|
will save them all.” |
|
|
|
“Heaven grant I may, Carton! But how?” |
|
|
|
“I am going to tell you how. It will depend on you, and it could depend |
|
on no better man. This new denunciation will certainly not take place |
|
until after to-morrow; probably not until two or three days afterwards; |
|
more probably a week afterwards. You know it is a capital crime, to |
|
mourn for, or sympathise with, a victim of the Guillotine. She and her |
|
father would unquestionably be guilty of this crime, and this woman (the |
|
inveteracy of whose pursuit cannot be described) would wait to add that |
|
strength to her case, and make herself doubly sure. You follow me?” |
|
|
|
“So attentively, and with so much confidence in what you say, that for |
|
the moment I lose sight,” touching the back of the Doctor’s chair, “even |
|
of this distress.” |
|
|
|
“You have money, and can buy the means of travelling to the seacoast |
|
as quickly as the journey can be made. Your preparations have been |
|
completed for some days, to return to England. Early to-morrow have your |
|
horses ready, so that they may be in starting trim at two o’clock in the |
|
afternoon.” |
|
|
|
“It shall be done!” |
|
|
|
His manner was so fervent and inspiring, that Mr. Lorry caught the |
|
flame, and was as quick as youth. |
|
|
|
“You are a noble heart. Did I say we could depend upon no better man? |
|
Tell her, to-night, what you know of her danger as involving her child |
|
and her father. Dwell upon that, for she would lay her own fair head |
|
beside her husband’s cheerfully.” He faltered for an instant; then went |
|
on as before. “For the sake of her child and her father, press upon her |
|
the necessity of leaving Paris, with them and you, at that hour. Tell |
|
her that it was her husband’s last arrangement. Tell her that more |
|
depends upon it than she dare believe, or hope. You think that her |
|
father, even in this sad state, will submit himself to her; do you not?” |
|
|
|
“I am sure of it.” |
|
|
|
“I thought so. Quietly and steadily have all these arrangements made in |
|
the courtyard here, even to the taking of your own seat in the carriage. |
|
The moment I come to you, take me in, and drive away.” |
|
|
|
“I understand that I wait for you under all circumstances?” |
|
|
|
“You have my certificate in your hand with the rest, you know, and will |
|
reserve my place. Wait for nothing but to have my place occupied, and |
|
then for England!” |
|
|
|
“Why, then,” said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but so firm and steady |
|
hand, “it does not all depend on one old man, but I shall have a young |
|
and ardent man at my side.” |
|
|
|
“By the help of Heaven you shall! Promise me solemnly that nothing will |
|
influence you to alter the course on which we now stand pledged to one |
|
another.” |
|
|
|
“Nothing, Carton.” |
|
|
|
“Remember these words to-morrow: change the course, or delay in it--for |
|
any reason--and no life can possibly be saved, and many lives must |
|
inevitably be sacrificed.” |
|
|
|
“I will remember them. I hope to do my part faithfully.” |
|
|
|
“And I hope to do mine. Now, good bye!” |
|
|
|
Though he said it with a grave smile of earnestness, and though he even |
|
put the old man’s hand to his lips, he did not part from him then. He |
|
helped him so far to arouse the rocking figure before the dying embers, |
|
as to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to tempt it forth to find |
|
where the bench and work were hidden that it still moaningly besought |
|
to have. He walked on the other side of it and protected it to the |
|
courtyard of the house where the afflicted heart--so happy in |
|
the memorable time when he had revealed his own desolate heart to |
|
it--outwatched the awful night. He entered the courtyard and remained |
|
there for a few moments alone, looking up at the light in the window of |
|
her room. Before he went away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a |
|
Farewell. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII. |
|
Fifty-two |
|
|
|
|
|
In the black prison of the Conciergerie, the doomed of the day awaited |
|
their fate. They were in number as the weeks of the year. Fifty-two were |
|
to roll that afternoon on the life-tide of the city to the boundless |
|
everlasting sea. Before their cells were quit of them, new occupants |
|
were appointed; before their blood ran into the blood spilled yesterday, |
|
the blood that was to mingle with theirs to-morrow was already set |
|
apart. |
|
|
|
Two score and twelve were told off. From the farmer-general of seventy, |
|
whose riches could not buy his life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose |
|
poverty and obscurity could not save her. Physical diseases, engendered |
|
in the vices and neglects of men, will seize on victims of all degrees; |
|
and the frightful moral disorder, born of unspeakable suffering, |
|
intolerable oppression, and heartless indifference, smote equally |
|
without distinction. |
|
|
|
Charles Darnay, alone in a cell, had sustained himself with no |
|
flattering delusion since he came to it from the Tribunal. In every line |
|
of the narrative he had heard, he had heard his condemnation. He had |
|
fully comprehended that no personal influence could possibly save him, |
|
that he was virtually sentenced by the millions, and that units could |
|
avail him nothing. |
|
|
|
Nevertheless, it was not easy, with the face of his beloved wife fresh |
|
before him, to compose his mind to what it must bear. His hold on life |
|
was strong, and it was very, very hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts |
|
and degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched the tighter there; and |
|
when he brought his strength to bear on that hand and it yielded, |
|
this was closed again. There was a hurry, too, in all his thoughts, |
|
a turbulent and heated working of his heart, that contended against |
|
resignation. If, for a moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and |
|
child who had to live after him, seemed to protest and to make it a |
|
selfish thing. |
|
|
|
But, all this was at first. Before long, the consideration that there |
|
was no disgrace in the fate he must meet, and that numbers went the same |
|
road wrongfully, and trod it firmly every day, sprang up to stimulate |
|
him. Next followed the thought that much of the future peace of mind |
|
enjoyable by the dear ones, depended on his quiet fortitude. So, |
|
by degrees he calmed into the better state, when he could raise his |
|
thoughts much higher, and draw comfort down. |
|
|
|
Before it had set in dark on the night of his condemnation, he had |
|
travelled thus far on his last way. Being allowed to purchase the means |
|
of writing, and a light, he sat down to write until such time as the |
|
prison lamps should be extinguished. |
|
|
|
He wrote a long letter to Lucie, showing her that he had known nothing |
|
of her father’s imprisonment, until he had heard of it from herself, |
|
and that he had been as ignorant as she of his father’s and uncle’s |
|
responsibility for that misery, until the paper had been read. He had |
|
already explained to her that his concealment from herself of the name |
|
he had relinquished, was the one condition--fully intelligible now--that |
|
her father had attached to their betrothal, and was the one promise he |
|
had still exacted on the morning of their marriage. He entreated her, |
|
for her father’s sake, never to seek to know whether her father had |
|
become oblivious of the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled |
|
to him (for the moment, or for good), by the story of the Tower, on |
|
that old Sunday under the dear old plane-tree in the garden. If he had |
|
preserved any definite remembrance of it, there could be no doubt that |
|
he had supposed it destroyed with the Bastille, when he had found no |
|
mention of it among the relics of prisoners which the populace had |
|
discovered there, and which had been described to all the world. He |
|
besought her--though he added that he knew it was needless--to console |
|
her father, by impressing him through every tender means she could think |
|
of, with the truth that he had done nothing for which he could justly |
|
reproach himself, but had uniformly forgotten himself for their joint |
|
sakes. Next to her preservation of his own last grateful love and |
|
blessing, and her overcoming of her sorrow, to devote herself to their |
|
dear child, he adjured her, as they would meet in Heaven, to comfort her |
|
father. |
|
|
|
To her father himself, he wrote in the same strain; but, he told her |
|
father that he expressly confided his wife and child to his care. And |
|
he told him this, very strongly, with the hope of rousing him from any |
|
despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which he foresaw he might be |
|
tending. |
|
|
|
To Mr. Lorry, he commended them all, and explained his worldly affairs. |
|
That done, with many added sentences of grateful friendship and warm |
|
attachment, all was done. He never thought of Carton. His mind was so |
|
full of the others, that he never once thought of him. |
|
|
|
He had time to finish these letters before the lights were put out. When |
|
he lay down on his straw bed, he thought he had done with this world. |
|
|
|
But, it beckoned him back in his sleep, and showed itself in shining |
|
forms. Free and happy, back in the old house in Soho (though it had |
|
nothing in it like the real house), unaccountably released and light of |
|
heart, he was with Lucie again, and she told him it was all a dream, and |
|
he had never gone away. A pause of forgetfulness, and then he had even |
|
suffered, and had come back to her, dead and at peace, and yet there |
|
was no difference in him. Another pause of oblivion, and he awoke in the |
|
sombre morning, unconscious where he was or what had happened, until it |
|
flashed upon his mind, “this is the day of my death!” |
|
|
|
Thus, had he come through the hours, to the day when the fifty-two heads |
|
were to fall. And now, while he was composed, and hoped that he could |
|
meet the end with quiet heroism, a new action began in his waking |
|
thoughts, which was very difficult to master. |
|
|
|
He had never seen the instrument that was to terminate his life. How |
|
high it was from the ground, how many steps it had, where he would be |
|
stood, how he would be touched, whether the touching hands would be dyed |
|
red, which way his face would be turned, whether he would be the first, |
|
or might be the last: these and many similar questions, in nowise |
|
directed by his will, obtruded themselves over and over again, countless |
|
times. Neither were they connected with fear: he was conscious of no |
|
fear. Rather, they originated in a strange besetting desire to know what |
|
to do when the time came; a desire gigantically disproportionate to the |
|
few swift moments to which it referred; a wondering that was more like |
|
the wondering of some other spirit within his, than his own. |
|
|
|
The hours went on as he walked to and fro, and the clocks struck the |
|
numbers he would never hear again. Nine gone for ever, ten gone for |
|
ever, eleven gone for ever, twelve coming on to pass away. After a hard |
|
contest with that eccentric action of thought which had last perplexed |
|
him, he had got the better of it. He walked up and down, softly |
|
repeating their names to himself. The worst of the strife was over. |
|
He could walk up and down, free from distracting fancies, praying for |
|
himself and for them. |
|
|
|
Twelve gone for ever. |
|
|
|
He had been apprised that the final hour was Three, and he knew he would |
|
be summoned some time earlier, inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily |
|
and slowly through the streets. Therefore, he resolved to keep Two |
|
before his mind, as the hour, and so to strengthen himself in the |
|
interval that he might be able, after that time, to strengthen others. |
|
|
|
Walking regularly to and fro with his arms folded on his breast, a very |
|
different man from the prisoner, who had walked to and fro at La Force, |
|
he heard One struck away from him, without surprise. The hour had |
|
measured like most other hours. Devoutly thankful to Heaven for his |
|
recovered self-possession, he thought, “There is but another now,” and |
|
turned to walk again. |
|
|
|
Footsteps in the stone passage outside the door. He stopped. |
|
|
|
The key was put in the lock, and turned. Before the door was opened, or |
|
as it opened, a man said in a low voice, in English: “He has never seen |
|
me here; I have kept out of his way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose |
|
no time!” |
|
|
|
The door was quickly opened and closed, and there stood before him |
|
face to face, quiet, intent upon him, with the light of a smile on his |
|
features, and a cautionary finger on his lip, Sydney Carton. |
|
|
|
There was something so bright and remarkable in his look, that, for the |
|
first moment, the prisoner misdoubted him to be an apparition of his own |
|
imagining. But, he spoke, and it was his voice; he took the prisoner’s |
|
hand, and it was his real grasp. |
|
|
|
“Of all the people upon earth, you least expected to see me?” he said. |
|
|
|
“I could not believe it to be you. I can scarcely believe it now. You |
|
are not”--the apprehension came suddenly into his mind--“a prisoner?” |
|
|
|
“No. I am accidentally possessed of a power over one of the keepers |
|
here, and in virtue of it I stand before you. I come from her--your |
|
wife, dear Darnay.” |
|
|
|
The prisoner wrung his hand. |
|
|
|
“I bring you a request from her.” |
|
|
|
“What is it?” |
|
|
|
“A most earnest, pressing, and emphatic entreaty, addressed to you |
|
in the most pathetic tones of the voice so dear to you, that you well |
|
remember.” |
|
|
|
The prisoner turned his face partly aside. |
|
|
|
“You have no time to ask me why I bring it, or what it means; I have |
|
no time to tell you. You must comply with it--take off those boots you |
|
wear, and draw on these of mine.” |
|
|
|
There was a chair against the wall of the cell, behind the prisoner. |
|
Carton, pressing forward, had already, with the speed of lightning, got |
|
him down into it, and stood over him, barefoot. |
|
|
|
“Draw on these boots of mine. Put your hands to them; put your will to |
|
them. Quick!” |
|
|
|
“Carton, there is no escaping from this place; it never can be done. You |
|
will only die with me. It is madness.” |
|
|
|
“It would be madness if I asked you to escape; but do I? When I ask you |
|
to pass out at that door, tell me it is madness and remain here. Change |
|
that cravat for this of mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do |
|
it, let me take this ribbon from your hair, and shake out your hair like |
|
this of mine!” |
|
|
|
With wonderful quickness, and with a strength both of will and action, |
|
that appeared quite supernatural, he forced all these changes upon him. |
|
The prisoner was like a young child in his hands. |
|
|
|
“Carton! Dear Carton! It is madness. It cannot be accomplished, it never |
|
can be done, it has been attempted, and has always failed. I implore you |
|
not to add your death to the bitterness of mine.” |
|
|
|
“Do I ask you, my dear Darnay, to pass the door? When I ask that, |
|
refuse. There are pen and ink and paper on this table. Is your hand |
|
steady enough to write?” |
|
|
|
“It was when you came in.” |
|
|
|
“Steady it again, and write what I shall dictate. Quick, friend, quick!” |
|
|
|
Pressing his hand to his bewildered head, Darnay sat down at the table. |
|
Carton, with his right hand in his breast, stood close beside him. |
|
|
|
“Write exactly as I speak.” |
|
|
|
“To whom do I address it?” |
|
|
|
“To no one.” Carton still had his hand in his breast. |
|
|
|
“Do I date it?” |
|
|
|
“No.” |
|
|
|
The prisoner looked up, at each question. Carton, standing over him with |
|
his hand in his breast, looked down. |
|
|
|
“‘If you remember,’” said Carton, dictating, “‘the words that passed |
|
between us, long ago, you will readily comprehend this when you see it. |
|
You do remember them, I know. It is not in your nature to forget them.’” |
|
|
|
He was drawing his hand from his breast; the prisoner chancing to look |
|
up in his hurried wonder as he wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon |
|
something. |
|
|
|
“Have you written ‘forget them’?” Carton asked. |
|
|
|
“I have. Is that a weapon in your hand?” |
|
|
|
“No; I am not armed.” |
|
|
|
“What is it in your hand?” |
|
|
|
“You shall know directly. Write on; there are but a few words more.” He |
|
dictated again. “‘I am thankful that the time has come, when I can prove |
|
them. That I do so is no subject for regret or grief.’” As he said these |
|
words with his eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and softly |
|
moved down close to the writer’s face. |
|
|
|
The pen dropped from Darnay’s fingers on the table, and he looked about |
|
him vacantly. |
|
|
|
“What vapour is that?” he asked. |
|
|
|
“Vapour?” |
|
|
|
“Something that crossed me?” |
|
|
|
“I am conscious of nothing; there can be nothing here. Take up the pen |
|
and finish. Hurry, hurry!” |
|
|
|
As if his memory were impaired, or his faculties disordered, the |
|
prisoner made an effort to rally his attention. As he looked at Carton |
|
with clouded eyes and with an altered manner of breathing, Carton--his |
|
hand again in his breast--looked steadily at him. |
|
|
|
“Hurry, hurry!” |
|
|
|
The prisoner bent over the paper, once more. |
|
|
|
“‘If it had been otherwise;’” Carton’s hand was again watchfully and |
|
softly stealing down; “‘I never should have used the longer opportunity. |
|
If it had been otherwise;’” the hand was at the prisoner’s face; “‘I |
|
should but have had so much the more to answer for. If it had been |
|
otherwise--’” Carton looked at the pen and saw it was trailing off into |
|
unintelligible signs. |
|
|
|
Carton’s hand moved back to his breast no more. The prisoner sprang up |
|
with a reproachful look, but Carton’s hand was close and firm at his |
|
nostrils, and Carton’s left arm caught him round the waist. For a few |
|
seconds he faintly struggled with the man who had come to lay down his |
|
life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was stretched insensible on |
|
the ground. |
|
|
|
Quickly, but with hands as true to the purpose as his heart was, Carton |
|
dressed himself in the clothes the prisoner had laid aside, combed back |
|
his hair, and tied it with the ribbon the prisoner had worn. Then, he |
|
softly called, “Enter there! Come in!” and the Spy presented himself. |
|
|
|
“You see?” said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled on one knee beside the |
|
insensible figure, putting the paper in the breast: “is your hazard very |
|
great?” |
|
|
|
“Mr. Carton,” the Spy answered, with a timid snap of his fingers, “my |
|
hazard is not _that_, in the thick of business here, if you are true to |
|
the whole of your bargain.” |
|
|
|
“Don’t fear me. I will be true to the death.” |
|
|
|
“You must be, Mr. Carton, if the tale of fifty-two is to be right. Being |
|
made right by you in that dress, I shall have no fear.” |
|
|
|
“Have no fear! I shall soon be out of the way of harming you, and the |
|
rest will soon be far from here, please God! Now, get assistance and |
|
take me to the coach.” |
|
|
|
“You?” said the Spy nervously. |
|
|
|
“Him, man, with whom I have exchanged. You go out at the gate by which |
|
you brought me in?” |
|
|
|
“Of course.” |
|
|
|
“I was weak and faint when you brought me in, and I am fainter now you |
|
take me out. The parting interview has overpowered me. Such a thing has |
|
happened here, often, and too often. Your life is in your own hands. |
|
Quick! Call assistance!” |
|
|
|
“You swear not to betray me?” said the trembling Spy, as he paused for a |
|
last moment. |
|
|
|
“Man, man!” returned Carton, stamping his foot; “have I sworn by no |
|
solemn vow already, to go through with this, that you waste the precious |
|
moments now? Take him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place |
|
him yourself in the carriage, show him yourself to Mr. Lorry, tell him |
|
yourself to give him no restorative but air, and to remember my words of |
|
last night, and his promise of last night, and drive away!” |
|
|
|
The Spy withdrew, and Carton seated himself at the table, resting his |
|
forehead on his hands. The Spy returned immediately, with two men. |
|
|
|
“How, then?” said one of them, contemplating the fallen figure. “So |
|
afflicted to find that his friend has drawn a prize in the lottery of |
|
Sainte Guillotine?” |
|
|
|
“A good patriot,” said the other, “could hardly have been more afflicted |
|
if the Aristocrat had drawn a blank.” |
|
|
|
They raised the unconscious figure, placed it on a litter they had |
|
brought to the door, and bent to carry it away. |
|
|
|
“The time is short, Evrémonde,” said the Spy, in a warning voice. |
|
|
|
“I know it well,” answered Carton. “Be careful of my friend, I entreat |
|
you, and leave me.” |
|
|
|
“Come, then, my children,” said Barsad. “Lift him, and come away!” |
|
|
|
The door closed, and Carton was left alone. Straining his powers of |
|
listening to the utmost, he listened for any sound that might denote |
|
suspicion or alarm. There was none. Keys turned, doors clashed, |
|
footsteps passed along distant passages: no cry was raised, or hurry |
|
made, that seemed unusual. Breathing more freely in a little while, he |
|
sat down at the table, and listened again until the clock struck Two. |
|
|
|
Sounds that he was not afraid of, for he divined their meaning, then |
|
began to be audible. Several doors were opened in succession, and |
|
finally his own. A gaoler, with a list in his hand, looked in, merely |
|
saying, “Follow me, Evrémonde!” and he followed into a large dark room, |
|
at a distance. It was a dark winter day, and what with the shadows |
|
within, and what with the shadows without, he could but dimly discern |
|
the others who were brought there to have their arms bound. Some were |
|
standing; some seated. Some were lamenting, and in restless motion; |
|
but, these were few. The great majority were silent and still, looking |
|
fixedly at the ground. |
|
|
|
As he stood by the wall in a dim corner, while some of the fifty-two |
|
were brought in after him, one man stopped in passing, to embrace him, |
|
as having a knowledge of him. It thrilled him with a great dread of |
|
discovery; but the man went on. A very few moments after that, a young |
|
woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare face in which there was |
|
no vestige of colour, and large widely opened patient eyes, rose from |
|
the seat where he had observed her sitting, and came to speak to him. |
|
|
|
“Citizen Evrémonde,” she said, touching him with her cold hand. “I am a |
|
poor little seamstress, who was with you in La Force.” |
|
|
|
He murmured for answer: “True. I forget what you were accused of?” |
|
|
|
“Plots. Though the just Heaven knows that I am innocent of any. Is it |
|
likely? Who would think of plotting with a poor little weak creature |
|
like me?” |
|
|
|
The forlorn smile with which she said it, so touched him, that tears |
|
started from his eyes. |
|
|
|
“I am not afraid to die, Citizen Evrémonde, but I have done nothing. I |
|
am not unwilling to die, if the Republic which is to do so much good |
|
to us poor, will profit by my death; but I do not know how that can be, |
|
Citizen Evrémonde. Such a poor weak little creature!” |
|
|
|
As the last thing on earth that his heart was to warm and soften to, it |
|
warmed and softened to this pitiable girl. |
|
|
|
“I heard you were released, Citizen Evrémonde. I hoped it was true?” |
|
|
|
“It was. But, I was again taken and condemned.” |
|
|
|
“If I may ride with you, Citizen Evrémonde, will you let me hold your |
|
hand? I am not afraid, but I am little and weak, and it will give me |
|
more courage.” |
|
|
|
As the patient eyes were lifted to his face, he saw a sudden doubt in |
|
them, and then astonishment. He pressed the work-worn, hunger-worn young |
|
fingers, and touched his lips. |
|
|
|
“Are you dying for him?” she whispered. |
|
|
|
“And his wife and child. Hush! Yes.” |
|
|
|
“O you will let me hold your brave hand, stranger?” |
|
|
|
“Hush! Yes, my poor sister; to the last.” |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
The same shadows that are falling on the prison, are falling, in that |
|
same hour of the early afternoon, on the Barrier with the crowd about |
|
it, when a coach going out of Paris drives up to be examined. |
|
|
|
“Who goes here? Whom have we within? Papers!” |
|
|
|
The papers are handed out, and read. |
|
|
|
“Alexandre Manette. Physician. French. Which is he?” |
|
|
|
This is he; this helpless, inarticulately murmuring, wandering old man |
|
pointed out. |
|
|
|
“Apparently the Citizen-Doctor is not in his right mind? The |
|
Revolution-fever will have been too much for him?” |
|
|
|
Greatly too much for him. |
|
|
|
“Hah! Many suffer with it. Lucie. His daughter. French. Which is she?” |
|
|
|
This is she. |
|
|
|
“Apparently it must be. Lucie, the wife of Evrémonde; is it not?” |
|
|
|
It is. |
|
|
|
“Hah! Evrémonde has an assignation elsewhere. Lucie, her child. English. |
|
This is she?” |
|
|
|
She and no other. |
|
|
|
“Kiss me, child of Evrémonde. Now, thou hast kissed a good Republican; |
|
something new in thy family; remember it! Sydney Carton. Advocate. |
|
English. Which is he?” |
|
|
|
He lies here, in this corner of the carriage. He, too, is pointed out. |
|
|
|
“Apparently the English advocate is in a swoon?” |
|
|
|
It is hoped he will recover in the fresher air. It is represented that |
|
he is not in strong health, and has separated sadly from a friend who is |
|
under the displeasure of the Republic. |
|
|
|
“Is that all? It is not a great deal, that! Many are under the |
|
displeasure of the Republic, and must look out at the little window. |
|
Jarvis Lorry. Banker. English. Which is he?” |
|
|
|
“I am he. Necessarily, being the last.” |
|
|
|
It is Jarvis Lorry who has replied to all the previous questions. It |
|
is Jarvis Lorry who has alighted and stands with his hand on the coach |
|
door, replying to a group of officials. They leisurely walk round the |
|
carriage and leisurely mount the box, to look at what little luggage it |
|
carries on the roof; the country-people hanging about, press nearer to |
|
the coach doors and greedily stare in; a little child, carried by its |
|
mother, has its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the wife of |
|
an aristocrat who has gone to the Guillotine. |
|
|
|
“Behold your papers, Jarvis Lorry, countersigned.” |
|
|
|
“One can depart, citizen?” |
|
|
|
“One can depart. Forward, my postilions! A good journey!” |
|
|
|
“I salute you, citizens.--And the first danger passed!” |
|
|
|
These are again the words of Jarvis Lorry, as he clasps his hands, and |
|
looks upward. There is terror in the carriage, there is weeping, there |
|
is the heavy breathing of the insensible traveller. |
|
|
|
“Are we not going too slowly? Can they not be induced to go faster?” |
|
asks Lucie, clinging to the old man. |
|
|
|
“It would seem like flight, my darling. I must not urge them too much; |
|
it would rouse suspicion.” |
|
|
|
“Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued!” |
|
|
|
“The road is clear, my dearest. So far, we are not pursued.” |
|
|
|
Houses in twos and threes pass by us, solitary farms, ruinous buildings, |
|
dye-works, tanneries, and the like, open country, avenues of leafless |
|
trees. The hard uneven pavement is under us, the soft deep mud is on |
|
either side. Sometimes, we strike into the skirting mud, to avoid the |
|
stones that clatter us and shake us; sometimes, we stick in ruts and |
|
sloughs there. The agony of our impatience is then so great, that in our |
|
wild alarm and hurry we are for getting out and running--hiding--doing |
|
anything but stopping. |
|
|
|
Out of the open country, in again among ruinous buildings, solitary |
|
farms, dye-works, tanneries, and the like, cottages in twos and threes, |
|
avenues of leafless trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back |
|
by another road? Is not this the same place twice over? Thank Heaven, |
|
no. A village. Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued! Hush! |
|
the posting-house. |
|
|
|
Leisurely, our four horses are taken out; leisurely, the coach stands in |
|
the little street, bereft of horses, and with no likelihood upon it |
|
of ever moving again; leisurely, the new horses come into visible |
|
existence, one by one; leisurely, the new postilions follow, sucking and |
|
plaiting the lashes of their whips; leisurely, the old postilions count |
|
their money, make wrong additions, and arrive at dissatisfied results. |
|
All the time, our overfraught hearts are beating at a rate that would |
|
far outstrip the fastest gallop of the fastest horses ever foaled. |
|
|
|
At length the new postilions are in their saddles, and the old are left |
|
behind. We are through the village, up the hill, and down the hill, and |
|
on the low watery grounds. Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with |
|
animated gesticulation, and the horses are pulled up, almost on their |
|
haunches. We are pursued? |
|
|
|
“Ho! Within the carriage there. Speak then!” |
|
|
|
“What is it?” asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at window. |
|
|
|
“How many did they say?” |
|
|
|
“I do not understand you.” |
|
|
|
“--At the last post. How many to the Guillotine to-day?” |
|
|
|
“Fifty-two.” |
|
|
|
“I said so! A brave number! My fellow-citizen here would have it |
|
forty-two; ten more heads are worth having. The Guillotine goes |
|
handsomely. I love it. Hi forward. Whoop!” |
|
|
|
The night comes on dark. He moves more; he is beginning to revive, and |
|
to speak intelligibly; he thinks they are still together; he asks him, |
|
by his name, what he has in his hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help |
|
us! Look out, look out, and see if we are pursued. |
|
|
|
The wind is rushing after us, and the clouds are flying after us, and |
|
the moon is plunging after us, and the whole wild night is in pursuit of |
|
us; but, so far, we are pursued by nothing else. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV. |
|
The Knitting Done |
|
|
|
|
|
In that same juncture of time when the Fifty-Two awaited their fate |
|
Madame Defarge held darkly ominous council with The Vengeance and |
|
Jacques Three of the Revolutionary Jury. Not in the wine-shop did Madame |
|
Defarge confer with these ministers, but in the shed of the wood-sawyer, |
|
erst a mender of roads. The sawyer himself did not participate in the |
|
conference, but abided at a little distance, like an outer satellite who |
|
was not to speak until required, or to offer an opinion until invited. |
|
|
|
“But our Defarge,” said Jacques Three, “is undoubtedly a good |
|
Republican? Eh?” |
|
|
|
“There is no better,” the voluble Vengeance protested in her shrill |
|
notes, “in France.” |
|
|
|
“Peace, little Vengeance,” said Madame Defarge, laying her hand with |
|
a slight frown on her lieutenant’s lips, “hear me speak. My husband, |
|
fellow-citizen, is a good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved |
|
well of the Republic, and possesses its confidence. But my husband has |
|
his weaknesses, and he is so weak as to relent towards this Doctor.” |
|
|
|
“It is a great pity,” croaked Jacques Three, dubiously shaking his head, |
|
with his cruel fingers at his hungry mouth; “it is not quite like a good |
|
citizen; it is a thing to regret.” |
|
|
|
“See you,” said madame, “I care nothing for this Doctor, I. He may wear |
|
his head or lose it, for any interest I have in him; it is all one to |
|
me. But, the Evrémonde people are to be exterminated, and the wife and |
|
child must follow the husband and father.” |
|
|
|
“She has a fine head for it,” croaked Jacques Three. “I have seen blue |
|
eyes and golden hair there, and they looked charming when Samson held |
|
them up.” Ogre that he was, he spoke like an epicure. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge cast down her eyes, and reflected a little. |
|
|
|
“The child also,” observed Jacques Three, with a meditative enjoyment |
|
of his words, “has golden hair and blue eyes. And we seldom have a child |
|
there. It is a pretty sight!” |
|
|
|
“In a word,” said Madame Defarge, coming out of her short abstraction, |
|
“I cannot trust my husband in this matter. Not only do I feel, since |
|
last night, that I dare not confide to him the details of my projects; |
|
but also I feel that if I delay, there is danger of his giving warning, |
|
and then they might escape.” |
|
|
|
“That must never be,” croaked Jacques Three; “no one must escape. We |
|
have not half enough as it is. We ought to have six score a day.” |
|
|
|
“In a word,” Madame Defarge went on, “my husband has not my reason for |
|
pursuing this family to annihilation, and I have not his reason for |
|
regarding this Doctor with any sensibility. I must act for myself, |
|
therefore. Come hither, little citizen.” |
|
|
|
The wood-sawyer, who held her in the respect, and himself in the |
|
submission, of mortal fear, advanced with his hand to his red cap. |
|
|
|
“Touching those signals, little citizen,” said Madame Defarge, sternly, |
|
“that she made to the prisoners; you are ready to bear witness to them |
|
this very day?” |
|
|
|
“Ay, ay, why not!” cried the sawyer. “Every day, in all weathers, from |
|
two to four, always signalling, sometimes with the little one, sometimes |
|
without. I know what I know. I have seen with my eyes.” |
|
|
|
He made all manner of gestures while he spoke, as if in incidental |
|
imitation of some few of the great diversity of signals that he had |
|
never seen. |
|
|
|
“Clearly plots,” said Jacques Three. “Transparently!” |
|
|
|
“There is no doubt of the Jury?” inquired Madame Defarge, letting her |
|
eyes turn to him with a gloomy smile. |
|
|
|
“Rely upon the patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I answer for my |
|
fellow-Jurymen.” |
|
|
|
“Now, let me see,” said Madame Defarge, pondering again. “Yet once more! |
|
Can I spare this Doctor to my husband? I have no feeling either way. Can |
|
I spare him?” |
|
|
|
“He would count as one head,” observed Jacques Three, in a low voice. |
|
“We really have not heads enough; it would be a pity, I think.” |
|
|
|
“He was signalling with her when I saw her,” argued Madame Defarge; “I |
|
cannot speak of one without the other; and I must not be silent, and |
|
trust the case wholly to him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a |
|
bad witness.” |
|
|
|
The Vengeance and Jacques Three vied with each other in their fervent |
|
protestations that she was the most admirable and marvellous of |
|
witnesses. The little citizen, not to be outdone, declared her to be a |
|
celestial witness. |
|
|
|
“He must take his chance,” said Madame Defarge. “No, I cannot spare |
|
him! You are engaged at three o’clock; you are going to see the batch of |
|
to-day executed.--You?” |
|
|
|
The question was addressed to the wood-sawyer, who hurriedly replied in |
|
the affirmative: seizing the occasion to add that he was the most ardent |
|
of Republicans, and that he would be in effect the most desolate of |
|
Republicans, if anything prevented him from enjoying the pleasure of |
|
smoking his afternoon pipe in the contemplation of the droll national |
|
barber. He was so very demonstrative herein, that he might have been |
|
suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked contemptuously at |
|
him out of Madame Defarge’s head) of having his small individual fears |
|
for his own personal safety, every hour in the day. |
|
|
|
“I,” said madame, “am equally engaged at the same place. After it is |
|
over--say at eight to-night--come you to me, in Saint Antoine, and we |
|
will give information against these people at my Section.” |
|
|
|
The wood-sawyer said he would be proud and flattered to attend the |
|
citizeness. The citizeness looking at him, he became embarrassed, evaded |
|
her glance as a small dog would have done, retreated among his wood, and |
|
hid his confusion over the handle of his saw. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge beckoned the Juryman and The Vengeance a little nearer to |
|
the door, and there expounded her further views to them thus: |
|
|
|
“She will now be at home, awaiting the moment of his death. She will |
|
be mourning and grieving. She will be in a state of mind to impeach the |
|
justice of the Republic. She will be full of sympathy with its enemies. |
|
I will go to her.” |
|
|
|
“What an admirable woman; what an adorable woman!” exclaimed Jacques |
|
Three, rapturously. “Ah, my cherished!” cried The Vengeance; and |
|
embraced her. |
|
|
|
“Take you my knitting,” said Madame Defarge, placing it in her |
|
lieutenant’s hands, “and have it ready for me in my usual seat. Keep |
|
me my usual chair. Go you there, straight, for there will probably be a |
|
greater concourse than usual, to-day.” |
|
|
|
“I willingly obey the orders of my Chief,” said The Vengeance with |
|
alacrity, and kissing her cheek. “You will not be late?” |
|
|
|
“I shall be there before the commencement.” |
|
|
|
“And before the tumbrils arrive. Be sure you are there, my soul,” said |
|
The Vengeance, calling after her, for she had already turned into the |
|
street, “before the tumbrils arrive!” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge slightly waved her hand, to imply that she heard, and |
|
might be relied upon to arrive in good time, and so went through the |
|
mud, and round the corner of the prison wall. The Vengeance and the |
|
Juryman, looking after her as she walked away, were highly appreciative |
|
of her fine figure, and her superb moral endowments. |
|
|
|
There were many women at that time, upon whom the time laid a dreadfully |
|
disfiguring hand; but, there was not one among them more to be dreaded |
|
than this ruthless woman, now taking her way along the streets. Of a |
|
strong and fearless character, of shrewd sense and readiness, of great |
|
determination, of that kind of beauty which not only seems to impart |
|
to its possessor firmness and animosity, but to strike into others an |
|
instinctive recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would have |
|
heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued from her childhood |
|
with a brooding sense of wrong, and an inveterate hatred of a class, |
|
opportunity had developed her into a tigress. She was absolutely without |
|
pity. If she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out of |
|
her. |
|
|
|
It was nothing to her, that an innocent man was to die for the sins of |
|
his forefathers; she saw, not him, but them. It was nothing to her, that |
|
his wife was to be made a widow and his daughter an orphan; that was |
|
insufficient punishment, because they were her natural enemies and |
|
her prey, and as such had no right to live. To appeal to her, was made |
|
hopeless by her having no sense of pity, even for herself. If she had |
|
been laid low in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which |
|
she had been engaged, she would not have pitied herself; nor, if she had |
|
been ordered to the axe to-morrow, would she have gone to it with any |
|
softer feeling than a fierce desire to change places with the man who |
|
sent her there. |
|
|
|
Such a heart Madame Defarge carried under her rough robe. Carelessly |
|
worn, it was a becoming robe enough, in a certain weird way, and her |
|
dark hair looked rich under her coarse red cap. Lying hidden in her |
|
bosom, was a loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her waist, was a sharpened |
|
dagger. Thus accoutred, and walking with the confident tread of such |
|
a character, and with the supple freedom of a woman who had habitually |
|
walked in her girlhood, bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown |
|
sea-sand, Madame Defarge took her way along the streets. |
|
|
|
Now, when the journey of the travelling coach, at that very moment |
|
waiting for the completion of its load, had been planned out last night, |
|
the difficulty of taking Miss Pross in it had much engaged Mr. Lorry’s |
|
attention. It was not merely desirable to avoid overloading the coach, |
|
but it was of the highest importance that the time occupied in examining |
|
it and its passengers, should be reduced to the utmost; since their |
|
escape might depend on the saving of only a few seconds here and there. |
|
Finally, he had proposed, after anxious consideration, that Miss Pross |
|
and Jerry, who were at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at |
|
three o’clock in the lightest-wheeled conveyance known to that period. |
|
Unencumbered with luggage, they would soon overtake the coach, and, |
|
passing it and preceding it on the road, would order its horses in |
|
advance, and greatly facilitate its progress during the precious hours |
|
of the night, when delay was the most to be dreaded. |
|
|
|
Seeing in this arrangement the hope of rendering real service in that |
|
pressing emergency, Miss Pross hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had |
|
beheld the coach start, had known who it was that Solomon brought, had |
|
passed some ten minutes in tortures of suspense, and were now concluding |
|
their arrangements to follow the coach, even as Madame Defarge, |
|
taking her way through the streets, now drew nearer and nearer to the |
|
else-deserted lodging in which they held their consultation. |
|
|
|
“Now what do you think, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose agitation |
|
was so great that she could hardly speak, or stand, or move, or live: |
|
“what do you think of our not starting from this courtyard? Another |
|
carriage having already gone from here to-day, it might awaken |
|
suspicion.” |
|
|
|
“My opinion, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “is as you’re right. Likewise |
|
wot I’ll stand by you, right or wrong.” |
|
|
|
“I am so distracted with fear and hope for our precious creatures,” said |
|
Miss Pross, wildly crying, “that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are |
|
_you_ capable of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?” |
|
|
|
“Respectin’ a future spear o’ life, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “I |
|
hope so. Respectin’ any present use o’ this here blessed old head o’ |
|
mine, I think not. Would you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o’ |
|
two promises and wows wot it is my wishes fur to record in this here |
|
crisis?” |
|
|
|
“Oh, for gracious sake!” cried Miss Pross, still wildly crying, “record |
|
them at once, and get them out of the way, like an excellent man.” |
|
|
|
“First,” said Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a tremble, and who spoke with |
|
an ashy and solemn visage, “them poor things well out o’ this, never no |
|
more will I do it, never no more!” |
|
|
|
“I am quite sure, Mr. Cruncher,” returned Miss Pross, “that you |
|
never will do it again, whatever it is, and I beg you not to think it |
|
necessary to mention more particularly what it is.” |
|
|
|
“No, miss,” returned Jerry, “it shall not be named to you. Second: them |
|
poor things well out o’ this, and never no more will I interfere with |
|
Mrs. Cruncher’s flopping, never no more!” |
|
|
|
“Whatever housekeeping arrangement that may be,” said Miss Pross, |
|
striving to dry her eyes and compose herself, “I have no doubt it |
|
is best that Mrs. Cruncher should have it entirely under her own |
|
superintendence.--O my poor darlings!” |
|
|
|
“I go so far as to say, miss, moreover,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with a |
|
most alarming tendency to hold forth as from a pulpit--“and let my words |
|
be took down and took to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself--that wot my |
|
opinions respectin’ flopping has undergone a change, and that wot I only |
|
hope with all my heart as Mrs. Cruncher may be a flopping at the present |
|
time.” |
|
|
|
“There, there, there! I hope she is, my dear man,” cried the distracted |
|
Miss Pross, “and I hope she finds it answering her expectations.” |
|
|
|
“Forbid it,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with additional solemnity, |
|
additional slowness, and additional tendency to hold forth and hold |
|
out, “as anything wot I have ever said or done should be wisited on my |
|
earnest wishes for them poor creeturs now! Forbid it as we shouldn’t all |
|
flop (if it was anyways conwenient) to get ’em out o’ this here dismal |
|
risk! Forbid it, miss! Wot I say, for-_bid_ it!” This was Mr. Cruncher’s |
|
conclusion after a protracted but vain endeavour to find a better one. |
|
|
|
And still Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came |
|
nearer and nearer. |
|
|
|
“If we ever get back to our native land,” said Miss Pross, “you may rely |
|
upon my telling Mrs. Cruncher as much as I may be able to remember and |
|
understand of what you have so impressively said; and at all events |
|
you may be sure that I shall bear witness to your being thoroughly in |
|
earnest at this dreadful time. Now, pray let us think! My esteemed Mr. |
|
Cruncher, let us think!” |
|
|
|
Still, Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer |
|
and nearer. |
|
|
|
“If you were to go before,” said Miss Pross, “and stop the vehicle and |
|
horses from coming here, and were to wait somewhere for me; wouldn’t |
|
that be best?” |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher thought it might be best. |
|
|
|
“Where could you wait for me?” asked Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
Mr. Cruncher was so bewildered that he could think of no locality but |
|
Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar was hundreds of miles away, and Madame |
|
Defarge was drawing very near indeed. |
|
|
|
“By the cathedral door,” said Miss Pross. “Would it be much out of |
|
the way, to take me in, near the great cathedral door between the two |
|
towers?” |
|
|
|
“No, miss,” answered Mr. Cruncher. |
|
|
|
“Then, like the best of men,” said Miss Pross, “go to the posting-house |
|
straight, and make that change.” |
|
|
|
“I am doubtful,” said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and shaking his head, |
|
“about leaving of you, you see. We don’t know what may happen.” |
|
|
|
“Heaven knows we don’t,” returned Miss Pross, “but have no fear for me. |
|
Take me in at the cathedral, at Three o’Clock, or as near it as you can, |
|
and I am sure it will be better than our going from here. I feel certain |
|
of it. There! Bless you, Mr. Cruncher! Think-not of me, but of the lives |
|
that may depend on both of us!” |
|
|
|
This exordium, and Miss Pross’s two hands in quite agonised entreaty |
|
clasping his, decided Mr. Cruncher. With an encouraging nod or two, he |
|
immediately went out to alter the arrangements, and left her by herself |
|
to follow as she had proposed. |
|
|
|
The having originated a precaution which was already in course of |
|
execution, was a great relief to Miss Pross. The necessity of composing |
|
her appearance so that it should attract no special notice in the |
|
streets, was another relief. She looked at her watch, and it was twenty |
|
minutes past two. She had no time to lose, but must get ready at once. |
|
|
|
Afraid, in her extreme perturbation, of the loneliness of the deserted |
|
rooms, and of half-imagined faces peeping from behind every open door |
|
in them, Miss Pross got a basin of cold water and began laving her eyes, |
|
which were swollen and red. Haunted by her feverish apprehensions, she |
|
could not bear to have her sight obscured for a minute at a time by the |
|
dripping water, but constantly paused and looked round to see that there |
|
was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she recoiled and cried |
|
out, for she saw a figure standing in the room. |
|
|
|
The basin fell to the ground broken, and the water flowed to the feet of |
|
Madame Defarge. By strange stern ways, and through much staining blood, |
|
those feet had come to meet that water. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge looked coldly at her, and said, “The wife of Evrémonde; |
|
where is she?” |
|
|
|
It flashed upon Miss Pross’s mind that the doors were all standing open, |
|
and would suggest the flight. Her first act was to shut them. There were |
|
four in the room, and she shut them all. She then placed herself before |
|
the door of the chamber which Lucie had occupied. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge’s dark eyes followed her through this rapid movement, |
|
and rested on her when it was finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful |
|
about her; years had not tamed the wildness, or softened the grimness, |
|
of her appearance; but, she too was a determined woman in her different |
|
way, and she measured Madame Defarge with her eyes, every inch. |
|
|
|
“You might, from your appearance, be the wife of Lucifer,” said Miss |
|
Pross, in her breathing. “Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of |
|
me. I am an Englishwoman.” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge looked at her scornfully, but still with something of |
|
Miss Pross’s own perception that they two were at bay. She saw a tight, |
|
hard, wiry woman before her, as Mr. Lorry had seen in the same figure a |
|
woman with a strong hand, in the years gone by. She knew full well that |
|
Miss Pross was the family’s devoted friend; Miss Pross knew full well |
|
that Madame Defarge was the family’s malevolent enemy. |
|
|
|
“On my way yonder,” said Madame Defarge, with a slight movement of |
|
her hand towards the fatal spot, “where they reserve my chair and my |
|
knitting for me, I am come to make my compliments to her in passing. I |
|
wish to see her.” |
|
|
|
“I know that your intentions are evil,” said Miss Pross, “and you may |
|
depend upon it, I’ll hold my own against them.” |
|
|
|
Each spoke in her own language; neither understood the other’s words; |
|
both were very watchful, and intent to deduce from look and manner, what |
|
the unintelligible words meant. |
|
|
|
“It will do her no good to keep herself concealed from me at this |
|
moment,” said Madame Defarge. “Good patriots will know what that means. |
|
Let me see her. Go tell her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?” |
|
|
|
“If those eyes of yours were bed-winches,” returned Miss Pross, “and I |
|
was an English four-poster, they shouldn’t loose a splinter of me. No, |
|
you wicked foreign woman; I am your match.” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge was not likely to follow these idiomatic remarks in |
|
detail; but, she so far understood them as to perceive that she was set |
|
at naught. |
|
|
|
“Woman imbecile and pig-like!” said Madame Defarge, frowning. “I take no |
|
answer from you. I demand to see her. Either tell her that I demand |
|
to see her, or stand out of the way of the door and let me go to her!” |
|
This, with an angry explanatory wave of her right arm. |
|
|
|
“I little thought,” said Miss Pross, “that I should ever want to |
|
understand your nonsensical language; but I would give all I have, |
|
except the clothes I wear, to know whether you suspect the truth, or any |
|
part of it.” |
|
|
|
Neither of them for a single moment released the other’s eyes. Madame |
|
Defarge had not moved from the spot where she stood when Miss Pross |
|
first became aware of her; but, she now advanced one step. |
|
|
|
“I am a Briton,” said Miss Pross, “I am desperate. I don’t care an |
|
English Twopence for myself. I know that the longer I keep you here, the |
|
greater hope there is for my Ladybird. I’ll not leave a handful of that |
|
dark hair upon your head, if you lay a finger on me!” |
|
|
|
Thus Miss Pross, with a shake of her head and a flash of her eyes |
|
between every rapid sentence, and every rapid sentence a whole breath. |
|
Thus Miss Pross, who had never struck a blow in her life. |
|
|
|
But, her courage was of that emotional nature that it brought the |
|
irrepressible tears into her eyes. This was a courage that Madame |
|
Defarge so little comprehended as to mistake for weakness. “Ha, ha!” she |
|
laughed, “you poor wretch! What are you worth! I address myself to that |
|
Doctor.” Then she raised her voice and called out, “Citizen Doctor! Wife |
|
of Evrémonde! Child of Evrémonde! Any person but this miserable fool, |
|
answer the Citizeness Defarge!” |
|
|
|
Perhaps the following silence, perhaps some latent disclosure in the |
|
expression of Miss Pross’s face, perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from |
|
either suggestion, whispered to Madame Defarge that they were gone. |
|
Three of the doors she opened swiftly, and looked in. |
|
|
|
“Those rooms are all in disorder, there has been hurried packing, there |
|
are odds and ends upon the ground. There is no one in that room behind |
|
you! Let me look.” |
|
|
|
“Never!” said Miss Pross, who understood the request as perfectly as |
|
Madame Defarge understood the answer. |
|
|
|
“If they are not in that room, they are gone, and can be pursued and |
|
brought back,” said Madame Defarge to herself. |
|
|
|
“As long as you don’t know whether they are in that room or not, you are |
|
uncertain what to do,” said Miss Pross to herself; “and you shall not |
|
know that, if I can prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know |
|
that, you shall not leave here while I can hold you.” |
|
|
|
“I have been in the streets from the first, nothing has stopped me, |
|
I will tear you to pieces, but I will have you from that door,” said |
|
Madame Defarge. |
|
|
|
“We are alone at the top of a high house in a solitary courtyard, we are |
|
not likely to be heard, and I pray for bodily strength to keep you here, |
|
while every minute you are here is worth a hundred thousand guineas to |
|
my darling,” said Miss Pross. |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge made at the door. Miss Pross, on the instinct of the |
|
moment, seized her round the waist in both her arms, and held her tight. |
|
It was in vain for Madame Defarge to struggle and to strike; Miss Pross, |
|
with the vigorous tenacity of love, always so much stronger than hate, |
|
clasped her tight, and even lifted her from the floor in the struggle |
|
that they had. The two hands of Madame Defarge buffeted and tore her |
|
face; but, Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the waist, and |
|
clung to her with more than the hold of a drowning woman. |
|
|
|
Soon, Madame Defarge’s hands ceased to strike, and felt at her encircled |
|
waist. “It is under my arm,” said Miss Pross, in smothered tones, “you |
|
shall not draw it. I am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold |
|
you till one or other of us faints or dies!” |
|
|
|
Madame Defarge’s hands were at her bosom. Miss Pross looked up, saw |
|
what it was, struck at it, struck out a flash and a crash, and stood |
|
alone--blinded with smoke. |
|
|
|
All this was in a second. As the smoke cleared, leaving an awful |
|
stillness, it passed out on the air, like the soul of the furious woman |
|
whose body lay lifeless on the ground. |
|
|
|
In the first fright and horror of her situation, Miss Pross passed the |
|
body as far from it as she could, and ran down the stairs to call for |
|
fruitless help. Happily, she bethought herself of the consequences of |
|
what she did, in time to check herself and go back. It was dreadful to |
|
go in at the door again; but, she did go in, and even went near it, to |
|
get the bonnet and other things that she must wear. These she put on, |
|
out on the staircase, first shutting and locking the door and taking |
|
away the key. She then sat down on the stairs a few moments to breathe |
|
and to cry, and then got up and hurried away. |
|
|
|
By good fortune she had a veil on her bonnet, or she could hardly have |
|
gone along the streets without being stopped. By good fortune, too, she |
|
was naturally so peculiar in appearance as not to show disfigurement |
|
like any other woman. She needed both advantages, for the marks of |
|
gripping fingers were deep in her face, and her hair was torn, and her |
|
dress (hastily composed with unsteady hands) was clutched and dragged a |
|
hundred ways. |
|
|
|
In crossing the bridge, she dropped the door key in the river. Arriving |
|
at the cathedral some few minutes before her escort, and waiting there, |
|
she thought, what if the key were already taken in a net, what if |
|
it were identified, what if the door were opened and the remains |
|
discovered, what if she were stopped at the gate, sent to prison, and |
|
charged with murder! In the midst of these fluttering thoughts, the |
|
escort appeared, took her in, and took her away. |
|
|
|
“Is there any noise in the streets?” she asked him. |
|
|
|
“The usual noises,” Mr. Cruncher replied; and looked surprised by the |
|
question and by her aspect. |
|
|
|
“I don’t hear you,” said Miss Pross. “What do you say?” |
|
|
|
It was in vain for Mr. Cruncher to repeat what he said; Miss Pross could |
|
not hear him. “So I’ll nod my head,” thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, “at |
|
all events she’ll see that.” And she did. |
|
|
|
“Is there any noise in the streets now?” asked Miss Pross again, |
|
presently. |
|
|
|
Again Mr. Cruncher nodded his head. |
|
|
|
“I don’t hear it.” |
|
|
|
“Gone deaf in an hour?” said Mr. Cruncher, ruminating, with his mind |
|
much disturbed; “wot’s come to her?” |
|
|
|
“I feel,” said Miss Pross, “as if there had been a flash and a crash, |
|
and that crash was the last thing I should ever hear in this life.” |
|
|
|
“Blest if she ain’t in a queer condition!” said Mr. Cruncher, more and |
|
more disturbed. “Wot can she have been a takin’, to keep her courage up? |
|
Hark! There’s the roll of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?” |
|
|
|
“I can hear,” said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke to her, “nothing. O, |
|
my good man, there was first a great crash, and then a great stillness, |
|
and that stillness seems to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be |
|
broken any more as long as my life lasts.” |
|
|
|
“If she don’t hear the roll of those dreadful carts, now very nigh their |
|
journey’s end,” said Mr. Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, “it’s my |
|
opinion that indeed she never will hear anything else in this world.” |
|
|
|
And indeed she never did. |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV. |
|
The Footsteps Die Out For Ever |
|
|
|
|
|
Along the Paris streets, the death-carts rumble, hollow and harsh. Six |
|
tumbrils carry the day’s wine to La Guillotine. All the devouring and |
|
insatiate Monsters imagined since imagination could record itself, |
|
are fused in the one realisation, Guillotine. And yet there is not in |
|
France, with its rich variety of soil and climate, a blade, a leaf, |
|
a root, a sprig, a peppercorn, which will grow to maturity under |
|
conditions more certain than those that have produced this horror. Crush |
|
humanity out of shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will |
|
twist itself into the same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of |
|
rapacious license and oppression over again, and it will surely yield |
|
the same fruit according to its kind. |
|
|
|
Six tumbrils roll along the streets. Change these back again to what |
|
they were, thou powerful enchanter, Time, and they shall be seen to be |
|
the carriages of absolute monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the |
|
toilettes of flaring Jezebels, the churches that are not my father’s |
|
house but dens of thieves, the huts of millions of starving peasants! |
|
No; the great magician who majestically works out the appointed order |
|
of the Creator, never reverses his transformations. “If thou be changed |
|
into this shape by the will of God,” say the seers to the enchanted, in |
|
the wise Arabian stories, “then remain so! But, if thou wear this |
|
form through mere passing conjuration, then resume thy former aspect!” |
|
Changeless and hopeless, the tumbrils roll along. |
|
|
|
As the sombre wheels of the six carts go round, they seem to plough up |
|
a long crooked furrow among the populace in the streets. Ridges of faces |
|
are thrown to this side and to that, and the ploughs go steadily onward. |
|
So used are the regular inhabitants of the houses to the spectacle, that |
|
in many windows there are no people, and in some the occupation of the |
|
hands is not so much as suspended, while the eyes survey the faces in |
|
the tumbrils. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see the sight; |
|
then he points his finger, with something of the complacency of a |
|
curator or authorised exponent, to this cart and to this, and seems to |
|
tell who sat here yesterday, and who there the day before. |
|
|
|
Of the riders in the tumbrils, some observe these things, and all |
|
things on their last roadside, with an impassive stare; others, with |
|
a lingering interest in the ways of life and men. Some, seated with |
|
drooping heads, are sunk in silent despair; again, there are some so |
|
heedful of their looks that they cast upon the multitude such glances as |
|
they have seen in theatres, and in pictures. Several close their eyes, |
|
and think, or try to get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and |
|
he a miserable creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered and made |
|
drunk by horror, that he sings, and tries to dance. Not one of the whole |
|
number appeals by look or gesture, to the pity of the people. |
|
|
|
There is a guard of sundry horsemen riding abreast of the tumbrils, |
|
and faces are often turned up to some of them, and they are asked some |
|
question. It would seem to be always the same question, for, it is |
|
always followed by a press of people towards the third cart. The |
|
horsemen abreast of that cart, frequently point out one man in it with |
|
their swords. The leading curiosity is, to know which is he; he stands |
|
at the back of the tumbril with his head bent down, to converse with a |
|
mere girl who sits on the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has |
|
no curiosity or care for the scene about him, and always speaks to the |
|
girl. Here and there in the long street of St. Honore, cries are raised |
|
against him. If they move him at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he |
|
shakes his hair a little more loosely about his face. He cannot easily |
|
touch his face, his arms being bound. |
|
|
|
On the steps of a church, awaiting the coming-up of the tumbrils, stands |
|
the Spy and prison-sheep. He looks into the first of them: not there. |
|
He looks into the second: not there. He already asks himself, “Has he |
|
sacrificed me?” when his face clears, as he looks into the third. |
|
|
|
“Which is Evrémonde?” says a man behind him. |
|
|
|
“That. At the back there.” |
|
|
|
“With his hand in the girl’s?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
The man cries, “Down, Evrémonde! To the Guillotine all aristocrats! |
|
Down, Evrémonde!” |
|
|
|
“Hush, hush!” the Spy entreats him, timidly. |
|
|
|
“And why not, citizen?” |
|
|
|
“He is going to pay the forfeit: it will be paid in five minutes more. |
|
Let him be at peace.” |
|
|
|
But the man continuing to exclaim, “Down, Evrémonde!” the face of |
|
Evrémonde is for a moment turned towards him. Evrémonde then sees the |
|
Spy, and looks attentively at him, and goes his way. |
|
|
|
The clocks are on the stroke of three, and the furrow ploughed among the |
|
populace is turning round, to come on into the place of execution, and |
|
end. The ridges thrown to this side and to that, now crumble in and |
|
close behind the last plough as it passes on, for all are following |
|
to the Guillotine. In front of it, seated in chairs, as in a garden of |
|
public diversion, are a number of women, busily knitting. On one of the |
|
fore-most chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her friend. |
|
|
|
“Thérèse!” she cries, in her shrill tones. “Who has seen her? Thérèse |
|
Defarge!” |
|
|
|
“She never missed before,” says a knitting-woman of the sisterhood. |
|
|
|
“No; nor will she miss now,” cries The Vengeance, petulantly. “Thérèse.” |
|
|
|
“Louder,” the woman recommends. |
|
|
|
Ay! Louder, Vengeance, much louder, and still she will scarcely hear |
|
thee. Louder yet, Vengeance, with a little oath or so added, and yet |
|
it will hardly bring her. Send other women up and down to seek her, |
|
lingering somewhere; and yet, although the messengers have done dread |
|
deeds, it is questionable whether of their own wills they will go far |
|
enough to find her! |
|
|
|
“Bad Fortune!” cries The Vengeance, stamping her foot in the chair, “and |
|
here are the tumbrils! And Evrémonde will be despatched in a wink, and |
|
she not here! See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready for |
|
her. I cry with vexation and disappointment!” |
|
|
|
As The Vengeance descends from her elevation to do it, the tumbrils |
|
begin to discharge their loads. The ministers of Sainte Guillotine are |
|
robed and ready. Crash!--A head is held up, and the knitting-women who |
|
scarcely lifted their eyes to look at it a moment ago when it could |
|
think and speak, count One. |
|
|
|
The second tumbril empties and moves on; the third comes up. Crash!--And |
|
the knitting-women, never faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two. |
|
|
|
The supposed Evrémonde descends, and the seamstress is lifted out next |
|
after him. He has not relinquished her patient hand in getting out, but |
|
still holds it as he promised. He gently places her with her back to the |
|
crashing engine that constantly whirrs up and falls, and she looks into |
|
his face and thanks him. |
|
|
|
“But for you, dear stranger, I should not be so composed, for I am |
|
naturally a poor little thing, faint of heart; nor should I have been |
|
able to raise my thoughts to Him who was put to death, that we might |
|
have hope and comfort here to-day. I think you were sent to me by |
|
Heaven.” |
|
|
|
“Or you to me,” says Sydney Carton. “Keep your eyes upon me, dear child, |
|
and mind no other object.” |
|
|
|
“I mind nothing while I hold your hand. I shall mind nothing when I let |
|
it go, if they are rapid.” |
|
|
|
“They will be rapid. Fear not!” |
|
|
|
The two stand in the fast-thinning throng of victims, but they speak as |
|
if they were alone. Eye to eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to |
|
heart, these two children of the Universal Mother, else so wide apart |
|
and differing, have come together on the dark highway, to repair home |
|
together, and to rest in her bosom. |
|
|
|
“Brave and generous friend, will you let me ask you one last question? I |
|
am very ignorant, and it troubles me--just a little.” |
|
|
|
“Tell me what it is.” |
|
|
|
“I have a cousin, an only relative and an orphan, like myself, whom I |
|
love very dearly. She is five years younger than I, and she lives in a |
|
farmer’s house in the south country. Poverty parted us, and she knows |
|
nothing of my fate--for I cannot write--and if I could, how should I |
|
tell her! It is better as it is.” |
|
|
|
“Yes, yes: better as it is.” |
|
|
|
“What I have been thinking as we came along, and what I am still |
|
thinking now, as I look into your kind strong face which gives me so |
|
much support, is this:--If the Republic really does good to the poor, |
|
and they come to be less hungry, and in all ways to suffer less, she may |
|
live a long time: she may even live to be old.” |
|
|
|
“What then, my gentle sister?” |
|
|
|
“Do you think:” the uncomplaining eyes in which there is so much |
|
endurance, fill with tears, and the lips part a little more and tremble: |
|
“that it will seem long to me, while I wait for her in the better land |
|
where I trust both you and I will be mercifully sheltered?” |
|
|
|
“It cannot be, my child; there is no Time there, and no trouble there.” |
|
|
|
“You comfort me so much! I am so ignorant. Am I to kiss you now? Is the |
|
moment come?” |
|
|
|
“Yes.” |
|
|
|
She kisses his lips; he kisses hers; they solemnly bless each other. |
|
The spare hand does not tremble as he releases it; nothing worse than |
|
a sweet, bright constancy is in the patient face. She goes next before |
|
him--is gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two. |
|
|
|
“I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord: he that believeth |
|
in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and |
|
believeth in me shall never die.” |
|
|
|
The murmuring of many voices, the upturning of many faces, the pressing |
|
on of many footsteps in the outskirts of the crowd, so that it swells |
|
forward in a mass, like one great heave of water, all flashes away. |
|
Twenty-Three. |
|
|
|
***** |
|
|
|
They said of him, about the city that night, that it was the |
|
peacefullest man’s face ever beheld there. Many added that he looked |
|
sublime and prophetic. |
|
|
|
One of the most remarkable sufferers by the same axe--a woman--had asked |
|
at the foot of the same scaffold, not long before, to be allowed to |
|
write down the thoughts that were inspiring her. If he had given any |
|
utterance to his, and they were prophetic, they would have been these: |
|
|
|
“I see Barsad, and Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the Juryman, the Judge, |
|
long ranks of the new oppressors who have risen on the destruction of |
|
the old, perishing by this retributive instrument, before it shall cease |
|
out of its present use. I see a beautiful city and a brilliant people |
|
rising from this abyss, and, in their struggles to be truly free, in |
|
their triumphs and defeats, through long years to come, I see the evil |
|
of this time and of the previous time of which this is the natural |
|
birth, gradually making expiation for itself and wearing out. |
|
|
|
“I see the lives for which I lay down my life, peaceful, useful, |
|
prosperous and happy, in that England which I shall see no more. I see |
|
Her with a child upon her bosom, who bears my name. I see her father, |
|
aged and bent, but otherwise restored, and faithful to all men in his |
|
healing office, and at peace. I see the good old man, so long their |
|
friend, in ten years’ time enriching them with all he has, and passing |
|
tranquilly to his reward. |
|
|
|
“I see that I hold a sanctuary in their hearts, and in the hearts of |
|
their descendants, generations hence. I see her, an old woman, weeping |
|
for me on the anniversary of this day. I see her and her husband, their |
|
course done, lying side by side in their last earthly bed, and I know |
|
that each was not more honoured and held sacred in the other’s soul, |
|
than I was in the souls of both. |
|
|
|
“I see that child who lay upon her bosom and who bore my name, a man |
|
winning his way up in that path of life which once was mine. I see him |
|
winning it so well, that my name is made illustrious there by the |
|
light of his. I see the blots I threw upon it, faded away. I see him, |
|
fore-most of just judges and honoured men, bringing a boy of my name, |
|
with a forehead that I know and golden hair, to this place--then fair to |
|
look upon, with not a trace of this day’s disfigurement--and I hear him |
|
tell the child my story, with a tender and a faltering voice. |
|
|
|
“It is a far, far better thing that I do, than I have ever done; it is a |
|
far, far better rest that I go to than I have ever known.” |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A TALE OF TWO CITIES *** |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will |
|
be renamed. |
|
|
|
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright |
|
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, |
|
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United |
|
States without permission and without paying copyright |
|
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part |
|
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project |
|
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™ |
|
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, |
|
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following |
|
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use |
|
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for |
|
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very |
|
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation |
|
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project |
|
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may |
|
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected |
|
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark |
|
license, especially commercial redistribution. |
|
|
|
|
|
START: FULL LICENSE |
|
|
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE |
|
|
|
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK |
|
|
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free |
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work |
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project |
|
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full |
|
Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at |
|
www.gutenberg.org/license. |
|
|
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ |
|
electronic works |
|
|
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ |
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to |
|
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property |
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all |
|
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or |
|
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your |
|
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a |
|
Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound |
|
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person |
|
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. |
|
|
|
1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be |
|
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who |
|
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few |
|
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works |
|
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See |
|
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project |
|
Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this |
|
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ |
|
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. |
|
|
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the |
|
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection |
|
of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual |
|
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United |
|
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the |
|
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not |
|
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, |
|
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as |
|
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope |
|
that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting |
|
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ |
|
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the |
|
Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily |
|
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the |
|
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when |
|
you share it without charge with others. |
|
|
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern |
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are |
|
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, |
|
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this |
|
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, |
|
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any |
|
other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no |
|
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any |
|
country other than the United States. |
|
|
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: |
|
|
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other |
|
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear |
|
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work |
|
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the |
|
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, |
|
performed, viewed, copied or distributed: |
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most |
|
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions |
|
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms |
|
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online |
|
at www.gutenberg.org. If you |
|
are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws |
|
of the country where you are located before using this eBook. |
|
|
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is |
|
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not |
|
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the |
|
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in |
|
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are |
|
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project |
|
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply |
|
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or |
|
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ |
|
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. |
|
|
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted |
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution |
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any |
|
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms |
|
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works |
|
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the |
|
beginning of this work. |
|
|
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ |
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this |
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. |
|
|
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this |
|
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without |
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with |
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project |
|
Gutenberg™ License. |
|
|
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, |
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including |
|
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access |
|
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format |
|
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official |
|
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website |
|
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense |
|
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means |
|
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain |
|
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the |
|
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. |
|
|
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, |
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works |
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. |
|
|
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing |
|
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works |
|
provided that: |
|
|
|
• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from |
|
the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method |
|
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed |
|
to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has |
|
agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project |
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid |
|
within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are |
|
legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty |
|
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project |
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in |
|
Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg |
|
Literary Archive Foundation.” |
|
|
|
• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies |
|
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he |
|
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ |
|
License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all |
|
copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue |
|
all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ |
|
works. |
|
|
|
• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of |
|
any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the |
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of |
|
receipt of the work. |
|
|
|
• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free |
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. |
|
|
|
|
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project |
|
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than |
|
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing |
|
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of |
|
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set |
|
forth in Section 3 below. |
|
|
|
1.F. |
|
|
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable |
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread |
|
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project |
|
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ |
|
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may |
|
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate |
|
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other |
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or |
|
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or |
|
cannot be read by your equipment. |
|
|
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right |
|
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project |
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project |
|
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project |
|
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all |
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal |
|
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT |
|
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE |
|
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE |
|
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE |
|
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR |
|
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH |
|
DAMAGE. |
|
|
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a |
|
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can |
|
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a |
|
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you |
|
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium |
|
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you |
|
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in |
|
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person |
|
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second |
|
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If |
|
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing |
|
without further opportunities to fix the problem. |
|
|
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth |
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO |
|
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT |
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. |
|
|
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied |
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of |
|
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement |
|
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the |
|
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or |
|
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or |
|
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the |
|
remaining provisions. |
|
|
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the |
|
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone |
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in |
|
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the |
|
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ |
|
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, |
|
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of |
|
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this |
|
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or |
|
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any |
|
Defect you cause. |
|
|
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ |
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of |
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of |
|
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It |
|
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations |
|
from people in all walks of life. |
|
|
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the |
|
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s |
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will |
|
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project |
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure |
|
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future |
|
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary |
|
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see |
|
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org. |
|
|
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation |
|
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit |
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the |
|
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal |
|
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification |
|
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary |
|
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by |
|
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. |
|
|
|
The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, |
|
Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up |
|
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website |
|
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact |
|
|
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg |
|
Literary Archive Foundation |
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread |
|
public support and donations to carry out its mission of |
|
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be |
|
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest |
|
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations |
|
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt |
|
status with the IRS. |
|
|
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating |
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United |
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a |
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up |
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations |
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND |
|
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state |
|
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate. |
|
|
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we |
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition |
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who |
|
approach us with offers to donate. |
|
|
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make |
|
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from |
|
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. |
|
|
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation |
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other |
|
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To |
|
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate. |
|
|
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works |
|
|
|
Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project |
|
Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be |
|
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and |
|
distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of |
|
volunteer support. |
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed |
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in |
|
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not |
|
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper |
|
edition. |
|
|
|
Most people start at our website which has the main PG search |
|
facility: www.gutenberg.org. |
|
|
|
This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™, |
|
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary |
|
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to |
|
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. |
|
|